Selected quad for the lemma: england_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
england_n church_n rome_n separation_n 2,835 5 10.7415 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A60334 True Catholic and apostolic faith maintain'd in the Church of England by Andrew Sall ... ; being a reply to several books published under the names of J.E., N.N. and J.S. against his declaration for the Church of England, and against the motives for his separation from the Roman Church, declared in a printed sermon which he preached in Dublin. Sall, Andrew, 1612-1682. 1676 (1676) Wing S394A; ESTC R22953 236,538 476

There are 52 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

make_v betwixt_o the_o ecclesa●ic_n and_o secular_a we_o have_v for_o the_o same_o practice_n the_o example_n of_o the_o godly_a king_n of_o israel_n and_o of_o christian_a emperor_n in_o the_o primit●●e_a church_n as_o will_v be_v declare_v hereafter_o chap._n xv._o 1._o and_o our_o doctrine_n herein_o be_v build_v thus_o on_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n appear_v thereby_o to_o be_v catholic_a and_o apostolic_a and_o if_o any_o doctrine_n of_o we_o be_v not_o find_v ground_v upon_o the_o same_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n we_o be_v all_o rea●y_n to_o make_v that_o pious_a confession_n of_o our_o great_a king_n james_n relate_v by_o suarez_n chapter_n xvii_o n._n 15._o ego_fw-la vero_fw-la id_fw-la ingenuè_fw-fr spondeo_fw-la quoties_fw-la religionis_fw-la quam_fw-la profiteor_fw-la ullum_fw-la caput_fw-la ostendetur_fw-la non_fw-la antiquum_fw-la catholicum_fw-la &_o apostolicum_fw-la sed_fw-la novitium_fw-la esse_fw-la ac_fw-la recens_fw-la in_fw-la rebus_fw-la sc_fw-la spectantibus_fw-la ad_fw-la sidem_fw-la i_n statim_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la d●s●essurum_fw-la i_o do_v faithful_o promise_v that_o whensoever_o any_o point_n of_o the_o religion_n i_o profess_v shall_v be_v find_v not_o to_o be_v ancient_a catholic_n and_o apostolic_a but_o new_a and_o modern_a as_o to_o thing_n belong_v to_o faith_n i_o will_v present_o depart_v from_o it_o this_o much_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v say_v with_o sincerity_n and_o truth_n since_o several_a of_o their_o tenant_n be_v not_o build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n but_o be_v contrary_a to_o they_o as_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n therefore_o our_o church_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o it_o rather_o than_o that_o of_o rome_n be_v true_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a chap._n v._o of_o the_o succession_n and_o lawful_a ordination_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n in_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o england_n nothing_o be_v affirm_v more_o confident_o nothing_o more_o blind_o believe_v by_o most_o of_o the_o romish_a party_n than_o the_o nullity_n of_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n that_o our_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n be_v not_o such_o effective_o but_o nominal_o or_o by_o title_n and_o therefore_o unable_a to_o give_v order_n they_o have_v not_o or_o administer_v sacrament_n depend_v upon_o such_o order_n this_o i_o find_v by_o experience_n to_o be_v the_o great_a stop_n many_o of_o the_o more_o sober_a and_o serious_a of_o they_o have_v in_o embrace_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n they_o see_v clear_o nothing_o be_v assert_v by_o it_o which_o may_v be_v think_v heretical_a or_o erroneous_a and_o what_o it_o deny_v of_o superstructure_n add_v in_o latter_a age_n by_o the_o roman_a church_n they_o easy_o perceive_v they_o not_o to_o be_v essential_a to_o salvation_n their_o main_a scruple_n be_v whether_o in_o this_o separation_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n from_o the_o roman_a a_o lawful_a succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o minister_n be_v retain_v and_o a_o legal_a ordination_n of_o they_o continue_a whether_o they_o may_v live_v and_o die_v confident_o rely_v upon_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o reform_a minister_n for_o consecrate_v absolve_a etc._n etc._n without_o recourse_n to_o a_o romish_a priest_n this_o point_n i_o find_v to_o be_v so_o necessary_a for_o settle_v the_o mind_n of_o many_o in_o this_o waver_a age_n that_o i_o think_v convenient_a to_o examine_v it_o exact_o as_o far_o as_o may_v consist_v with_o the_o brevity_n and_o clearness_n i_o aim_v at_o in_o this_o write_n to_o relate_v the_o reproach_n and_o calumny_n of_o romish_a writer_n against_o our_o ministry_n be_v endless_a and_o impertinent_a the_o short_a and_o ready_a way_n will_v be_v to_o show_v the_o truth_n and_o right_n of_o our_o cause_n by_o positive_a undeniable_a argument_n touch_v the_o lawful_a succession_n and_o due_a ordination_n of_o our_o clergy_n this_o be_v establish_v old_a story_n and_o slander_n will_v fall_v of_o themselves_o who_o will_v not_o think_v it_o impertinent_a in_o i_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o that_o very_a rude_a and_o ridiculous_a fable_n of_o the_o ordination_n of_o parker_n and_o other_o at_o the_o naggs-head_n in_o cheapside_n most_o vigorous_o and_o demonstrative_o refute_v many_o year_n ago_o by_o mr._n mason_n and_o unhappy_o revive_v of_o late_a by_o a_o certain_a gentleman_n to_o his_o own_o great_a shame_n and_o discredit_v of_o his_o cause_n be_v evident_o convict_v of_o imposture_n by_o the_o lord_n bishop_n bramhal_o in_o a_o separate_a treatise_n print_v upon_o that_o subject_a such_o base_a stuff_n as_o this_o if_o suitable_a to_o ear_n possess_v with_o fury_n and_o blind_a passion_n be_v unworthy_a of_o any_o mention_n or_o regard_n among_o serious_a and_o sober_a men._n now_o come_v to_o the_o point_n after_o much_o read_n and_o serious_a consideration_n upon_o the_o matter_n i_o wish_v hearty_o i_o can_v find_v the_o succession_n of_o lawful_a bishop_n so_o clear_a and_o not_o interrupt_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o the_o reformation_n as_o we_o be_v able_a to_o show_v it_o in_o we_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n to_o our_o own_o day_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v my_o present_a work_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o doubt_n occur_v touch_v the_o former_a it_o will_v suffice_v for_o my_o purpose_n to_o demonstrate_v that_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o his_o reign_n when_o no_o doubt_n be_v of_o the_o legality_n of_o our_o clergy_n to_o this_o day_n there_o have_v be_v a_o lawful_a uninterrupted_a succession_n and_o due_a ordination_n of_o bishop_n and_o other_o inferior_a clergy_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o ireland_n if_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o adversary_n will_v avail_v we_o have_v that_o of_o 108._o of_o cudsem_fw-la de_fw-fr desper_n calvini_n causa_fw-la cap._n 11._o pag._n 108._o cudsemius_n who_o come_v into_o england_n the_o year_n 1608._o to_o observe_v the_o state_n of_o our_o church_n and_o the_o order_n of_o our_o university_n concern_v the_o state_n of_o the_o calvinian_a sect_n in_o england_n say_v he_o it_o so_o stand_v that_o either_o it_o may_v endure_v long_o or_o be_v change_v sudden_o or_o in_o a_o trice_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o catholic_a order_n there_o in_o a_o perpetual_a line_n of_o their_o bishop_n and_o the_o lawful_a succession_n of_o pastor_n receive_v from_o the_o church_n for_o the_o honour_n whereof_o we_o use_v to_o call_v the_o english_a calvinist_n by_o a_o mild_a term_n not_o heretic_n but_o schismatic_n bellarmin_n be_v peremptory_a upon_o the_o contrary_a say_n of_o all_o the_o reform_a church_n nostri_fw-la temporis_fw-la haeretici_fw-la neutrum_fw-la habent_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la nec_fw-la ordinationem_fw-la nec_fw-la successionem_fw-la the_o heretic_n of_o our_o time_n have_v neither_o ordination_n nor_o succession_n whatsoever_o be_v say_v of_o other_o reform_a church_n which_o i_o leave_v to_o speak_v for_o themselves_o upon_o this_o point_n we_o have_v clear_a evidence_n to_o show_v the_o falsity_n of_o the_o cardinal_n assertion_n as_o relate_v to_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o more_o criminal_a as_o more_o wilful_a calumny_n of_o anglicanae_n of_o bristol_n harding_n sanders_n kellison_n apud_fw-la masonli●_n 1._o cap._n 2._o vindiciae_fw-la eccle●ae_fw-la anglicanae_n bristol_n harding_n sanders_n owlet_n kellison_n and_o other_o english_a romanist_n who_o malice_n must_v be_v diabolical_a or_o their_o ignorance_n supine_n and_o unexcusable_a in_o slander_v their_o country_n with_o what_o they_o know_v or_o easy_o may_v know_v to_o be_v a_o untruth_n as_o that_o stranger_n cudsemius_n with_o due_a inquiry_n come_v to_o know_v for_o evidence_v this_o point_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n edition_n importance_n papist_n prisoner_n in_o framblingham_n castle_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n relate_v by_o mr._n mason_n 1_o book_n 3._o chap._n of_o his_o english_a edition_n that_o it_o be_v the_o cry_n of_o papist_n to_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n and_o be_v still_o the_o challenge_n of_o many_o among_o they_o if_o you_o can_v justify_v our_o call_n we_o will_v come_v to_o your_o church_n and_o be_v of_o your_o religion_n i_o be_o to_o premise_v first_o as_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n that_o in_o all_o prudence_n i_o be_o to_o rely_v with_o more_o satisfaction_n upon_o the_o public_a authentic_a record_n of_o the_o church_n and_o state_n of_o england_n touch_v the_o transaction_n of_o both_o then_o upon_o the_o report_n of_o declare_v bitter_a enemy_n such_o as_o those_o of_o the_o romish_a faction_n be_v know_v to_o be_v whereas_o it_o can_v but_o appear_v moral_o impossible_a in_o any_o impartial_a judgement_n that_o in_o so_o grave_a and_o wise_a a_o nation_n as_o england_n be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o officer_n of_o church_n and_o state_n shall_v conspire_v and_o agree_v in_o delude_a
any_o person_n depart_v from_o the_o protestant_a church_n to_o the_o romish_a they_o neither_o curse_v nor_o rail_v nor_o plot_n against_o his_o life_n or_o credit_n they_o only_o commiserate_v his_o fall_n and_o pray_v for_o he_o that_o god_n may_v convert_v he_o herein_o appear_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n his_o meekness_n and_o charity_n but_o when_o any_o come_v from_o the_o romish_a church_n to_o the_o protestant_n he_o may_v be_v sure_a to_o have_v curse_n calumny_n affront_n conspiracy_n against_o his_o life_n and_o repute_n follow_v he_o while_o he_o live_v a_o strong_a point_n of_o policy_n apt_a indeed_o to_o terrify_v weak_a mind_n that_o they_o dare_v not_o desert_n their_o quarrel_n but_o a_o policy_n dictate_v not_o by_o that_o wisdom_n that_o be_v from_o above_o peaceable_a gentle_a full_a of_o mercy_n etc._n etc._n jam._n 3.17_o but_o from_o that_o other_o call_v by_o the_o same_o apostle_n earthly_a sensual_a devilish_a v._o 15._o learned_a grave_a and_o civil_a discourse_n about_o religion_n such_o as_o those_o of_o isaac_n casaubon_n with_o cardinal_n peron_n and_o fronto-ducaeus_a of_o peter_n wade_v with_o simon_n episcopius_n and_o the_o like_a i_o shall_v always_o honour_n and_o willing_o entertain_v but_o with_o scold_v i_o do_v not_o love_v to_o spend_v my_o time_n and_o so_o i_o leave_v you_o to_o god_n mr._n i._o e._n to_o direct_v you_o while_o i_o enter_v into_o list_n with_o a_o other_o pretend_v to_o subtlety_n in_o reason_v the_o case_n with_o i_o which_o be_v to_o be_v the_o second_o part_n of_o this_o book_n finis_fw-la true_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a faith_n maintain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o second_o part_n true_a catholic_a &_o apostolic_a faith_n maintain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n part_n ii_o be_v a_o survey_n of_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o book_n entitle_v the_o unerring_a unerreable_a church_n chap._n i._n a_o anatomy_n of_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o genius_n and_o drift_n appear_v in_o his_o dedicatory_a epistle_n to_o my_o lord_n lieutenant_n of_o ireland_n the_o dissection_n of_o anatomy_n discover_v imperfection_n and_o disease_n in_o the_o vital_n and_o other_o exterior_a part_n of_o the_o body_n which_o a_o fair_a skin_n or_o cunning_a dress_n hide_v from_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o common_a beholder_n in_o like_a manner_n a_o scholastic_a examen_fw-la will_n lay_v open_a the_o fault_n and_o corruption_n both_o in_o the_o essential_a and_o ornamental_a part_n of_o a_o discourse_n which_o upon_o a_o transient_a view_n appear_v plausible_a and_o commendable_a unto_o a_o mind_n cloud_v with_o passion_n and_o prejudice_n and_o the_o favour_n of_o a_o espouse_a or_o the_o dislike_n of_o a_o adverse_a party_n the_o writing_n of_o mr._n i._n s._n may_v appear_v without_o blemish_n or_o fault_n but_o a_o incision_n be_v make_v the_o flesh_n and_o the_o skin_n be_v cut_v off_o it_o will_v be_v find_v void_a of_o truth_n in_o the_o proposal_n of_o force_n and_o form_n in_o the_o argumentation_n sincerity_n in_o the_o design_n and_o last_o modesty_n and_o ingenuity_n in_o the_o style_n and_o term_n which_o be_v the_o several_a requisite_n that_o can_v make_v a_o writing_n in_o any_o degree_n worth_a the_o read_n this_o kind_n of_o anatomy_n i_o will_v now_o take_v in_o hand_n and_o by_o no_o other_o art_n then_o plain_a incision_n shall_v with_o truth_n and_o perspicuity_n discover_v the_o fallacy_n and_o gross_a error_n of_o the_o before_o mention_v author_n who_o deliver_v bold_o his_o judgement_n upon_o what_o he_o do_v not_o understand_v or_o if_o he_o be_v not_o real_o ignorant_a yet_o deliver_v unsincere_o and_o misrepresent_v those_o thing_n of_o which_o he_o treat_v all_o which_o i_o shall_v demonstrate_v in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n after_z several_z attack_n make_v by_o i._n e._n n._n n._n and_o other_o upon_o my_o small_a book_n upon_o myself_o and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n come_v up_o confident_o to_o complete_a the_o victory_n mr._n i._o s._n as_o scipio_n africanus_n to_o the_o siege_n of_o numantia_n to_o amend_v the_o error_n of_o the_o precede_a warrior_n and_o to_o appear_v a_o scipio_n indeed_o in_o his_o present_a adventure_n he_o promise_v himself_o so_o to_o beset_v and_o straighten_v we_o as_o to_o make_v we_o burn_v ourselves_o as_o the_o numantine_n do_v to_o prevent_v their_o fall_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o roman_a conqueror_n to_o compass_v this_o magnificent_a design_n he_o propose_v to_o the_o earl_n of_o essex_n lord_n lieutenant_n of_o ireland_n my_o good_a lord_n and_o patron_n in_o the_o dedicatory_a epistle_n of_o his_o book_n to_o his_o excellency_n that_o i_o shall_v be_v burn_v for_o a_o crime_n he_o call_v a_o blasphemy_n wherein_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v involve_v with_o i_o viz._n to_o say_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o now_o it_o stand_v be_v not_o a_o secure_a way_n to_o salvation_n and_o the_o executioner_n of_o this_o severe_a sentence_n pass_v upon_o we_o by_o mr._n i._n s._n must_v not_o be_v the_o inquisitor_n of_o rome_n or_o spain_n but_o our_o own_o king_n prime_a minister_n and_o lieutenant_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o ireland_n he_o allow_v i_o so_o much_o wit_n as_o to_o know_v that_o i_o can_v not_o justify_v my_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o i_o do_v hope_n to_o be_v save_v in_o it_o whereas_o believe_v i_o may_v to_o forsake_v it_o be_v a_o formal_a schism_n thus_o much_o of_o wit_n he_o do_v very_o injurious_o deny_v to_o all_o other_o learned_a protestant_n say_v that_o all_o allow_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v a_o secure_a way_n to_o salvation_n which_o be_v to_o say_v they_o be_v all_o confess_o schismatic_n the_o inference_n be_v but_o too_o clear_a from_o his_o position_n confuse_o deliver_v if_o thus_o order_v all_o man_n that_o separate_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n know_v and_o allow_v it_o to_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n be_v formal_o and_o confess_o schismatic_n all_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v acknowledge_v and_o allow_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n therefore_o all_o of_o they_o be_v confess_o and_o formal_o schismatic_n this_o thesis_n mr._n i._o s._n present_v to_o the_o lord_n lieutenant_n of_o ireland_n to_o win_v his_o favour_n to_o clear_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o this_o discourse_n and_o see_v how_o bold_a and_o blind_a be_v the_o attemt_a of_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o charge_v i_o with_o blasphemy_n see_v the_o occasion_n give_v to_o he_o for_o it_o that_o in_o the_o page_n 226_o of_o my_o book_n according_a to_o the_o first_o edition_n of_o it_o at_o dublin_n rebuke_v their_o ordinary_a vaunt_n wherewith_o they_o delude_v the_o simple_a say_v that_o protestant_n do_v allow_v papist_n may_v be_v save_v but_o papist_n do_v not_o allow_v that_o protestant_n may_v be_v save_v etc._n etc._n i_o deliver_v these_o word_n follow_v but_o in_o neither_o do_v they_o say_v truth_n for_o no_o learned_a protestant_n do_v allow_v the_o popish_a religion_n in_o general_a and_o absolute_o speak_v to_o be_v a_o secure_a way_n to_o salvation_n for_o all_o do_v agree_v in_o affirm_v that_o many_o of_o their_o tenet_n and_o practice_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o salvation_n though_o ignorance_n may_v happy_o excuse_v many_o of_o the_o simple_a sort_n but_o not_o such_o as_o know_v their_o error_n or_o with_o due_a care_n and_o inquiry_n may_v know_v it_o on_o the_o other_o side_n etc._n etc._n this_o have_v nettle_v the_o poor_a man_n to_o rage_n happy_o he_o find_v himself_o to_o be_v of_o those_o who_o know_v or_o with_o due_a enquiry_n may_v know_v the_o damnable_a error_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n now_o i_o desire_v the_o judicious_a reader_n to_o consider_v with_o what_o propriety_n of_o term_n mr._n i._n s._n call_v it_o a_o blasphemy_n in_o i_o to_o relate_v this_o sentiment_n of_o learned_a protestant_n though_o i_o be_v mistake_v to_o call_v such_o a_o mistake_n blasphemy_n be_v extravagant_a language_n three_o kind_n of_o blasphemy_n i_o find_v mention_v by_o aquinas_n and_o other_o schoolman_n 1._o to_o appropriate_v to_o god_n something_o unbeseeming_a 2._o to_o deprive_v he_o of_o a_o perfection_n due_a to_o he_o 3._o to_o attribute_v to_o a_o creature_n any_o of_o god_n property_n to_o which_o of_o these_o class_n will_v mr._n i._o s._n reduce_v my_o mistake_n if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o what_o i_o relate_v of_o learned_a protestant_n that_o one_o of_o those_o who_o sit_v in_o the_o market-place_n sell_v root_n shall_v call_v it_o a_o blasphemy_n in_o another_o of_o her_o trade_n to_o say_v that_o her_o turnip_n come_v out_o of_o flanders_n not_o be_v so_o may_v be_v a_o cause_n of_o laugh_v but_o that_o one_o pretend_v to_o learning_n and_o a_o disputant_n in_o divinity_n shall_v
true_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a faith_n maintain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o andrew_n sall_n doctor_n in_o divinity_n be_v a_o reply_n to_o several_a book_n publish_v under_o the_o name_n of_o j.e._n n.n._n and_o j.s._n against_o his_o declaration_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o against_o the_o motive_n for_o his_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n declare_v in_o a_o print_a sermon_n which_o he_o preach_v in_o dublin_n psal_n 27._o v._n 1._o one_o thing_n have_v i_o desire_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o will_v i_o seek_v after_o that_o i_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n to_o behold_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o inquire_v in_o his_o temple_n print_a at_o the_o theatre_n in_o oxford_n 1676._o imprimatur_fw-la rad._n bathur_v vicecan_a oxon._n june_n 23._o 1676._o to_o his_o excellency_n the_o most_o honourable_a arthur_n earl_n of_o essex_n viscount_n malden_n baron_n capel_n of_o hadham_n lord_n lieutenant_n general_n and_o general_a governor_n of_o his_o majesty_n kingdom_n of_o ireland_n lord_n lieutenant_n of_o the_o county_n of_o hertford_n and_o one_o of_o the_o lord_n of_o his_o majesty_n most_o honourable_a privy_a council_n my_o lord_n here_o i_o present_v to_o your_o excellency_n a_o defence_n of_o the_o true_a primitive_a and_o catholic_a apostolic_a faith_n maintain_v and_o profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n against_o the_o assault_n of_o adversary_n so_o bold_a ●s_n to_o present_v the_o venem_fw-la they_o spit_v against_o it_o one_o of_o they_o to_o a_o most_o illustrious_a person_n of_o the_o court_n of_o england_n another_z to_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o people_n and_o a_o three_o to_o your_o excellency_n representative_a of_o our_o gracious_a sovereign_n in_o ireland_n this_o last_o in_o a_o mockery_n like_o that_o of_o judas_n betray_v our_o saviour_n with_o a_o kiss_n while_o he_o endeavour_v to_o bereave_v your_o excellency_n of_o the_o life_n of_o your_o soul_n tell_v you_o that_o 304._o that_o i._o s._n pag._n 140._o and_o 304._o the_o church_n of_o england_n your_o mother_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n nor_o any_o part_n of_o it_o that_o no_o saint_n which_o be_v to_o say_v no_o just_a man_n or_o true_a servant_n of_o god_n be_v ever_o of_o it_o that_o you_o can_v without_o blasphemy_n allege_v scripture_n for_o your_o tenet_n with_o other_o like_o most_o insolent_a opprobry_n he_o style_v himself_o your_o excellency_n most_o humble_a and_o faithful_a servant_n he_o will_v have_v your_o excellency_n burn_v the_o defender_n of_o your_o church_n for_o offer_v to_o deny_v that_o we_o be_v all_o confess_o schismatic_n when_o our_o adversary_n be_v so_o bold_a and_o active_a it_o be_v much_o our_o concern_n to_o watch_v and_o stand_v on_o our_o guard_n i_o shall_v prove_v undeserving_a the_o gracious_a protection_n and_o favour_n i_o have_v from_o your_o excellency_n enable_v i_o to_o appear_v for_o truth_n if_o in_o this_o exigency_n i_o do_v desert_n the_o defence_n of_o it_o i_o will_v therefore_o b●_n god_n holy_a assistance_n betake_v i_o to_o the_o arm_n o●_n his_o holy_a word_n to_o resist_v the_o insult_a and_o detect_v the_o fraud_n of_o subtle_a and_o violent_a adversary_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_a faith_n appear_v under_o the_o veil_n of_o defender_n of_o it_o and_o endeavour_n to_o show_v with_o unfeigned_a plain_a and_o solid_a proof_n that_o the_o faith_n we_o profess_v in_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o england_n in_o which_o many_o other_o illustrious_a nation_n join_v with_o we_o be_v the_o true_a primitive_a catholic_n apostolic_a faith_n which_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n and_o his_o sacred_a apostle_n teach_v and_o establish_v on_o earth_n that_o our_o adversary_n brand_a we_o with_o heresy_n and_o schism_n be_v themselves_o the_o prime_a cause_n of_o all_o the_o schism_n and_o confusion_n which_o too_o long_o have_v vex_v christianity_n and_o be_v guilty_a of_o as_o many_o heresy_n as_o article_n coin_v by_o they_o in_o after_o age_n which_o i_o hope_v we_o shall_v prove_v to_o be_v opposite_a both_o to_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n in_o which_o opposition_n certain_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o heresy_n do_v consist_v however_o they_o to_o their_o own_o advantage_n will_v make_v man_n believe_v that_o the_o pope_n pleasure_n and_o decree_n must_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o all_o and_o nothing_o heresy_n but_o what_o be_v opposite_a to_o they_o his_o pretend_a infallibility_n supremacy_n vice-godship_n and_o such_o like_a big_a sound_a title_n but_o emty_n as_o here_o will_v appear_v have_v fright_v a_o great_a part_n of_o man_n to_o become_v slave_n unto_o he_o the_o invention_n of_o purgatory_n indulgence_n remission_n and_o other_o engine_n of_o lucre_n have_v increase_v his_o mean_n to_o maintain_v his_o usurp_a power_n my_o work_n will_v be_v to_o show_v with_o plainess_n of_o reason_n suitable_a to_o the_o sincerity_n of_o my_o intention_n and_o apposite_a to_o overthrow_v their_o sophistry_n that_o the_o foremention_v tenet_n of_o the_o romish_a faction_n fuel_n of_o all_o the_o combustion_n of_o christendom_n be_v not_o from_o above_o convey_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o conceive_v in_o the_o mint_n of_o earthly_a passion_n for_o the_o wisdom_n that_o be_v from_o above_o be_v first_o pure_a then_o peaceable_a gentle_a and_o easy_a to_o be_v entreat_v full_a of_o mercy_n and_o good_a fruit_n without_o partiality_n and_o without_o hypocrisy_n jam._n 3.17_o such_o be_v not_o the_o wisdom_n teach_v by_o the_o roman_a court_n or_o church_n if_o they_o will_v have_v it_o so_o call_v it_o be_v not_o pure_a but_o corrupt_v with_o many_o pernicious_a error_n as_o will_v appear_v in_o this_o treatise_n it_o be_v not_o peaceable_a but_o contentious_a not_o easy_a to_o be_v entreat_v but_o obstinate_a against_o all_o reasonable_a overture_n of_o peace_n against_o the_o continual_a and_o ardent_a desire_n of_o all_o good_a christian_n for_o a_o council_n true_o ecumenical_a and_o free_a wherein_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o faction_n as_o other_o may_v sit_v with_o like_a freedom_n and_o indifferency_n to_o judge_n and_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o ●ord_n of_o god_n and_o rule_n of_o christian_a sincerity_n as_o practise_v in_o those_o pure_a age_n of_o primitive_a christianity_n nothing_o will_v satisfy_v they_o but_o a_o blind_a obedience_n and_o entire_a submission_n to_o their_o will_n far_o be_v they_o from_o be_v full_a of_o mercy_n their_o thought_n be_v not_o of_o peace_n but_o of_o death_n and_o destruction_n to_o all_o their_o fellow_n christian_n that_o will_v not_o be_v of_o their_o party_n all_o this_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o demonstrate_v by_o a_o close_a and_o serious_a examen_fw-la of_o the_o particular_n conduce_v to_o the_o discovery_n thereof_o with_o no_o other_o design_n then_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n with_o no_o prejudice_n or_o passion_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o with_o a_o hearty_a desire_n of_o the_o happiness_n of_o it_o that_o set_v aside_o all_o profane_a policy_n it_o may_v return_v to_o that_o primitive_a purity_n and_o lustre_n it_o have_v when_o the_o faith_n of_o it_o be_v praise_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n rom._n 1.8_o and_o so_o join_v heart_n and_o hand_n with_o other_o christian_n to_o the_o edification_n and_o thereby_o to_o to_o the_o conversion_n of_o infidel_n and_o to_o the_o increase_n and_o splendour_n of_o christianity_n this_o be_v my_o real_a intention_n as_o well_o as_o the_o hearty_a wish_n of_o all_o good_a man_n in_o the_o reform_a church_n sure_o i_o be_o that_o my_o study_n and_o endeavour_n to_o this_o end_n will_v be_v protect_v and_o countenance_v by_o your_o excellency_n who_o happiness_n eternal_a and_o temporal_a be_v the_o hearty_a and_o continual_a prayer_n of_o your_o excellency_n most_o devote_v servant_n and_o chaplain_n andrew_n sall_n the_o preface_n saint_n john_n tell_v we_o that_o all_o the_o world_n lie_v in_o wickedness_n 1_o jo._n c._n 5._o v._n 19_o that_o hatred_n envy_n malice_n avarice_n and_o ambition_n be_v the_o most_o common_a practise_n of_o man_n if_o so_o who_o can_v expect_v a_o general_a applause_n of_o his_o action_n expose_v to_o public_a view_n what_o ●eed_v tho_o in_o itself_o just_a and_o commendable_a do_v ever_o ●●ease_v a_o bitter_a enemy_n what_o elegancy_n of_o speech_n what_o strength_n of_o reason_n can_v ever_o sound_v well_o in_o the_o ear_n of_o ●im_n who_o cause_n they_o oppose_v and_o if_o envy_n reign●●th_v can_v that_o black_a passion_n ever_o omit_v to_o lessen_v ●he_v credit_n of_o such_o as_o be_v applaud_v but_o if_o other_o pretend_v to_o be_v wit_n now_o call_v so_o it_o be_v not_o for_o they_o ●o_o let_v any_o action_n pass_v without_o a_o censure_n or_o without_o ●inding_v in_o it_o a_o
the_o canon_n and_o rite_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n with_o thomas_n cranmer_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n they_o begin_v their_o quarrel_n against_o he_o the_o king_n and_o clergy_n of_o england_n becan_n insult_v thus_o legitimè_fw-la consecrati_fw-la non_fw-la estis_fw-la a_o quo_fw-la enim_fw-la a_o à_fw-la rege_fw-la at_o be_v consecrandi_fw-la potestatem_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la an_fw-mi ab_fw-la episcopo_fw-la cantuariensi_fw-la vel_fw-la aliquo_fw-la simili_fw-la ne_o id_fw-la quidem_fw-la nam_fw-la thomas_n cranmerus_n qui_fw-la sub_fw-la hemico_fw-la 8_o cantuariensem_fw-la episcopatum_fw-la obtinuit_fw-la non_fw-la fuit_fw-la consecratus_fw-la ab_fw-la ullo_fw-la episcopo_fw-la sed_fw-la à_fw-la solo_fw-la rege_fw-la intrusus_fw-la &_o designatus_fw-la igitur_fw-la quotquot_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la postea_fw-la consceratisunt_fw-la non_fw-la legitime_fw-la sed_fw-la ex_fw-la praesumtione_fw-la consecrati_fw-la sunt_fw-la you_o be_v not_o lawful_o consecrate_v for_o by_o who_o be_v you_o whether_o by_o the_o king_n but_o he_o have_v not_o power_n to_o consecrate_v or_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o canterbury_n or_o some_o other_o such_o neither_o that_o true_o for_o thomas_n cranmer_n who_o under_z king_n henry_n the_o eight_o obtain_v the_o bishopric_n of_o canterbury_n be_v not_o consecrate_v by_o any_o bishop_n but_o intrude_v and_o design_v by_o the_o king_n alone_o therefore_o as_o many_o as_o be_v afterward_o consecrate_v by_o he_o be_v not_o consecrate_v lawful_o but_o by_o presumption_n i_o can_v but_o note_v becan_n disingenuity_n in_o delude_v thus_o his_o reader_n as_o if_o he_o will_v have_v he_o believe_v that_o the_o king_n of_o england_n do_v take_v upon_o they_o to_o consecrate_v bishop_n themselves_o or_o to_o thrust_v into_o the_o government_n of_o church_n man_n not_o consecrate_v contrary_a to_o what_o he_o know_v well_o or_o may_v easy_o know_v to_o be_v true_a have_v pope_n cardinal_n priest_n and_o jesuit_n to_o a●●ertain_v he_o of_o it_o such_o as_o be_v clement_n the_o seven_o paul_n the_o four_o cardinal_z allen_n parson_n kellison_n who_o manifold_a testimony_n of_o cranmer_n to_o have_v be_v a_o true_a bishop_n mason_n relate_v lib._n 2._o cap._n 7._o add_v for_o far_a evidence_n this_o follow_a testimony_n of_o the_o time_n place_n and_o person_n ordain_v he_o out_o of_o the_o public_a record_n thomas_n cranmerus_fw-la consecratus_fw-la 30._o martij_fw-la 1533._o 24._o hen._n à_fw-fr joh._n lincolniensi_fw-la joh._n exoniensi_fw-la hen._n asaphensi_fw-la against_o all_o these_o evidence_n henry_n fitz_n symon●_n take_v up_o the_o cudgil_n in_o defence_n of_o becan_n assertion_n that_o cranmer_n be_v not_o consecrate_v by_o any_o bishop_n but_o a_o mere_a layman_n intrude_v upon_o that_o see_v of_o canterbury_n by_o henry_n the_o eight_o his_o sole_a will_n this_o he_o promise_v to_o demonstrate_v à_fw-la gravissimorum_fw-la totius_fw-la gentis_fw-la authorum_fw-la monumentis_fw-la &_o consularibus_fw-la act_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o most_o grave_a author_n of_o the_o nation_n and_o public_a act_n of_o parliament_n see_v these_o big_a word_n and_o know_v upon_o what_o subject_n i_o can_v not_o but_o sigh_n and_o grieve_v remember_v how_o these_o rhetorician_n do_v delude_v poor_a credulous_a people_n with_o such_o swell_a phrase_n sound_v high_a in_o the_o ear_n of_o boy_n and_o woman_n and_o of_o womanish_a weak_a man_n whereas_o be_v touch_v close_o they_o be_v find_v to_o be_v no_o better_o than_o a_o bubble_n float_v pompous_o and_o contain_v nought_o but_o wind_n where_o he_o promise_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o grave_a author_n of_o the_o nation_n in_o favour_n of_o his_o pretention_n he_o only_o bring_v one_o testimony_n and_o of_o who_o of_o some_o impartial_a writer_n no_o but_o of_o 296._o of_o saunder_n de_fw-fr schism_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 296._o sander_n the_o most_o passionate_a and_o bitter_a enemy_n of_o the_o reform_a clergy_n that_o can_v be_v name_v but_o even_o his_o testimony_n how_o much_o to_o fitz_n simons_n purpose_n he_o relate_v these_o word_n of_o he_o henricus_fw-la 8._o radix_fw-la peccati_fw-la cum_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la &_o sede_fw-la apostolica_fw-la regnum_fw-la suum_fw-la divisisset_fw-la decrevit_fw-la ne_fw-la quisquam_fw-la electus_fw-la in_o episcopum_fw-la bullas_fw-la pontificias_fw-la vel_fw-la mandatum_fw-la apostolicum_fw-la de_fw-la consecratione_fw-la requireret_fw-la sed_fw-la regium_fw-la tantum_fw-la diploma_fw-la afferret_fw-la henry_n the_o e●ghth_o the_o source_n of_o evil_n have_v separate_v his_o kingdom_n from_o the_o church_n and_o from_o the_o see_v apostolic_a have_v decree_v that_o no_o bishop_n elect_v shall_v look_v for_o bull_n from_o the_o pope_n for_o his_o consecration_n but_o only_o shall_v bring_v the_o king_n patent_n and_o here_o fitz_n symons_n stop_v fraudulent_o pretend_v his_o unskilful_a reader_n shall_v understand_v by_o those_o word_n that_o the_o king_n do_v give_v the_o title_n of_o bishop_n without_o any_o consecration_n but_o the_o word_n follow_v of_o sanders_n do_v overthrow_v his_o purpose_n which_o run_v thus_o sed_fw-la regium_fw-la tantum_fw-la diploma_fw-la afferret_fw-la secundum_fw-la quod_fw-la à_fw-la tribus_fw-la episcopis_fw-la cum_fw-la consensu_fw-la metropolitae_fw-la ordinatus_fw-la jubebatur_fw-la lege_fw-la comitiorum_fw-la facta_fw-la ad_fw-la imitationem_fw-la antiquorum_fw-la canonum_fw-la esse_fw-la verus_fw-la episcopus_fw-la nec_fw-la alio_fw-la modo_fw-la ordinatum_fw-la pro_fw-la episcopo_fw-la agnosci_fw-la oportere_fw-la that_o he_o shall_v bring_v the_o king_n mandat_fw-la according_a to_o which_o the_o person_n ordain_v by_o three_o bishop_n with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o metropolitan_a be_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n make_v in_o imitation_n of_o ancient_a canon_n declare_v to_o be_v a_o true_a bishop_n and_o that_o any_o person_n otherwise_o ordain_v shall_v not_o be_v take_v for_o a_o bishop_n and_o be_v this_o to_o say_v that_o henry_n the_o eight_o shall_v give_v the_o title_n of_o bishop_n to_o and_o intrude_v upon_o church_n person_n without_o any_o consecration_n true_o this_o defence_n of_o becan_n by_o fitz_n symons_n be_v like_o the_o cause_n defend_v both_o guilty_a of_o fraud_n and_o disingenuity_n so_o as_o we_o may_v call_v it_o malae_fw-la causae_fw-la pejus_fw-la patrocinium_fw-la of_o a_o bad_a cause_n a_o worse_a defence_n 30._o defence_n ke●lison_n in_o replic_a contra_fw-la doct._n sut._n p._n 30._o kellison_n be_v more_o ingenious_a say_v thus_o cranmerum_fw-la verè_fw-la ordinatum_fw-la non_fw-la nego_fw-la quia_fw-la ab_fw-la episcopis_fw-la catholicis_fw-la munus_fw-la consecrationis_fw-la accepit_fw-la ita_fw-la &_o vixisse_fw-la eum_fw-la &_o mortuum_fw-la esse_fw-la verum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la fateor_fw-la i_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o cranmer_n be_v true_o ordain_v have_v receive_v his_o ordination_n from_o catholic_a bishop_n so_o as_o i_o confess_v he_o live_v and_o die_v a_o true_a bishop_n let_v now_o the_o author_n of_o britonomachy_n i_o mean_v fitz_n symons_n come_v and_o reconcile_v this_o piece_n of_o romanomachy_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n be_v it_o conclude_v that_o their_o testimony_n against_o cranmer_n be_v like_o those_o of_o the_o false_a witness_n against_o christ_n which_o do_v not_o agree_v together_o mark_v fourteen_o 56._o and_o let_v that_o bless_a martyr_n canonize_v by_o christ_n for_o such_o where_o he_o declare_v bless_v they_o that_o suffer_v persecution_n for_o justice_n as_o cranmer_n do_v for_o do_v justice_n to_o his_o king_n and_o country_n in_o maintain_v their_o right_n against_o the_o tyrannical_a usurpation_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n let_v he_o i_o say_v enjoy_v in_o glory_n the_o indelible_a character_n of_o bishop_n which_o all_o the_o malice_n of_o his_o adversary_n will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o take_v from_o he_o and_o let_v their_o calumny_n against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v confound_v wherewith_o they_o pretend_v the_o ordination_n of_o our_o clergy_n to_o have_v be_v vitiate_v in_o that_o of_o cranmer_n by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o all_o bishop_n make_v in_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o his_o reign_n be_v true_a and_o lawful_a bishop_n as_o be_v consecrate_v by_o three_o bishop_n and_o according_a to_o the_o accustom_a rite_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n it_o be_v 20._o be_v 25._o henr._n 8._o c._n 20._o enact_v then_o that_o the_o consecration_n shall_v be_v solemnize_v with_o all_o due_a circumstance_n and_o moreover_o that_o the_o consecrator_n shall_v give_v to_o the_o consecrate_a all_o benediction_n ceremony_n and_o thing_n requisite_a for_o the_o same_o and_o if_o thing_n essential_a be_v abolish_v or_o omit_v certain_o sander_n speak_v purposely_o of_o this_o point_n will_v not_o have_v conceal_v it_o but_o he_o rather_o say_v plain_o 29●_n plain_o sanders_n de_fw-fr schism_n lib._n 3._o p._n 29●_n it_o be_v king_n henry_n will_n that_o the_o ceremony_n and_o solemn_a unction_n shall_v as_o yet_o be_v use_v in_o episcopal_a consecration_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o 2._o the_o ●_o mariae_fw-la sess_v 2._o c._n 2._o statute_n of_o qu._n mary_n put_v the_o matter_n out_o of_o all_o doubt_n enact_v that_o all_o such_o divine_a service_n and_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n
one_o passionate_o bend_v to_o extol_v st._n john_n the_o evangelist_n above_o st._n john_n baptist_n the_o other_o prefer_v with_o no_o less_o animosity_n the_o baptist_n before_o the_o evangelist_n our_o preacher_n before_o mention_v to_o pleasure_v the_o nun_n of_o the_o evangelist_n deliver_v that_o prodigious_a paradox_n which_o in_o english_a may_v be_v turn_v thus_o exceed_v great_a be_v the_o excellency_n of_o john_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o be_v the_o belove_a it_o be_v great_a than_o that_o of_o a_o redeemer_n even_o in_o god_n it_o be_v so_o great_a as_o to_o be_v god_n in_o trinity_n and_o unity_n nay_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n go_v now_o and_o compare_v this_o piece_n of_o doctrine_n with_o any_o of_o those_o you_o relate_v of_o the_o protestant_a writer_n and_o if_o it_o have_v not_o out_o go_v they_o all_o add_v to_o it_o what_o follow_v be_v advertise_v by_o the_o inquisitor_n general_a of_o spain_n at_o the_o second_o time_n he_o send_v i_o a_o licence_n for_o read_v prohibit_v book_n that_o i_o have_v not_o give_v he_o account_v of_o what_o censurable_a proposition_n i_o may_v have_v light_v upon_o in_o my_o reading_n as_o he_o have_v charge_v i_o to_o do_v in_o the_o instrument_n of_o such_o a_o licence_n which_o he_o have_v send_v i_o the_o year_n before_o i_o send_v to_o he_o a_o list_n of_o some_o perverse_a doctrine_n i_o see_v in_o book_n approve_v and_o in_o much_o use_n among_o themselves_o for_o protestant_a book_n i_o can_v find_v none_o to_o give_v account_n of_o among_o which_o be_v the_o three_o proposition_n follow_v prefix_v for_o title_n to_o so_o many_o moral_a discourse_n of_o leander_n de_fw-fr murcia_n in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o book_n of_o esther_n the_o first_o of_o which_o go_v thus_o adeo_fw-la essicax_n est_fw-la mortis_fw-la memoria_fw-la ad_fw-la reducendos_fw-la in_o meliorem_fw-la frugem_fw-la homines_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la ipsi_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la deus_fw-la open_fw-mi max._n proposita_fw-la ante_fw-la oculos_fw-la morte_fw-la in_o meliora_fw-la contendat_fw-la the_o memory_n of_o death_n be_v so_o powerful_a to_o reduce_v man_n unto_o a_o better_a life_n that_o not_o only_o they_o but_o even_o god_n almighty_a himself_o lay_v death_n before_o his_o eye_n become_v better_a the_o second_o run_v thus_o etiam_fw-la daemon_n morte_fw-la ante_fw-la oculos_fw-la constituta_fw-la contendit_fw-la in_o meliora_fw-la even_o the_o devil_n look_v upon_o death_n mend_v himself_o the_o three_o proposition_n be_v this_o tanta_fw-la dilectione_n prosecutus_fw-la est_fw-la filius_fw-la dei_fw-la homines_fw-la ut_fw-la pro_fw-la ipsis_fw-la quasi_fw-la insanire_fw-la videatur_fw-la the_o son_n of_o god_n his_o love_n to_o man_n have_v be_v so_o great_a that_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v mad_a for_o they_o and_o if_o thus_o it_o go_v even_o in_o book_n current_a and_o approve_a among_o you_o what_o if_o i_o do_v relate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o other_o censure_v and_o prohibit_v by_o your_o inquisition_n as_o you_o and_o your_o party_n frequent_o do_v upbraid_v our_o church_n with_o erroneous_a doctrine_n of_o particular_a man_n which_o we_o do_v utter_o detest_v and_o our_o learned_a man_n do_v vigorous_o oppose_v by_o word_n and_o pen_n in_o pulpit_n book_n and_o school_n chap._n xvii_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n vindicate_v from_o the_o slanderous_a aspersion_n of_o n._n n._n and_o other_o romanist_n it_o be_v very_o usual_a with_o the_o zelots_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n to_o make_v henry_n the_o eight_o sole_a author_n of_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o english_a church_n load_v that_o prince_n with_o bitter_a invective_n and_o odious_a report_n thereby_o to_o render_v the_o reformation_n contemptible_a to_o which_o n._n n._n in_o the_o 14._o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n add_v a_o slanderous_a relation_n of_o the_o life_n and_o behaviour_n of_o some_o monk_n and_o friar_n come_v out_o of_o germany_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o have_v be_v the_o author_n and_o contriver_n of_o the_o 39_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o will_v not_o repete_fw-la the_o many_o idle_a story_n he_o tell_v of_o they_o more_o fit_a to_o divertise_v simple_a person_n of_o his_o own_o credulity_n in_o a_o winter_n night_n at_o the_o fire_n then_o to_o work_v on_o serious_a and_o know_a men._n i_o have_v choose_v for_o a_o more_o short_a and_o solid_a way_n rather_o to_o justify_v our_o cause_n with_o positive_a argument_n then_o to_o follow_v our_o adversary_n in_o sift_v foppery_n to_o this_o purpose_n i_o will_v lay_v for_o foundation_n of_o my_o present_a discourse_n that_o the_o whole_a frame_n of_o the_o reformation_n stand_v upon_o two_o point_n whereof_o the_o first_o and_o more_o resent_v at_o rome_n be_v the_o deny_v of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o the_o withdraw_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o subjection_n to_o he_o the_o second_o be_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o liturgy_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o say_a church_n from_o error_n and_o corruption_n introduce_v in_o it_o as_o for_o the_o first_o it_o be_v clear_a and_o evident_a that_o neither_o henry_n the_o 8._o nor_o luther_n nor_o calvin_n nor_o any_o of_o those_o stranger_n mention_v by_o n._n n._n be_v author_n or_o causer_n of_o the_o freedom_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n this_o freedom_n be_v by_o its_o own_o right_a inherent_a in_o it_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o its_o christianity_n however_o king_n henry_n his_o valour_n and_o resolution_n break_v off_o effectual_o the_o tyrannical_a usurpation_n of_o rome_n which_o long_a time_n do_v oppress_v the_o english_a church_n and_o nation_n notwithstanding_o their_o continual_a reluctancy_n and_o complaint_n against_o those_o romish_a extortion_n far_o be_v those_o good_a christian_n that_o inhabit_v england_n before_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a from_z giving_z or_o own_v obedience_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o so_o when_o augustin_n come_v hither_o about_o the_o year_n 590_o and_o demand_v their_o obedience_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o abbot_n of_o bangor_n return_v he_o answer_v 108._o answer_v council_n spelm._n p._n 108._o that_o they_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o every_o godly_a christian_a to_o love_v every_o one_o in_o his_o degree_n in_o charity_n to_o help_v they_o in_o word_n and_o deed_n to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o other_o obedience_n than_o this_o they_o do_v not_o know_v due_a to_o he_o who_o he_o name_v to_o be_v pope_n nor_o to_o be_v father_n of_o father_n and_o if_o augustin_n do_v pretend_v to_o such_o a_o subjection_n from_o england_n to_o rome_n as_o the_o pope_n of_o it_o now_o will_v have_v certain_o he_o exceed_v his_o commission_n for_o st._n gregory_n that_o send_v he_o never_o pretend_v to_o that_o supremacy_n which_o his_o successor_n do_v aspire_v to_o as_o we_o shall_v demonstrate_v in_o the_o 15_o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n and_o how_o far_o he_o be_v from_o pretend_v england_n to_o be_v of_o his_o jurisdiction_n may_v appear_v by_o what_o be_v relate_v of_o he_o that_o be_v tell_v certain_a child_n be_v de_fw-la britannica_fw-la insula_fw-la he_o do_v not_o know_v whether_o the_o country_n be_v christian_n or_o pagan_n the_o sili●●_n and_o voluntary_a respect_n and_o obedience_n which_o the_o holiness_n and_o learning_n of_o gregory_n and_o some_o other_o good_a pope_n gain_v among_o the_o english_a give_v occasion_n to_o other_o follow_v of_o less_o merit_n to_o pretend_v to_o a_o right_a to_o such_o obedience_n which_o be_v perceive_v by_o the_o king_n they_o prohibit_v all_o appeal_n to_o rome_n and_o the_o come_n of_o legate_n thence_o and_o so_o much_o as_o the_o receive_n of_o letter_n without_o the_o king_n licence_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o paschalis_n the_o second_o his_o letter_n to_o henry_n the_o first_o expostulate_v with_o he_o about_o this_o particular_a in_o these_o word_n sedis_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la nuncii_fw-la vel_fw-la literae_fw-la praeter_fw-la jussum_fw-la regiae_fw-la majestatis_fw-la nullam_fw-la in_o potestate_fw-la tua_fw-la susceptionem_fw-la aut_fw-la aditum_fw-la promerentur_fw-la nullus_fw-la inde_fw-la clamour_n nullum_fw-la inde_fw-la judicium_fw-la ad_fw-la sedem_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la destinantur_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o happen_v in_o a_o 1114._o notwithstanding_o the_o king_n stand_v upon_o his_o resolution_n so_o as_o in_o the_o year_n follow_v 1119_o send_v his_o bishop_n to_o a_o council_n hold_v by_o callixtus_n the_o 2._o at_o rheims_n at_o their_o depart_n he_o give_v they_o instruction_n not_o to_o complain_v of_o each_o other_o because_o himself_o will_v right_v each_o of_o they_o at_o home_n that_o they_o greg._n they_o joh_n diacon_n l._n 1._o c._n 21._o vita_fw-la greg._n shall_v nolite_fw-la shall_v orderi_fw-la vital_a be_v p._n 857._o item_fw-la &_o dominum_fw-la
allege_v that_o that_o he_o do_v not_o mean_a he_o can_v carry_v so_o much_o alone_o but_o he_o and_o a_o horse_n with_o he_o such_o quibble_n as_o these_o be_v more_o become_a mr._n s._n then_o s._n paul_n and_o so_o he_o may_v keep_v they_o for_o himself_o and_o not_o father_n they_o upon_o the_o great_a apostle_n further_o he_o proceed_v to_o oppose_v st_n paul_n say_v that_o when_o he_o write_v that_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n the_o whole_a canon_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o complete_v and_o only_o the_o whole_a canon_n and_o no_o part_n of_o it_o can_v be_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o our_o instruction_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n that_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o can_v be_v a_o sufficient_a mean_n for_o instruct_v we_o to_o salvation_n herein_o our_o sophister_n be_v twice_o impious_a first_o in_o tax_v the_o great_a apostle_n assertion_n with_o untruth_n next_o that_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n deliver_v to_o man_n in_o each_o time_n for_o their_o instruction_n to_o salvation_n shall_v not_o be_v complete_a and_o sufficient_a by_o this_o it_o appear_v well_o how_o much_o a_o stranger_n this_o man_n be_v to_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o divine_n who_o affirm_v that_o in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v contain_v all_o necessary_a verity_n to_o be_v believe_v for_o salvation_n and_o in_o the_o ten_o commandment_n all_o duty_n to_o be_v perform_v of_o necessity_n to_o the_o same_o end_n and_o may_v not_o the_o creed_n and_o ten_o commandment_n be_v know_v without_o a_o knowledge_n of_o the_o whole_a canon_n of_o scripture_n his_o boldness_n be_v prodigious_a in_o assert_v extravagance_n without_o exhibit_v any_o proof_n but_o his_o bare_a ipse_fw-la dixit_fw-la pythagoras-wise_a find_v i_o say_v i_o be_v not_o fit_a for_o p●thagoras_n his_o school_n where_o ipse_fw-la dixit_fw-la be_v the_o rule_n and_o man_n will_v not_o give_v reason_n for_o what_o they_o teach_v he_o oppose_v that_o if_o i_o be_o to_o expect_v reason_n for_o what_o i_o believe_v i_o be_o not_o fit_a for_o christ_n school_n nor_o learning_n from_o scripture_n which_o afford_v nothing_o but_o a_o bare_a ipse_fw-la dixit_fw-la but_o if_o the_o man_n have_v any_o ingenuity_n in_o he_o he_o will_v spare_v this_o objection_n see_v it_o prevent_v in_o the_o 18._o page_n of_o my_o discourse_n where_o i_o acknowledge_v with_o thanksgiving_n to_o god_n that_o i_o never_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o holy_a scripture_n nor_o of_o the_o creed_n propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o catholic_a apostolic_a church_n and_o dictate_v by_o god_n almighty_a worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v without_o examen_fw-la not_o so_o pythagoras_n nor_o the_o pope_n chap._n v._o mr._n s._n his_o prolix_a excursion_n about_o the_o pope_n authority_n requisite_a to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a scripture_n declare_v to_o be_v impertinent_a and_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n clear_v from_o the_o confusion_n he_o put_v upon_o it_o our_o adversary_n find_v the_o pope_n infallibility_n to_o be_v a_o expression_n odious_a and_o ridiculous_a to_o all_o know_a man_n and_o whereof_o even_o the_o sober_a part_n of_o 3_o of_o vid._n cress_n in_o exomologesi_fw-la cap_n 4._o sect._n 3_o romanist_n grow_v ashamed_a endeavour_n to_o serve_v we_o up_o the_o same_o dish_n under_o another_o dress_n calling_z it_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a and_o if_o therein_o he_o do_v speak_v proper_o or_o sincere_o he_o will_v have_v less_o opposition_n from_o we_o but_o if_o you_o do_v inquire_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o church_n universal_a he_o tell_v you_o it_o be_v the_o congregation_n subject_a to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n exclude_v all_o other_o man_n and_o particular_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o be_v any_o part_n of_o that_o his_o universal_a church_n the_o say_a congregation_n subject_a to_o the_o pope_n whether_o diffusive_a or_o representative_a in_o a_o general_a council_n depend_v upon_o the_o pope_n and_o confirm_v by_o he_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v infallible_a and_o whatever_o i_o allege_v against_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o think_v to_o elude_v by_o pretend_v i_o speak_v of_o the_o particular_a diocese_n of_o rome_n a_o gross_a misunderstanding_n or_o wilful_a misrepresentation_n of_o my_o meaning_n for_o which_o i_o never_o give_v any_o ground_n in_o my_o writing_n or_o discourse_n he_o be_v to_o know_v i_o speak_v in_o proper_a term_n as_o use_v among_o learned_a man_n speak_v upon_o this_o subject_n take_v the_o roman_a church_n for_o the_o party_n follow_v the_o pope_n faction_n wheresoever_o extant_a whether_o congregat_v or_o disperse_v prescind_v from_o his_o altercation_n with_o the_o rest_n or_o any_o they_o have_v among_o themselves_o for_o both_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n agree_v in_o make_v that_o infallibility_n depend_v ultimate_o upon_o the_o pope_n authority_n we_o may_v well_o represent_v their_o assertion_n as_o opposite_a to_o the_o sentiment_n of_o all_o other_o christian_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n contra_fw-la infallibility_n that_o all_o be_v bottom_v upon_o the_o pope_n authority_n bellarmin_n declare_v say_v totam_fw-la firmitatem_fw-la conciliorum_fw-la legitimorum_fw-la esse_fw-la á_z pontifice_fw-la non-partim_a à_fw-la pontifice_fw-la partim_fw-la à_fw-la concilio_fw-la lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr rom._n pon._n c._n 3._o sect_n at_o contra_fw-la the_o term_n and_o state_n of_o the_o question_n be_v thus_o clear_v it_o follow_v to_o declare_v how_o impertinent_a his_o prolix_a excursion_n and_o vain_a ostentation_n be_v in_o tell_v we_o the_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n that_o be_v in_o different_a time_n about_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o the_o difficulty_n of_o ascertain_v we_o which_o be_v the_o true_a one_o this_o be_v a_o old_a device_n of_o those_o of_o his_o faction_n to_o decline_v the_o main_a controversy_n in_o hand_n wherein_o they_o still_o betray_v the_o weakness_n of_o their_o cause_n they_o and_o he_o shall_v remember_v the_o point_v controvert_v be_v among_o party_n that_o agree_v in_o reverence_v the_o bible_n for_o the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n and_o if_o he_o think_v the_o part_n of_o it_o receive_v for_o canonical_a by_o common_a consent_n will_v not_o suffice_v for_o end_v our_o controversy_n we_o admit_v willing_o st._n augustins_n rule_v for_o clear_v the_o difficulty_n touch_v particular_a book_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o tradition_n of_o it_o as_o describe_v by_o lirinensis_n quod_fw-la semper_fw-la quod_fw-la ubique_fw-la quod_fw-la apud_fw-la omnes_fw-la what_o be_v in_o all_o time_n in_o all_o place_n and_o by_o all_o christian_n deliver_v that_o we_o take_v for_o a_o true_a apostolic_a tradition_n and_o to_o it_o we_o resolve_v to_o stand_v or_o fall_v as_o well_o for_o discern_v canonical_a scripture_n as_o for_o understand_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o it_o if_o mr._n s._n do_v take_v church_n and_o tradition_n in_o the_o sense_n that_o the_o holy_a father_n do_v and_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v he_o will_v find_v in_o we_o all_o due_a reverence_n to_o those_o sacred_a fountain_n of_o christian_a verity_n but_o to_o call_v church_n universal_a the_o faction_n adhere_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o christian_n be_v a_o presumption_n like_o that_o of_o the_o turk_n in_o call_v himself_o king_n of_o king_n and_o emperor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n such_o as_o be_v vassal_n to_o he_o may_v revere_v that_o call_n other_o do_v laugh_v at_o it_o but_o we_o do_v not_o find_v the_o turk_n to_o have_v pla●ed_v the_o sool_n so_o far_o as_o to_o take_v that_o his_o assume_v title_n as_o grant_v by_o other_o prince_n independ_v upon_o he_o or_o to_o allege_v it_o for_o ground_n of_o his_o pretension_n with_o they_o this_o be_v mr._n s._n his_o folly_n in_o take_v for_o grant_v in_o his_o debate_n with_o we_o that_o the_o romish_a faction_n be_v the_o catholic_a universal_a church_n so_o great_a a_o intruder_n upon_o dispute_n shall_v learn_v that_o rule_n of_o disputant_n quoth_v gratis_o dicitur_fw-la gratis_o negatur_fw-la what_o be_v bare_o say_v without_o proof_n be_v sufficient_o refute_v with_o a_o bare_a denial_n this_o alone_a well_o consider_v will_v suffice_v to_o overthrow_v man_n chapter_n of_o mr._n s._n his_o book_n what_o make_v he_o spend_v time_n in_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o difficulty_n of_o find_v out_o which_o be_v true_a scripture_n the_o rule_n true_o infallible_a of_o our_o belief_n when_o he_o see_v we_o thus_o ascertain_v of_o it_o why_o do_v he_o trouble_v we_o with_o speak_v of_o a_o criterion_n or_o beam_n of_o light_n pretend_v by_o fanatic_o confess_v at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o to_o be_v explode_v by_o protestant_n be_v it_o to_o make_v his_o book_n swell_v but_o find_v he_o can_v hide_v scripture_n from_o we_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o be_v behold_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o true_a
if_o any_o such_o thing_n there_o be_v i_o humble_o beg_v of_o you_o to_o acquaint_v i_o therewith_o by_o your_o letter_n commend_v to_o the_o post_n office_n in_o dundalk_n and_o do_v engage_v my_o word_n to_o you_o that_o you_o shall_v have_v all_o satisfaction_n imaginable_a that_o lie_v in_o my_o power_n and_o that_o you_o shall_v find_v i_o always_o ready_a to_o render_v you_o any_o service_n that_o may_v be_v expect_v from_o love_a sir_n your_o ever_o assure_a john_n free_a alias_o s._n r._n to_o this_o letter_n i_o answer_v immediate_o in_o term_n of_o no_o less_o kindness_n and_o sincere_a amity_n that_o i_o do_v and_o will_v declare_v wheresoever_o he_o be_v concern_v that_o neither_o he_o nor_o any_o other_o of_o his_o society_n do_v ever_o give_v i_o any_o discontent_n which_o may_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o resolution_n i_o be_v upon_o that_o my_o dissatisfaction_n be_v of_o a_o high_a nature_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a error_n to_o imagine_v that_o any_o dislike_n of_o particular_a person_n shall_v work_v in_o i_o a_o alteration_n of_o this_o kind_n it_o be_v well_o know_v how_o easy_o i_o may_v remedy_v any_o discontent_n in_o ireland_n by_o repair_v to_o the_o place_n of_o my_o former_a habitation_n and_o employment_n in_o spain_n and_o how_o good_a a_o reception_n i_o be_v to_o expect_v there_o even_o in_o that_o season_n as_o to_o he_o be_v well_o know_v this_o letter_n be_v miscarry_v or_o not_o reach_v to_o he_o as_o he_o signify_v before_o my_o declaration_n make_v at_o c●shel_n after_o many_o day_n retirement_n and_o serious_a consideration_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o no_o hope_n appear_v of_o receive_v satisfaction_n to_o my_o scruple_n he_o write_v another_o to_o i_o of_o the_o 16._o of_o june_n follow_v repete_v the_o same_o expression_n of_o fear_n that_o either_o he_o or_o some_o of_o his_o brethren_n may_v have_v give_v i_o some_o discontent_n to_o occasion_v my_o change_n and_o desire_v if_o any_o such_o do_v happen_v i_o may_v give_v he_o notice_n thereof_o that_o i_o may_v give_v you_o say_v he_o any_o satisfaction_n possible_a and_o that_o union_n at_o least_o of_o christianity_n if_o not_o of_o religion_n may_v remain_v entire_a among_o we_o he_o desire_v further_a that_o i_o will_v consider_v serious_o unde_fw-la &_o quo_fw-la whence_o and_o whither_o i_o be_v go_v and_o what_o great_a inconvenience_n may_v follow_v to_o this_o letter_n also_o i_o answer_v immediate_o repete_v my_o former_a assurance_n give_v to_o he_o of_o no_o injury_n or_o discontent_n receive_v from_o he_o or_o any_o of_o his_o society_n as_o a_o cause_n or_o occasion_n of_o my_o change_n and_o that_o i_o do_v hearty_o embrace_v his_o offer_n of_o maintain_v union_n of_o christianity_n among_o we_o if_o not_o of_o religion_n which_o be_v my_o own_o constant_a inclination_n and_o hearty_a desire_n as_o for_o consider_v unde_fw-la &_o quo_fw-la whence_o and_o whither_o i_o go_v that_o i_o do_v consider_v it_o with_o prayer_n and_o study_n of_o many_o year_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o my_o resolution_n thereupon_o will_v soon_o appear_v in_o public_a and_o i_o desire_v he_o shall_v prevail_v with_o some_o able_a man_n of_o his_o fraternity_n to_o reply_v to_o they_o with_o that_o gravity_n and_o modesty_n which_o become_v learned_a and_o religious_a man_n that_o on_o both_o side_n we_o may_v concur_v with_o our_o study_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o manifestation_n of_o his_o truth_n set_v a_o side_n all_o wont_a acerbity_n which_o if_o use_v will_v confirm_v i_o and_o all_o man_n of_o good_a judgement_n in_o a_o dislike_n of_o their_o way_n and_o spirit_n soon_o after_o at_o my_o arrival_n in_o dublin_n he_o send_v another_o letter_n to_o i_o of_o the_o 24._o of_o june_n with_o a_o message_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n by_o a_o gentleman_n of_o my_o relation_n earnest_o crave_v a_o opportunity_n of_o a_o private_a conference_n with_o i_o with_o a_o offer_n make_v by_o the_o say_a gentleman_n of_o all_o favour_n and_o assistance_n if_o i_o do_v desist_v even_o then_o from_o proceed_v in_o my_o resolution_n and_o desire_v i_o will_v signify_v either_o in_o private_a or_o in_o public_a the_o reason_n of_o my_o discontent_n with_o they_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o i_o conceive_v some_o inconvenience_n in_o private_a conference_n in_o that_o occasion_n and_o expect_v no_o quiet_a of_o mind_n by_o they_o that_o the_o case_n be_v already_o public_a i_o judge_v the_o handle_n of_o it_o in_o public_a to_o be_v more_o expedient_a both_o for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o my_o particular_a satisfaction_n the_o matter_n go_v through_o a_o more_o exact_a trial_n that_o way_n and_o consequent_o i_o do_v proceed_v declare_v in_o a_o sermon_n preach_v a_o few_o day_n after_o to_o a_o very_a great_a and_o noble_a auditory_a in_o christ_n church_n of_o dublin_n the_o reason_n of_o my_o discontent_n with_o the_o present_a practice_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o such_o moderate_a term_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o same_o sermon_n print_v and_o extant_a in_o the_o hand_n of_o many_o desire_v to_o be_v answer_v with_o the_o like_a moderation_n and_o formal_a style_n set_v aside_o satirical_a and_o scurrilous_a libel_n to_o which_o i_o be_v not_o to_o afford_v any_o either_o read_n or_o answer_n and_o long_o it_o be_v before_o i_o hear_v of_o any_o serious_a reply_n make_v to_o my_o proposal_n but_o silly_a libel_n of_o this_o latter_a kind_n which_o the_o sober_a sort_n of_o their_o own_o party_n think_v unworthy_a to_o be_v publish_v and_o i_o think_v they_o to_o be_v as_o little_a worthy_a of_o my_o regard_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n have_v take_v my_o dwell_n since_o my_o come_n to_o dublin_n in_o trinity_n college_n near_o it_o and_o that_o university_n be_v please_v to_o have_v i_o incorporate_v with_o it_o in_o the_o quality_n of_o doctor_n in_o divinity_n at_o the_o performance_n of_o act_n usual_a to_o such_o a_o degree_n i_o publish_v a_o divinity_n thesis_n direct_o intend_v for_o a_o justification_n of_o my_o resolution_n take_v by_o a_o strict_a enquiry_n and_o examen_fw-la of_o it_o in_o a_o public_a dispute_n and_o contain_v to_o that_o purpose_n two_o conclusion_n touch_v the_o main_a point_n of_o our_o controversy_n and_o to_o which_o all_o the_o rest_n may_v be_v reduce_v the_o first_o be_v that_o out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n for_o salvation_n the_o second_o that_o the_o way_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v safe_a to_o salvation_n then_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o former_a i_o intend_v to_o justify_v my_o constant_a and_o continual_a aversion_n to_o that_o horrid_a and_o arrogant_a position_n of_o the_o romanist_n that_o out_o of_o their_o communion_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n the_o fountain_n of_o so_o many_o bloody_a tragedy_n and_o unchristian_a animosity_n which_o have_v be_v the_o disgrace_n and_o destruction_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n these_o many_o year_n by_o the_o second_o i_o propose_v to_o justify_v the_o election_n i_o make_v of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o the_o more_o sure_a way_n to_o salvation_n each_o one_o be_v oblige_v by_o the_o law_n of_o that_o charity_n which_o every_o one_o owe_v to_o himself_o to_o take_v the_o way_n he_o conceive_v to_o be_v most_o secure_a in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o high_a a_o consequence_n to_o these_o conclusion_n i_o invite_v serious_o and_o earnest_o all_o manner_n of_o person_n have_v obtain_v free_a licence_n for_o they_o to_o come_v and_o argue_v from_o the_o lor●_n primate_n our_o vicechancellor_n and_o from_o the_o other_o head_n of_o the_o university_n concern_v as_o may_v appea●_n by_o the_o letter_n follow_v which_o i_o write_v with_o the_o the●●_n enclose_v to_o a_o certain_a learned_a doctor_n of_o the_o romis●_n communion_n honour_a doctor_n in_o pursuance_n of_o my_o earnest_a desire_n to_o discover_v the_o truth_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o great_a concern_n by_o all_o th●_n way_n i_o can_v think_v expedient_a for_o it_o i_o be_o to_o defen●_n by_o public_a dispute_n next_o thursday_n in_o the_o chapel_n 〈◊〉_d this_o college_n the_o thesis_n i_o send_v to_o you_o enclose_v her●_n in_o performance_n of_o my_o promise_n i_o signify_v to_o my_o lor●_n primate_n to_o the_o provost_n of_o the_o college_n and_o the_o moderator_n of_o the_o dispute_n my_o desire_n that_o any_o learne●_n man_n of_o whatsoever_o condition_n may_v be_v permit_v 〈◊〉_d oppose_v and_o they_o all_o grant_v my_o request_n it_o be_v no_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n and_o university_n of_o england_n and_o ireland_n to_o keep_v their_o people_n from_o rea●ing_n and_o hear_v the_o reason_n of_o their_o adversary_n a_o else_o where_o you_o know_v it_o be_v and_o as_o suarez_n bellarmin_n and_o other_o
the_o able_a defender_n of_o the_o roma_n cause_n be_v read_v here_o with_o due_a regard_n to_o their_o learning_n so_o any_o learned_a man_n will_v be_v welcome_a to_o our_o d●sputes_n and_o in_o his_o good_a behaviour_n will_v have_v a_o surwarrant_v of_o his_o indemnity_n for_o what_o he_o shall_v say_v against_o we_o by_o scripture_n and_o reason_n and_o where_o th●_n arswer_n may_v seem_v deficient_a he_o may_v with_o confident_a go_v on_o with_o contra_fw-la sic_fw-la argumentor_fw-la by_o that_o modest_a a●_n clean_a way_n of_o school_n but_o if_o his_o reply_n shall_v be_v so●●_n foul_a word_n or_o rudeness_n though_o i_o have_v resolve_v to_o pas●_n over_o that_o kind_n of_o opposition_n i_o may_v not_o assure_v that_o the_o audience_n here_o which_o be_v to_o be_v very_o illustrious_a and_o ●●arned_a may_v bear_v it_o i_o hearty_o pray_v to_o god_n he_o ●ay_v send_v we_o all_o grace_n to_o seek_v after_o sincere_o and_o happy_o find_v out_o the_o true_a way_n of_o serve_v and_o praise_v he_o and_o so_o i_o rest_v sir_n your_o sincere_a friend_n to_o serve_v you_o andrew_n sall_n at_o this_o invitation_n the_o say_a doctor_n with_o some_o other_o of_o the_o romish_a communion_n come_v to_o our_o di●●utes_n but_o for_o reason_n to_o they_o best_o know_v they_o resolve_v not_o to_o oppose_v in_o that_o public_a manner_n neither_o do_v we_o by_o their_o default_n want_v learned_a and_o able_a opposer_n for_o several_a of_o our_o own_o doctor_n of_o divinity_n and_o master_n of_o art_n member_n of_o this_o university_n well_o furnish_v with_o skill_n in_o controversy_n and_o the_o best_a argument_n our_o adversary_n have_v do_v propose_v they_o vigorous_o upon_o the_o chief_n point_v controvert_v reduceable_a to_o the_o head_n i_o propose_v for_o thesis_n and_o by_o vote_n even_o of_o the_o romish_a auditor_n present_a they_o be_v not_o want_v to_o the_o duty_n of_o able_a disputant_n nor_o can_v i_o understand_v that_o any_o do_v miss_v a_o satisfactory_a answer_n to_o the_o argument_n use_v which_o be_v many_o and_o all_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o most_o reverend_a father_n in_o god_n james_n labour_v archbishop_n of_o armagh_n primate_n of_o all_o ireland_n our_o vice_n chancellor_n and_o of_o the_o right_a reverend_n i_o uther'_v in_o god_n the_o lord_n bishop_n of_o kildare_n the_o lord_n ●●shop_n of_o ossery_n the_o lord_n bishop_n of_o killalo_n and_o of_o a_o very_a great_a and_o flourish_a number_n of_o learned_a man_n ●●th_v of_o the_o clergy_n and_o gentry_n this_o trial_n be_v over_o my_o great_a longing_n be_v for_o a_o serious_a and_o well_o consider_v reply_n to_o my_o reason_n propose_v in_o print_n which_o by_o that_o way_n may_v be_v perform_v without_o pretence_n of_o fear_n or_o want_v of_o liberty_n long_o be_v i_o in_o expectation_n when_o at_o last_o come_v out_o a_o shower_n of_o book_n against_o i_o one_o upon_o the_o back_n of_o another_o the_o first_o that_o appear_v upon_o the_o stage_n be_v i_o e._n a_o fit_a person_n to_o break_v the_o ice_n a_o rough_a trotter_n with_o a_o book_n of_o a_o small_a bulk_n and_o less_o sense_n bear_v a_o thunder_a title_n a_o sovereign_a counterpoison_v prepare_v by_o a_o faithful_a hand_n for_o the_o speedy_a reviviscence_n of_o andrew_n sall_n a_o lat●_n sacrilegious_a apostate_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o title_n page_n be_v bestow_v in_o magnify_v the_o force_n of_o that_o book_n 〈◊〉_d inform_v the_o ignorant_a to_o resolve_v the_o waver_a and_o 〈◊〉_d confirm_v the_o constant_a well_o principled_a roman_a catholic_n under_o so_o magnificent_a a_o title_n who_o will_v not_o expect_v a_o strong_a and_o formal_a answer_n to_o my_o argument_n against_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n supremacy_n transubstantiation_n purgatory_n indulgence_n and_o other_o tenet_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o i_o take_v in_o hand_n to_o confute_v bu●_n instead_o of_o this_o he_o present_v to_o his_o reader_n two_o or_o thre●_n we_o may_v call_v common_a place_n drop_v from_o a_o student_n of_o some_o college_n 1._o of_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o restoration_n of_o the_o so●_n of_o man_n 2._o of_o the_o true_a essence_n of_o the_o divine_a faith_n 3._o of_o the_o happiness_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o thence_o without_o the_o least_o attempt_n of_o apply_v those_o document_n which_o he_o so_o call_v to_o any_o purpose_n he_o fall_v abrupt_o a_o rail_n in_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o boo●_n at_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o at_o those_o he_o conceive_v to_o concur_v to_o my_o conversion_n to_o it_o in_o such_o a_o rude_a be_o rave_a stile_n as_o to_o all_o judicious_a man_n he_o seem_v to_o 〈◊〉_d stark_o mad_a and_o unworthy_a of_o any_o regard_n or_o answer_v and_o that_o i_o understand_v to_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o sober_a i_o of_o his_o own_o party_n but_o to_o my_o person_n his_o term_n be_v so_o heterogeneous_a as_o may_v resemble_v a_o monste_n compose_v of_o a_o siren_n and_o a_o tiger_n extravagant_o entoil_v i_o above_o the_o sky_n for_o what_o i_o be_v before_o a●_n depress_v i_o under_o the_o abysm_n for_o what_o i_o a●_n at_o present_a now_o call_v i_o sacrilegious_a apostate_n and_o now_o dear_a andrew_n sweet_a andrew_n and_o what_o not_o with_o what_o propriety_n his_o book_n may_v be_v call_v a_o counterpoison_v i_o know_v not_o if_o it_o be_v not_o that_o the_o commendation_n he_o bestow_v upon_o i_o in_o one_o place_n may_v be_v a_o antidote_n against_o the_o venem_fw-la he_o and_o his_o fellow_n railer_n spit_v against_o i_o in_o other_o you_o have_v be_v heretofore_o say_v he_o know_v and_o count_v a_o philosopher_n both_o by_o word_n and_o deed_n you_o speak_v great_a thing_n and_o do_v likewise_o practice_v they_o and_o after_o p._n 27._o before_o you_o be_v vir_fw-la apostolicus_n a_o most_o resplendent_a star_n in_o the_o firmament_n of_o the_o true_a church_n a_o religious_a priest_n confer_v life_n of_o grace_n on_o other_o call_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n to_o a_o most_o high_a and_o sovereign_a dignity_n and_o honour_n before_o a_o chaste_a and_o evangelical_n missioner_n raise_v from_o a_o shall_v to_o be_v a_o paul_n a_o preacher_n of_o the_o word_n and_o penance_n now_o turn_v to_o be_v saul_n persecute_v and_o war_a in_o a_o most_o furious_a manner_n against_o the_o heavenly_a fortress_n of_o true_a faith_n become_v a_o wretched_a lie_v and_o vile_a protestant_n plunge_v in_o all_o vice_n contrary_a to_o those_o former_a virtue_n not_o to_o repete_fw-la more_fw-it of_o his_o dirty_a term_n a_o grave_n and_o honourable_a prelate_n read_v this_o strange_a contraposition_n reply_v they_o be_v behold_v to_o he_o for_o give_v so_o good_a account_n of_o what_o i_o be_v before_o but_o need_v not_o his_o information_n for_o what_o i_o be_o now_o themselves_o know_v that_o better_a and_o this_o egregious_a writer_n be_v question_v in_o a_o private_a discourse_n with_o what_o truth_n he_o can_v say_v that_o i_o be_v become_v so_o deboist_a since_o i_o come_v to_o the_o reform_a church_n live_v all_o that_o time_n very_o abstemious_a and_o retire_v in_o trinity_n college_n of_o dublin_n and_o in_o a_o good_a repute_n with_o those_o that_o converse_v with_o i_o he_o answer_v that_o he_o never_o mean_v that_o i_o shall_v be_v real_o guilty_a of_o those_o vice_n but_o in_o a_o metaphorical_a sense_n that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v a_o harlot_n i_o embrace_v the_o communion_n of_o it_o become_v guilty_a of_o a_o spiritual_a uncleanness_n and_o all_o those_o vice_n he_o mention_n he_o can_v deny_v that_o i_o know_v this_o to_o have_v be_v his_o answer_n we_o think_v such_o equivocation_n and_o mental_a wind_n to_o be_v only_o among_o the_o prime_a politician_n of_o that_o party_n but_o when_o we_o find_v they_o in_o one_o so_o simple_a as_o mr._n i._o e._n his_o book_n show_v he_o to_o be_v the_o sickness_n seem_v to_o be_v too_o far_o spread_v among_o they_o well_o content_v he_o will_v be_v that_o his_o proselyte_n shall_v understand_v i_o shall_v be_v real_o guilty_a of_o the_o debauchery_n he_o speak_v of_o but_o if_o he_o be_v bring_v to_o a_o test_n he_o be_v provide_v of_o the_o reserve_v aforesaid_a to_o come_v of_o this_o specimen_fw-la which_o i_o give_v of_o the_o man_n genius_n will_v i_o presume_v quit_v i_o in_o good_a judgement_n of_o all_o obligation_n to_o further_a regard_n of_o what_o he_o say_v to_o i_o but_o i_o will_v not_o discharge_v myself_o of_o the_o duty_n of_o defend_v the_o church_n of_o england_n against_o his_o barbarous_a injury_n and_o calumny_n which_o i_o will_v perform_v god_n willing_a in_o the_o whole_a discourse_n of_o this_o treatise_n resolve_v the_o objection_n of_o other_o and_o with_o some_o reflection_n at_o the_o end_n upon_o part_n of_o his_o peculiar_a extravagance_n to_o let_v the_o world_n know_v how_o
different_a the_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v for_o piety_n and_o learning_n from_o what_o his_o malice_n will_v make_v his_o blind_a flock_n believe_v of_o it_o the_o next_o book_n of_o those_o publish_v against_o i_o that_o come_v to_o my_o hand_n be_v one_o entitle_v the_o bleed_a iphigenia_n by_o way_n of_o a_o preface_n to_o another_o great_a a_o prepare_v which_o soon_o after_o appear_v under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o dolefull_n fall_v of_o andrew_n sall_n etc._n etc._n both_o write_v by_o a_o grave_n and_o ancient_a prelate_n of_o my_o acquaintance_n in_o spain_n who_o in_o both_o of_o they_o doleful_o lament_v a_o suppose_a fall_n of_o i_o from_o the_o catholic_a faith_n into_o heresy_n and_o enlarge_n in_o magnify_v the_o virtue_n and_o learning_n of_o the_o prime_a father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o company_n he_o say_v i_o have_v forsake_v and_o cry_v against_o the_o error_n and_o vice_n of_o many_o heretic_n which_o he_o mention_n draw_v their_o pedegry_a down_n from_o cain_n who_o society_n he_o say_v i_o have_v embrace_v and_o conclude_v conjure_v i_o by_o all_o that_o be_v holy_a and_o precious_a on_o earth_n and_o in_o heaven_n that_o when_o the_o last_o visit_n of_o god_n come_v upon_o i_o i_o may_v be_v find_v a_o true_a professor_n of_o the_o holy_a roman_a catholic_n apostolic_a faith_n the_o good_a will_n and_o pious_a intention_n of_o this_o prelate_n i_o true_o love_v and_o honour_n and_o according_o will_n endeavour_n to_o satisfy_v he_o in_o sober_a serious_a and_o sincere_a term_n if_o it_o be_v so_o indeed_o as_o he_o suppose_v that_o i_o shall_v have_v fall_v from_o the_o holy_a catholic_n apostolic_a faith_n i_o shall_v be_v the_o most_o unhappy_a and_o worthy_a to_o be_v lament_v of_o all_o man_n but_o i_o be_o certain_o persuade_v i_o have_v rather_o fasten_v myself_o to_o it_o by_o the_o change_n i_o make_v &_o i_o hope_v shall_v make_v it_o appear_v so_o to_o all_o unbiased_a man_n in_o the_o progress_n of_o this_o book_n and_o to_o his_o request_n that_o i_o be_v find_v a_o true_a professor_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_n apostolic_a faith_n i_o promise_v he_o faithful_o it_o shall_v be_v my_o constant_a and_o inflexible_a resolution_n to_o hold_v that_o faith_n to_o the_o end_n of_o my_o life_n wheresoever_o it_o be_v uncorrupt_o profess_v whether_o in_o rome_n or_o jerusalem_n or_o else_o where_o i_o know_v it_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o place_n and_o in_o truth_n and_o sincerity_n of_o my_o heart_n i_o say_v to_o god_n in_o the_o word_n of_o holy_a david_n which_o i_o have_v put_v for_o a_o motto_n in_o the_o frontispiece_n of_o this_o work_n one_o thing_n have_v i_o desire_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o will_v i_o seek_v after_o that_o i_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n to_o behold_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o inquire_v in_o his_o temple_n psal_n 27.4_o this_o desire_n appear_v early_o in_o i_o have_v betake_v myself_o in_o my_o young_a year_n to_o that_o course_n of_o life_n which_o i_o conceive_v to_o be_v most_o expedient_a to_o come_v to_o god_n and_o dwell_v in_o his_o house_n by_o the_o strict_a practice_n of_o piety_n and_o learning_n seclude_v from_o the_o world_n in_o a_o society_n of_o great_a reputation_n for_o both_o and_o in_o that_o course_n i_o do_v persevere_v whilst_o that_o apprehension_n last_v but_o have_v discover_v error_n therein_o opposite_a to_o the_o primitive_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a faith_n lead_v to_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o find_v by_o serious_a and_o due_a consideration_n the_o same_o true_a faith_n to_o be_v profess_v uncorrupt_o in_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o england_n i_o do_v constant_o resolve_v to_o embrace_v it_o in_o prosecution_n of_o my_o foresay_a profess_a design_n of_o dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n i_o mean_v in_o the_o true_a catholic_a apostolic_a church_n and_o as_o no_o human_a force_n or_o industry_n can_v win_v i_o to_o this_o change_n without_o a_o strong_a interior_a motion_n and_o full_a persuasion_n of_o be_v in_o the_o right_n so_o all_o art_n and_o endeavour_n by_o terror_n or_o allurement_n be_v vain_a to_o recall_v i_o this_o interior_a persuasion_n persist_v which_o i_o find_v rather_o confirm_v then_o weaken_v by_o all_o industry_n hitherto_o use_v to_o draw_v i_o from_o it_o as_o i_o hope_v will_v appear_v to_o the_o dispassioned_a reader_n by_o the_o sincerity_n of_o my_o discourse_n in_o this_o treatise_n the_o four_o and_o last_o book_n of_o those_o publish_v against_o i_o that_o come_v to_o my_o hand_n be_v one_o of_o j._n s._n bear_v title_n the_o unerring_a unerrable_a church_n whosoever_o the_o say_v j._n s._n be_v if_o we_o measure_v he_o by_o his_o conceit_n of_o himself_o his_o contemt_a of_o his_o adversary_n his_o boast_n of_o his_o argument_n for_o unanswerable_a and_o the_o brag_n of_o his_o friend_n in_o his_o behalf_n for_o matchless_a certain_o he_o be_v the_o goliath_n of_o their_o camp_n of_o gigantic_a stature_n among_o they_o i_o be_v not_o a_o little_a joy_v to_o find_v a_o person_n of_o so_o great_a repute_n and_o trust_v engage_v in_o answer_v my_o argument_n if_o i_o find_v it_o easy_a to_o render_v void_a his_o answer_n and_o to_o confute_v his_o argument_n then_o may_v i_o expect_v to_o be_v at_o full_a quiet_a in_o my_o persuasion_n and_o immovable_a against_o all_o their_o opposition_n whereof_o the_o prudent_a reader_n will_v be_v judge_n after_o he_o have_v view_v our_o encounter_n and_o whereas_o the_o main_a strength_n of_o this_o combatant_n lie_v in_o his_o calumny_n and_o imposture_n wherewith_o he_o beset_v thick_a the_o front_n or_o preface_n of_o his_o book_n i_o will_v in_o this_o place_n remove_v that_o engine_n to_o lessen_v the_o weight_n of_o my_o argument_n with_o a_o great_a number_n of_o reader_n who_o rely_v much_o upon_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o writer_n he_o will_v he_o say_v strip_v i_o of_o those_o title_n which_o my_o public_a employment_n for_o many_o year_n have_v give_v i_o and_o with_o a_o kind_n of_o power_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o will_v make_v that_o i_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v what_o real_o i_o be_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o many_o thousand_o of_o man_n live_v find_v i_o style_v professor_n of_o controversy_n in_o the_o irish_a college_n of_o salamanca_n he_o say_v resolute_o that_o no_o controversy_n be_v teach_v in_o that_o college_n these_o forty_o year_n in_o which_o undertake_v he_o have_v be_v so_o unlucky_a that_o several_a person_n of_o honour_n in_o ireland_n who_o have_v be_v in_o spain_n and_o do_v know_v the_o language_n of_o it_o see_v a_o instrument_n in_o spanish_a yet_o extant_a in_o my_o keep_n of_o the_o inquisitor_n general_n of_o spain_n give_v i_o licence_n for_o have_v and_o keep_v prohibit_v book_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o be_v professor_n of_o controversy_n in_o the_o aforesaid_a college_n after_o the_o tenor_n follow_v en_fw-fr la_fw-fr villa_n de_fw-fr madrid_n a_o 15._o de_fw-la junio_fw-la 1652._o etc._n etc._n en_fw-fr la_fw-fr villa_n de_fw-fr madrid_n a_o quinze_fw-fr dias_fw-la delme_v de_fw-la junio_fw-la de_fw-fr mily_n seiscientio_n y_o cinquenta_fw-la you_o do_v annos_fw-la el_fw-es illustrissimo_fw-la y_fw-fr reverendissimo_fw-la sennor_fw-es obispo_n de_fw-fr placentia_n inquisidor_n general_n en_fw-fr los_fw-la reynos_n y_fw-fr sennorios_n de_n su_fw-es magestad_fw-es y_fw-es de_fw-es su_fw-es consejo_fw-es &c._n &c._n dio_fw-mi licentia_fw-la all_o p._n andres_n salo_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr campania_fw-mi de_fw-fr jesus_n rector_n del_fw-it collegio_fw-la de_fw-fr irlandezes_n de_fw-fr salamanca_n y_fw-fr lector_fw-la en_fw-fr el_fw-es de_fw-es la_fw-fr catedra_fw-fr de_fw-fr controversias_fw-la contra_fw-la herejes_n paraque_fw-la por_fw-mi tiempo_fw-it de_fw-it un_fw-it anno_fw-la que_fw-fr comience_n a_o correr_n y_fw-fr contarse_n desde_v 〈◊〉_d dia_z de_fw-fr la_fw-fr fecha_fw-mi pueda_fw-la tener_n you_o leer_v libros_fw-la prohibide_v para_fw-it el_fw-es efecto_fw-la de_fw-fr escrivir_fw-fr y_fw-fr impri●●ir_n y_fw-mi there_fw-mi ala_fw-la estampa_fw-la qual_a quire_n libro_fw-la o_o tratado_n y_fw-fr le_fw-fr encargò_fw-la que_fw-la si_fw-la hallare_fw-la en_fw-fr algun_n libro_fw-la antiguo_fw-la o_fw-la moderno_fw-la alguna_fw-la proposition_n censurable_a no_o comprehendida_fw-la en_fw-fr el_fw-es ex_fw-la purgatorio_fw-la compliendo_fw-la con_fw-mi sum_z obligation_n lo_o advierta_fw-la y_fw-es de_fw-es cuenta_fw-la dello_n asu_fw-la sennoria_fw-la illustrissima_fw-la o_fw-la all_o consejo_fw-es por_fw-mi lo_o que_fw-fr importa_fw-la all_o servicio_fw-la de_fw-fr dios_fw-es nuestro_fw-la sennor_fw-es de_fw-fr lo_o qual_a testifico_n the_fw-mi e●●_n infra_fw-la escrito_fw-la secretario_fw-la de_fw-la camara_fw-la de_fw-fr su_fw-es sennoria_fw-la illustrissima_fw-la el_n l_o do_v pedro_n lopez_n de_fw-fr brinnas_n and_o at_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o leaf_n on_o the_o left_a hand_n corner_n be_v write_v these_o word_n assentada_fw-es a_o fol._n 138_o
aggravate_v thereby_o as_o be_v a_o formal_a and_o wilful_a impostor_n with_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o the_o untruth_n of_o what_o he_o say_v he_o have_v be_v a_o master_n of_o a_o grammar_n school_n in_o one_o of_o those_o college_n where_o i_o be_v professor_n of_o divinity_n and_o where_o he_o say_v divinity_n be_v never_o teach_v and_o know_v certain_o that_o i_o have_v all_o those_o employment_n which_o he_o deny_v i_o shall_v have_v have_v for_o which_o cause_n several_a of_o the_o romish_a clergy_n and_o laity_n in_o ireland_n who_o know_v the_o same_o have_v detest_v the_o impudence_n of_o this_o man_n in_o deny_v a_o thing_n so_o public_o know_v i_o can_v not_o but_o imagine_v that_o some_o person_n capable_a himself_o of_o so_o desperate_a a_o folly_n as_o to_o take_v upon_o he_o fictitious_a title_n shall_v be_v author_n of_o this_o rude_a calumny_n for_o man_n apprehension_n of_o other_o be_v common_o a_o testimony_n of_o their_o own_o temper_n as_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o preface_n and_o if_o the_o say_v jesuit_n be_v author_n of_o that_o book_n and_o of_o the_o calumny_n of_o it_o the_o observation_n now_o mention_v be_v full_o verify_v in_o he_o for_o to_o my_o certain_a knowledge_n this_o man_n be_v send_v away_o from_o spain_n before_o he_o be_v ripe_a in_o learning_n to_o magnify_v his_o mission_n with_o private_a friend_n give_v himself_o a_o title_n so_o ridiculous_o and_o chimerical_o fictitious_a that_o if_o i_o do_v mention_v it_o here_o it_o will_v bring_v upon_o he_o a_o incurable_a confusion_n not_o to_o wound_v he_o to_o deep_o i_o forbear_v to_o unfold_v the_o matter_n further_o at_o present_a but_o i_o have_v declare_v it_o to_o a_o person_n of_o quality_n of_o his_o acquaintance_n with_o a_o message_n to_o he_o and_o his_o brethren_n that_o if_o they_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o the_o offer_n of_o their_o superior_a above_o mention_v of_o union_n in_o christianity_n and_o civil_a demeanour_n nor_o will_v accept_v of_o my_o invitation_n to_o a_o trial_n of_o our_o cause_n by_o a_o grave_n and_o scholastic_a way_n become_v christian_n and_o learned_a man_n but_o must_v force_v i_o out_o of_o it_o by_o calumny_n and_o slander_n they_o may_v possible_o find_v that_o it_o be_v not_o want_v of_o material_n that_o keep_v i_o from_o throw_v dirt_n in_o their_o face_n as_o other_o common_o do_v depart_v from_o they_o but_o want_v of_o inclination_n to_o such_o practice_n and_o when_o their_o 1589._o their_o vide_fw-la caramvel_n theolog_fw-la fundamentali_fw-la fundamento_fw-la 551._o n._n 1589._o great_a doctor_n teach_v they_o to_o raise_v false_a testimony_n whereby_o to_o discredit_v their_o adversary_n as_o this_o man_n do_v i_o hope_v they_o will_v allow_v i_o to_o repel_v with_o truth_n though_o bitter_a the_o assault_n of_o malicious_a enemy_n after_o the_o publication_n of_o these_o four_o book_n now_o mention_v the_o last_o and_o great_a engine_n apply_v by_o my_o former_a brethren_n to_o recall_v i_o be_v a_o large_a and_o solemn_a bull_n of_o pope_n clement_n the_o 10._o now_o reign_v in_o rome_n sign_v and_o seal_v by_o his_o protonotarius_fw-la apostolicus_n claudius_n agrete_n assure_v i_o in_o term_n of_o full_a legality_n a_o entire_a and_o absolute_a remission_n of_o all_o that_o be_v past_a and_o a_o favourable_a reception_n to_o my_o former_a condition_n and_o privilege_n if_o i_o will_v return_v to_o they_o this_o bull_n come_v into_o my_o hand_n by_o dublin_n post_n in_o september_n last_o with_o a_o letter_n about_o it_o of_o few_o line_n in_o latin_a without_o subscription_n intice_v i_o to_o a_o acceptance_n of_o the_o favour_n offer_v and_o conclude_v with_o admonish_v i_o of_o evil_n design_v against_o i_o if_o i_o do_v not_o consent_v to_o it_o of_o which_o design_n against_o i_o i_o have_v have_v more_o notice_n give_v to_o i_o than_o i_o be_o willing_a to_o publish_v i_o thank_v god_n for_o deliver_v i_o hitherto_o and_o i_o pray_v that_o he_o may_v correct_v the_o ill_a affect_a mind_n that_o harbour_v such_o cruel_a thought_n to_o the_o offer_v make_v by_o that_o bull_n of_o pardon_n and_o favour_n i_o answer_v that_o i_o want_v a_o more_o necessary_a indult_n from_o the_o true_a supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n for_o submit_v to_o the_o present_a law_n and_o command_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n opposite_a as_o i_o do_v conceive_v to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a apostolical_a church_n as_o i_o hope_v to_o make_v appear_v in_o the_o follow_a treatise_n to_o the_o indifferent_a reader_n by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n and_o find_v the_o above_o mention_v i._o s._n more_o eager_a in_o challenge_v i_o to_o answer_v his_o syllogism_n and_o his_o party_n more_o confident_a of_o they_o i_o hasten_v my_o reply_n to_o he_o for_o the_o print_n but_o some_o delay_n intervening_a which_o give_v i_o way_n to_o have_v the_o second_o part_n which_o 〈◊〉_d intend_v to_o be_v of_o my_o reply_n finish_v before_o this_o other_o can_v be_v print_v i_o have_v resolve_v to_o leave_v his_o own_o place_n to_o mr._n i._n s._n which_o be_v the_o last_o and_o begin_v with_o my_o reply_n to_o n._n n._n declare_v by_o occasion_n of_o his_o objection_n that_o the_o faith_n we_o profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v that_o and_o no_o other_o which_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v and_o be_v profess_v by_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o first_o and_o better_a age_n of_o christianity_n that_o we_o have_v in_o this_o church_n all_o those_o title_n and_o right_n which_o do_v qualify_v a_o church_n for_o true_o catholic_n even_o according_a to_o the_o rule_v prescribe_v by_o the_o able_a writer_n of_o the_o romish_a party_n whereby_o all_o those_o loud_a cry_n against_o we_o for_o heretic_n and_o scismaty_n appear_v to_o be_v no_o better_o then_o emty_a bubble_n and_o mere_a wind_n only_o apt_a to_o delude_v weak_a and_o ignorant_a people_n and_o thence_o i_o will_v proceed_v to_o declare_v how_o their_o ordinary_a stuff_n of_o argument_n against_o we_o be_v bottom_v constanly_a upon_o false_a supposition_n and_o misrepresentation_n of_o our_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n which_o if_o well_o know_v to_o the_o sober_a and_o sincere_a sort_n of_o roman_a catholic_n they_o will_v be_v far_o otherwise_o affect_v than_o they_o be_v towards_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o the_o false_a information_n of_o ignorant_a or_o malicious_a instructor_n o_o may_v the_o father_n of_o light_n and_o the_o god_n of_o truth_n open_v the_o eye_n of_o man_n blind_v with_o earthly_a passion_n that_o they_o may_v see_v and_o follow_v the_o true_a way_n to_o everlasting_a happiness_n declare_v to_o we_o by_o his_o dear_a son_n jesus_n that_o his_o will_n and_o glory_n may_v be_v the_o common_a aim_n of_o all_o our_o wish_n and_o writing_n and_o of_o all_o our_o action_n that_o our_o study_n and_o endeavour_n be_v not_o to_o make_v the_o breach_n among_o christian_n wide_a but_o to_o reconcile_v they_o in_o christ_n that_o thus_o unite_a in_o he_o we_o be_v at_o length_n happy_o unite_v among_o ourselves_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o true_a faith_n in_o our_o good_a saviour_n jesus_n to_o who_o with_o the_o father_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v all_o honour_n and_o glory_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n a_o table_n of_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o part_n chap._n i._n a_o summary_n account_n of_o the_o content_n of_o n._n n._n his_o two_o book_n and_o a_o distribution_n of_o the_o point_n to_o be_v handle_v in_o relation_n to_o they_o pag._n 1._o chap._n ii_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v a_o true_a catholic_a church_n and_o the_o doctrine_n profess_v in_o it_o true_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a pag._n 6._o chap._n iii_o suarez_n his_o argument_n take_v from_o the_o propriety_n of_o the_o word_n catholic_n apply_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v true_o catholic_n pag._n 14._o chap._n iu._n the_o church_n of_o england_n prove_v to_o be_v apostolic_a upon_o the_o foundation_n lay_v by_o suarez_n to_o rob_v it_o of_o that_o call_n pag._n 21._o chaa._n v._o of_o the_o succession_n and_o lawful_a ordination_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n in_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o england_n pag._n 27._o chap._n vi_o the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n in_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o his_o time_n and_o after_o prove_v to_o be_v legal_a and_o valid_a pap_n 41._o chap._n vii_o how_o far_o the_o form_n of_o ordination_n use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n agree_v with_o that_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n declare_v in_o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o how_o much_o the_o form_n prescribe_v by_o the_o roman_a pontifical_a of_o this_o time_n differ_v from_o
the_o ancient_a ●orm_n pag._n 49._o chap._n viii_o how_o far_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o romish_a in_o matter_n of_o ordination_n and_o wherein_o they_o do_v differ_v and_o how_o absurd_a the_o pretention_n of_o the_o romanist_n be_v that_o our_o difference_n herein_o with_o they_o shall_v annul_v our_o order_n pag._n 57_o chap._n ix_o that_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n since_o the_o reformation_n be_v much_o more_o sure_a and_o unquestionable_a in_o the_o english_a church_n then_o in_o the_o romish_a pag._n 6●_n chap._n x._o a_o further_a cause_n of_o nullity_n discover_v in_o the_o election_n of_o pope_n clement_n the_o 8_o the_o pag._n 75._o chap._n xi_o nullity_n declare_v in_o the_o popedom_n of_o paul_n the_o 5_o the_o and_z other_o following_z pag._n 81._o chap._n xii_o of_o the_o large_a extent_n of_o christian_a religion_n profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n pag._n 89._o chap._n xiii_o of_o the_o several_a large_a and_o flourish_a christian_a church_n in_o the_o eastern_a country_n not_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n pag._n 98._o chap._n fourteen_o of_o the_o jacobite_n armenian_n maronites_n and_o indian_n pag._n 110._o chap._n xv._o a_o reflection_n upon_o the_o content_n of_o the_o three_o chapter_n preccede_v and_o upon_o the_o pride_n and_o cruelty_n of_o the_o romanist_n in_o despise_v and_o condemn_v all_o christian_a society_n not_o subject_a to_o their_o jurisdiction_n pag._n 116._o chap._n xvi_o inference_n from_o the_o doctrine_n precede_v of_o this_o who'e_n treatise_n against_o the_o several_a objection_n of_o n._n n._n pag._n 121._o chap._n xvii_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n vindicate_v from_o the_o slanderous_a aspersion_n of_o n._n n._n and_o other-romanists_n pag._n 130._o chap._n xviii_o a_o view_n of_o n._n n._n his_o discourse_n upon_o transubstantiation_n and_o upon_o the_o affinity_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o the_o grecian_a pag._n 132._o chap._n xix_o n._n n._n his_o book_n entitle_v the_o bleed_a iphigenia_n examine_v his_o abusive_a language_n bestow_v therein_o upon_o person_n of_o honour_n and_o his_o censure_n upon_o the_o king_n majesty_n reprehend_v pag._n 140._o chap._n xx._n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o subject_n to_o raise_v arm_n and_o to_o go_v to_o war_n with_o their_o fellow_n subject_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o their_o prince_n the_o doctrine_n of_o kill_a man_n and_o make_v war_n by_o way_n of_o prevention_n and_o on_o pretext_n of_o raligion_n confute_v pag._n 148._o chap._n xxi_o a_o conclusion_n of_o my_o discourse_n with_o n._n n._n with_o a_o friendly_a admonition_n to_o he_o pag._n 171._o chap._n xxii_o a_o check_n to_o i._o e._n his_o scandalous_a libel_n and_o a_o vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o his_o false_a and_o slanderous_a report_n of_o it_o pag._n 178._o the_o second_o part_n chap._n i._n a_o anatomy_n of_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o genius_n and_o drift_n appear_v in_o his_o dedicatory_a epistle_n to_o my_o lord_n lieutenant_n of_o ireland_n pag._n 1._o chap._n ii_o a_o vindication_n of_o several_a saint_n and_o worthy_a soul_n our_o ancestor_n from_o the_o sentence_n of_o damnation_n pass_v upon_o they_o by_o i._o s._n pag._n 6._o chap._n iii_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o cold_a defence_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o his_o church_n examine_v pag._n 14._o chap._n iu._n that_o protestant_n have_v a_o great_a security_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o doctrine_n then_o papist_n have_v pag._n 19_o chap._n v._o mr._n i._o s._n his_o prolix_a excursion_n about_o the_o pope_n authority_n requisite_a to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a scripture_n declare_v to_o be_v impertinent_a and_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n clear_v from_o the_o confusion_n he_o put_v upon_o it_o pag._n 27._o chap._n vi_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o defence_n of_o the_o pope_n pretend_a infallibility_n from_o the_o censure_n of_o blasphemy_n declare_v to_o be_v weak_a and_o impertinent_a his_o particular_a opinion_n censure_v for_o heretical_a by_o his_o own_o party_n pag._n 33._o chap._n vii_o our_o adversary_n corruption_n of_o scripture_n detect_v pag._n 41._o chap._n viii_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o horrible_a impiety_n against_o the_o sacred_a apostle_n and_o malicious_a imposture_n upon_o the_o church_n of_o england_n reprehend_v pag._n 46._o chap._n ix_o our_o adversarte_n pretention_n to_o prescription_n and_o miracle_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o their_o church_n reject_v his_o imposture_n upon_o i_o and_o upon_o the_o church_n of_o england_n discover_v further_a pag._n 53._o chap._n x._o a_o check_n to_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o insolent_a thesis_n prefix_v for_o title_n to_o the_o 8_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n that_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n nor_o any_o part_n of_o it_o that_o they_o can_v without_o blasphemy_n allege_v scripture_n for_o their_o tenet_n and_o his_o own_o argument_n retort_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n pag._n 59_o chap._n xi_o a_o refutation_n of_o several_a other_o engagement_n of_o mr._n i._n s._n in_o that_o 8_o the_o chapter_n pag._n 66._o chap._n xii_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o answer_n to_o my_o objection_n against_o the_o pope_n in_o fallibility_n refute_v his_o defence_n of_o bellarmin_n of_o the_o general_n council_n of_o constance_n and_o of_o costerus_n declare_v to_o be_v weak_a and_o vain_a pag._n 70._o chap._n xiii_o our_o adversary_n foul_a and_o great_a circle_n commit_v pretend_v to_o rid_v his_o pretention_n of_o infallibility_n from_o the_o censure_n of_o a_o circle_n his_o many_o absurdity_n and_o great_a ignorance_n in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o that_o attemt_fw-mi discover_v a_o better_a resolution_n of_o faith_n propose_v according_a to_o protestant_a principle_n pag._n 77._o chap._n fourteen_o a_o reflection_n upon_o the_o perverse_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n propose_v to_o we_o by_o mr._n i._n s._n and_o the_o pernicious_a and_o most_o dangerous_a consequence_n of_o it_o pag._n 85._o chap._n xv._o mr._n i._o s._n his_o defence_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n declare_v to_o be_v vain_a their_o pretence_n to_o a_o monarchical_a power_n over_o all_o christian_n whether_o in_o spiritual_a or_o temporal_a prove_v to_o be_v unjust_a and_o tyrannical_a pag._n 92._o chap._n xvi_o how_o false_o mr._n i._o s._n affirm_v the_o irish_a do_v not_o suffer_v by_o the_o pope_n prohibit_v they_o to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o remonstrance_n of_o fidelity_n propose_v to_o they_o pag._n 100_o chap._n xvii_o the_o complaint_n of_o papist_n against_o our_o king_n for_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n he_o demand_v from_o his_o subject_n declare_v to_o be_v unjust_a pag._n 103._o chap._n xviii_o our_o adversary_n essay_n in_o favour_n of_o transubstantiation_n examine_v his_o challenge_n for_o solve_v two_o syllogism_n answer_v pag._n 110._o chap._n xix_o several_a answer_n to_o my_o argument_n against_o transubstantiation_n refute_v pag._n 118._o chap._n xx._n ancient_a school_n man_n declare_v transubstantiation_n can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n before_o the_o lateran_n council_n mr._n i._o s._n his_o great_a boast_n of_o find_v in_o my_o check_n to_o their_o worship_n of_o the_o host_n a_o prejudice_n to_o the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n declare_v to_o be_v void_a of_o sense_n and_o ground_n pag._n 126._o chap._n xxi_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o weak_a defence_n of_o their_o half_a communion_n confute_v pag._n 135._o chap._n xxii_o the_o roman_a worship_n of_o image_n declare_v to_o be_v sinful_a pag._n 142._o chap._n xxiii_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o defence_n of_o the_o romish_a worship_n of_o image_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o idolatry_n confute_v the_o miserable_a condition_n of_o the_o vulgar_a and_o unhappy_a engagement_n of_o the_o learned_a among_o romanist_n touch_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n discover_v pag._n 148._o chap._n xxiv_o our_o adversary_n reply_v to_o my_o exception_n against_o their_o invocation_n of_o saint_n declare_v to_o be_v impertinent_a pag._n 159._o chap._n xxv_o a_o great_a stock_n of_o fault_n and_o absurdity_n discover_v in_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o defence_n of_o purgatory_n pag._n 168._o chap._n xxvi_o the_o argument_n for_o purgatory_n take_v from_o the_o 12_o the_o of_o s._n matth._n v._n 32._o solve_v 173._o chap._n xxvii_o the_o attemt_a of_o our_o adversary_n to_o make_v the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n a_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n declare_v to_o be_v vain_a pag._n 185._o chap._n xxviii_o how_o weak_a be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o grand_a engine_n of_o indulgence_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n pag._n 188._o chap._n xxix_o the_o unhappy_a success_n of_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o great_a boast_n of_o skill_n in_o history_n touch_v the_o antiquity_n of_o indulgence_n discover_v pag_n 195._o chap._n xxx_o of_o
the_o strange_a and_o absurd_a term_n use_v in_o the_o grant_v of_o indulgence_n and_o the_o immoderate_a profuseness_n wherewith_o and_o slight_a cause_n for_o which_o they_o be_v grant_v pag._n 199._o chap._n xxxi_o the_o dismal_a unhapiness_n of_o the_o romish_a people_n in_o have_v their_o liturgy_n in_o a_o tongue_n unknown_a to_o they_o pag._n 212._o chap._n xxxii_o the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o prohibit_v the_o read_n of_o scripture_n to_o the_o people_n and_o their_o common_a pretence_n of_o sect_n and_o division_n arise_v among_o protestant_n refute_v pag_n 216._o chap._n xxxiii_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o engagement_n touch_v the_o immaculate_a conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o confession_n confute_v pag._n 219._o chap._n xxxiv_o a_o reflection_n upon_o the_o many_o fallacy_n impertinency_n absurdity_n and_o hallucination_n of_o mr._n i.s._n his_o book_n which_o may_v justify_v a_o resolution_n of_o not_o mispending_a time_n in_o return_v any_o further_a reply_n to_o such_o writing_n and_o a_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a treatise_n exhort_v he_o to_o a_o consideration_n of_o his_o miserable_a condition_n in_o deceive_a himself_o and_o other_o with_o vanity_n pag._n 222._o true_a catholic_a &_o apostolic_a faith_n maintain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n part_n i._o be_v a_o reply_n to_o n._n n._n his_o two_o book_n the_o one_o entitle_v the_o bleed_a iphigenia_n the_o other_o the_o doleful_a fall_n of_o etc._n etc._n with_o a_o reflection_n upon_o i._n e._n his_o libel_n entitle_v a_o sovereign_n counterpoison_v etc._n etc._n and_o a_o vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o the_o calumny_n of_o they_o and_o of_o their_o party_n chap._n i._n a_o summary_n account_n of_o the_o content_n of_o n._n n._n his_o two_o book_n and_o a_o distribution_n of_o the_o point_n to_o be_v handle_v in_o relation_n to_o they_o a_o useful_a proposal_n be_v make_v in_o the_o senate_n of_o athens_n by_o a_o person_n of_o ill_a repute_n those_o wise_a senator_n accord_v the_o same_o shall_v be_v tender_v by_o another_o of_o a_o clear_a fame_n that_o it_o may_v carry_v by_o his_o authority_n more_o weight_n and_o be_v the_o better_o accept_v the_o like_a seem_v to_o have_v be_v practise_v with_o i_o by_o my_o brethren_n of_o the_o romish_a communion_n reason_n of_o discontent_n with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o great_a affront_n of_o it_o be_v present_v to_o i_o by_o j._n e._n in_o his_o book_n or_o libel_v entitle_v a_o sovereign_n counterpoison_v etc._n etc._n they_o just_o suspect_v that_o i_o will_v slight_v that_o onset_n out_o of_o a_o dislike_n to_o the_o person_n because_o of_o his_o rude_a and_o passionate_a expression_n have_v take_v care_n that_o the_o same_o and_o other_o motive_n of_o discontent_n shall_v be_v propose_v by_o another_o of_o great_a repute_n a_o age_a and_o grave_a prelate_n renown_v for_o learning_n and_o virtue_n and_o one_o much_o respect_v by_o i_o he_o be_v please_v to_o give_v i_o mark_n of_o former_a acquaintance_n for_o know_v he_o but_o without_o commission_n of_o further_a discover_v he_o to_o the_o reader_n then_o under_o the_o character_n of_o n._n n._n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o preface_n which_o come_v forth_o in_o a_o separate_a tractate_n he_o tell_v i_o how_o much_o he_o be_v surprise_v and_o trouble_v see_v a_o copy_n he_o receive_v in_o print_n from_o london_n of_o my_o declaration_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n this_o paper_n indeed_o say_v he_o give_v i_o a_o great_a heaviness_n of_o heart_n for_o i_o love_v the_o man_n dear_o for_o his_o amiable_a nature_n and_o excellent_a part_n and_o esteem_v he_o both_o a_o pious_a person_n and_o a_o learned_a and_o so_o do_v all_o that_o know_v he_o and_o after_o bemoan_v my_o fall_n as_o he_o call_v it_o from_o a_o little_a heaven_n the_o state_n of_o religion_n wherein_o say_v he_o for_o a_o time_n he_o shine_v like_o a_o little_a star_n in_o virtue_n and_o learning_n he_o declare_v his_o anger_n against_o i_o and_o purpose_n of_o serve_v i_o not_o with_o the_o water_n of_o shiloah_n that_o go_v soft_o but_o with_o those_o of_o rezin_n more_o tumultuous_a to_o wash_v i_o from_o the_o stain_n of_o heresy_n and_o after_o this_o leave_v i_o he_o fall_v abrupt_o on_o lament_v the_o misery_n of_o ireland_n and_o complain_v of_o injury_n do_v to_o the_o native_n of_o it_o and_o justify_v their_o proceed_n in_o their_o late_a insurrection_n which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v to_o be_v call_v rebellion_n in_o this_o he_o spend_v that_o tractate_n and_o then_o proceed_v to_o the_o great_a book_n design_v against_o i_o give_v to_o it_o this_o title_n the_o doleful_a fall_n of_o andrew_n sall_n jesuit_n of_o the_o four_o vow_n from_o the_o roman_n catholic_n and_o apostolic_a faith_n lament_v by_o his_o constant_a friend_n with_o a_o open_a rebuke_v of_o his_o embrace_v the_o confession_n contain_v in_o the_o 39_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n this_o book_n he_o begin_v with_o a_o rhetorical_a or_o satirical_a exclamation_n against_o my_o resolution_n of_o embrace_v the_o say_a confession_n and_o proceed_v to_o relate_v at_o large_a the_o virtue_n and_o learning_n of_o saint_n hierom_n saint_n augustine_n saint_n ambrose_n and_o other_o holy_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o company_n he_o say_v i_o have_v forsake_v and_o then_o make_v a_o large_a list_n of_o heretic_n of_o all_o age_n begin_v with_o luciser_n who_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v the_o first_o heretic_n before_o man_n creation_n and_o so_o come_v down_o all_o along_o by_o cain_n lamech_v the_o giant_n cham_n jannes_n and_o jambre_n with_o other_o mention_v in_o holy_a writ_n to_o these_o of_o the_o latter_a time_n relate_v their_o execrable_a vice_n and_o error_n of_o all_o which_o he_o will_v have_v i_o to_o be_v guilty_a and_o a_o associate_n of_o those_o heretic_n for_o embrace_v the_o confession_n contain_v in_o the_o 39_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n he_o pretend_v to_o discuss_v and_o censure_v some_o of_o they_o as_o also_o some_o part_n of_o my_o declaration_n and_o make_v a_o scandalous_a narrative_n of_o the_o english_a reformation_n and_o final_o conclude_v with_o a_o fervent_a exhortation_n to_o i_o to_o return_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o this_o scheme_n i_o deliver_v of_o that_o book_n the_o prudent_a reader_n may_v judge_v how_o tedious_a a_o labour_n it_o be_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o every_o thing_n contain_v in_o it_o and_o how_o impertinent_a i_o be_v so_o far_o from_o what_o he_o suppose_v i_o to_o be_v and_o from_o be_v concern_v in_o the_o heresy_n and_o for_o the_o heretic_n he_o mention_n yet_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o person_n the_o sacred_a tie_n of_o friendship_n which_o he_o profess_v for_o i_o and_o the_o good_a intention_n i_o be_o to_o believe_v he_o have_v in_o his_o writing_n and_o above_o all_o the_o love_n of_o truth_n oblige_v i_o to_o undeceive_v he_o and_o other_o that_o may_v be_v of_o his_o opinion_n in_o the_o great_a and_o gross_a mistake_n he_o be_v in_o touch_v my_o condition_n and_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o communion_n i_o have_v embrace_v i_o will_v therefore_o declare_v first_o that_o the_o religion_n we_o profess_v in_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o england_n be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o true_a primitive_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a religion_n teach_v by_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o practise_v in_o the_o first_o and_o pure_a age_n by_o the_o primitive_a church_n second_o that_o we_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o the_o heresy_n n._n n._n attribute_n to_o we_o and_o his_o brethren_n practise_v such_o calumny_n do_v manifest_v it_o be_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o move_v they_o three_o that_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o evangelical_n doctrine_n in_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v not_o so_o few_o or_o despicable_a nor_o the_o romish_a faction_n so_o considerable_a as_o they_o will_v make_v the_o ignorant_a believe_v four_o and_o last_o i_o will_v refute_v some_o seditious_a doctrine_n deliver_v in_o his_o first_o book_n that_o be_v a_o preface_n to_o the_o second_o and_o will_v conclude_v with_o a_o check_n to_o j._n e._n his_o calumny_n and_o barbarous_a abuse_n fasten_v on_o the_o protestant_a church_n chap._n ii_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v a_o true_a catholic_a church_n and_o that_o the_o doctrine_n profess_v in_o it_o be_v true_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a you_o begin_v the_o first_o chapter_n of_o your_o book_n against_o i_o n._n n._n under_o this_o character_n you_o will_v be_v name_v you_o begin_v i_o say_v with_o a_o rhetorical_a exclamation_n in_o these_o term_n o_o sall_n tell_v we_o what_o domincering_n spirit_n of_o darkness_n what_o black_a temptation_n have_v draw_v you_o out_o
of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n i_o may_v just_o return_v for_o answer_v a_o other_o exclamation_n better_o ground_v and_o say_v o_o n._n n._n tell_v we_o what_o domineer_a spirit_n of_o blindness_n what_o black_a presumption_n be_v this_o that_o so_o general_o possess_v your_o faction_n amid_o the_o light_n of_o so_o learned_a a_o age_n that_o a_o person_n of_o your_o year_n and_o degree_n shall_v not_o know_v that_o in_o the_o house_n of_o my_o heavenly_a father_n there_o be_v many_o mansion_n that_o it_o extend_v further_a than_o the_o quarter_n of_o the_o roman_a pope_n that_o by_o quit_v his_o jurisdiction_n i_o forsake_v not_o the_o whole_a house_n of_o god_n but_o though_o you_o declare_v to_o your_o reader_n that_o your_o purpose_n be_v not_o to_o deal_v with_o i_o scholastical_o but_o historical_o that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o i_o find_v not_o by_o reason_n but_o by_o rail_v and_o by_o calumny_n wherewith_o your_o usual_a armoury_n be_v plentiful_o store_v and_o by_o emty_a flourish_n upon_o false_a ground_n i_o will_v not_o engage_v in_o like_a manner_n with_o you_o but_o prove_v scholastical_o that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o formal_a and_o solid_a argument_n demonstrate_v that_o in_o all_o your_o cry_n you_o beat_v the_o air_n and_o not_o i_o that_o all_o of_o they_o be_v ground_v upon_o a_o false_a supposition_n that_o by_o forsake_v the_o romish_a communion_n i_o do_v not_o forsake_v the_o catholic_a church_n that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o communion_n i_o embrace_v be_v a_o very_a noble_a and_o sound_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o doctrine_n profess_v in_o it_o &_o propose_v to_o the_o people_n for_o the_o object_n of_o their_o belief_n be_v true_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a free_a from_o all_o heresy_n and_o falsehood_n and_o when_o i_o have_v prove_v so_o much_o in_o a_o rational_a and_o scholastic_a style_n and_o method_n it_o will_v appear_v how_o vain_a your_o attemt_fw-mi be_v of_o work_v on_o i_o by_o loud_a cry_n against_o heresy_n wherein_o i_o be_o not_o concern_v as_o if_o you_o be_v hunt_v a_o wild_a boar_n in_o a_o forest_n to_o drive_v he_o by_o clamour_n and_o shout_n into_o your_o net_n it_o be_v reason_n that_o win_v i_o and_o whereby_o i_o desire_v to_o win_v other_o not_o exclamation_n and_o cry_n of_o that_o kind_n i_o will_v not_o repete_fw-la the_o just_a complaint_n deliver_v by_o many_o learned_a writer_n of_o the_o arrogance_n of_o your_o party_n of_o their_o absurdity_n and_o impropriety_n of_o term_n in_o pretend_v that_o they_o alone_o be_v the_o catholic_a that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o universal_a church_n be_v at_o the_o best_a but_o a_o part_n of_o it_o and_o the_o same_o very_a corrupt_a and_o not_o the_o great_a part_n but_o the_o less_o by_o very_o much_o as_o hereafter_o will_v appear_v to_o go_v through_o with_o my_o engagement_n of_o prove_v by_o scholastical_a exact_a reason_n that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v a_o true_a catholic_a church_n i_o will_v take_v up_o the_o argument_n urge_v against_o this_o verity_n by_o one_o of_o the_o able_a schoolman_n that_o ever_o write_v in_o favour_n of_o your_o cause_n employ_v by_o the_o pope_n against_o our_o great_a and_o learned_a k._n james_n i_o mean_v francis_n suarez_n jesuit_n i_o will_v i_o say_v take_v up_o the_o argument_n wherewith_o this_o famous_a schoolman_n pretend_v to_o rob_v the_o church_n of_o england_n of_o the_o glorious_a title_n of_o a_o catholic_a church_n and_o declare_v by_o that_o way_n of_o argue_v which_o logician_n after_o aristotle_n do_v call_v argumentum_fw-la mirabile_fw-la that_o they_o prove_v the_o contrary_a and_o confirm_v the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o its_o right_n to_o the_o title_n of_o a_o true_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n it_o will_v indeed_o appear_v a_o singular_a triumph_n of_o truth_n that_o the_o weak_a defender_n of_o it_o shall_v wrest_v arm_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o able_a opposer_n and_o beat_v he_o with_o his_o own_o weapon_n a_o trial_n of_o this_o great_a power_n of_o truth_n i_o offer_v now_o to_o the_o view_n of_o the_o ingenious_a reader_n in_o my_o encounter_n with_o suarez_n on_o this_o subject_a i_o will_v not_o pursue_v all_o the_o amplification_n and_o excursion_n of_o this_o voluminous_a writer_n as_o not_o suitable_a to_o the_o brevity_n and_o perspicuity_n i_o intend_v to_o follow_v yet_o i_o will_v take_v up_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o his_o argument_n upon_o this_o subject_n and_o apply_v they_o to_o my_o purpose_n aforesaid_a franciscus_n suarez_n in_o his_o volume_n entitle_v defensio_fw-la fidei_fw-la catholicae_fw-la &_o apostolicae_fw-la adversus_fw-la anglicanae_n sectae_fw-la errores_fw-la in_o his_o first_o book_n from_o the_o 12._o chapter_n of_o it_o forward_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v not_o a_o catholic_a church_n &_o therefore_o that_o the_o faith_n of_o it_o be_v not_o a_o catholic_a faith_n the_o first_o foundation_n he_o lay_v to_o this_o purpose_n be_v this_o that_o these_o two_o thing_n catholic_a faith_n and_o catholic_a church_n be_v so_o unite_v as_o the_o one_o may_v not_o be_v find_v separate_a from_o the_o other_o so_o that_o no_o church_n may_v be_v catholic_a wherein_o the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v not_o profess_v neither_o may_v the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v find_v in_o any_o church_n that_o be_v not_o catholic_a thence_o he_o proceed_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v catholic_n because_o it_o have_v a_o continual_a succession_n from_o the_o first_o church_n that_o be_v so_o call_v and_o retain_v the_o same_o faith_n which_o the_o primitive_a catholic_n apostolic_a church_n do_v profess_v for_o which_o he_o cite_v tertullian_n say_v doctrinam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la romanensi_fw-la that_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n catholic_a doctrine_n be_v profess_v which_o be_v as_o much_o say_v suarez_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v it_o be_v a_o catholic_a church_n from_o all_o which_o suarez_n conclude_v n._n 13._o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v not_o catholic_a because_o it_o be_v not_o the_o roman_a church_n nor_o unite_v with_o it_o and_o there_o be_v but_o one_o catholic_a church_n as_o we_o confess_v in_o the_o creed_n how_o hard_o a_o task_n suarez_n have_v in_o prove_v to_o complete_a his_o argument_n that_o in_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n that_o faith_n and_o no_o other_o be_v teach_v which_o the_o ancient_a church_n call_v catholic_n do_v teach_v may_v appear_v by_o all_o my_o former_a discourse_n against_o their_o new_a coin_a article_n never_o mention_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o my_o present_a work_n will_v be_v to_o show_v how_o his_o argument_n wherewith_o he_o pretend_v to_o prove_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a do_v with_o more_o force_n evince_v the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o be_v true_o catholic_n and_o thus_o i_o form_v it_o to_o that_o purpose_n in_o whatsoever_o church_n that_o faith_n be_v profess_v which_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n first_o call_v catholic_n and_o apostolic_a that_o church_n be_v true_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n xx_o tertul._n in_o praescriptionibus_fw-la cap._n xx_o be_v profess_v that_o faith_n which_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n first_o call_v catholic_n and_o apostolic_a therefore_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v true_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a if_o we_o prove_v the_o minor_a proposition_n suarez_n can_v in_o justice_n deny_v the_o consequence_n and_o if_o he_o will_v insist_v upon_o his_o pretention_n of_o such_o a_o disunion_n of_o his_o church_n with_o that_o of_o england_n that_o both_o may_v not_o be_v catholic_a let_v the_o second_o consequence_n be_v of_o his_o own_o make_n that_o their_o church_n be_v no_o catholic_a church_n for_o it_o be_v not_o my_o intention_n to_o make_v they_o worse_o than_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v who_o allow_v they_o to_o be_v member_n though_o corrupt_a of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o minor_a proposition_n wherein_o the_o stress_n of_o my_o argument_n consist_v i_o prove_v thus_o the_o faith_n teach_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n first_o call_v catholic_n and_o apostolic_a be_v that_o contain_v in_o the_o three_o creed_n that_o of_o the_o apostle_n of_o never_o and_o athanasius_n profess_v and_o declare_v in_o the_o first_o four_o general_n council_n of_o nice_a ephesus_n constantinople_n and_o chalcedon_n receive_v by_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o four_o first_o age_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n all_o this_o faith_n be_v profess_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o suarez_n confess_v to_o have_v be_v declare_v by_o king_n james_n and_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o his_o majesty_n epistle_n to_o cardinal_n perron_n write_v by_o isaac_n causabon_n therefore_o that_o faith_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o
church_n of_o england_n which_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n first_o call_v catholic_n and_o apostolic_a and_o consequent_o be_v a_o church_n true_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a according_a to_o the_o foresay_a rule_n give_v we_o by_o suarez_n and_o lay_v for_o a_o foundation_n of_o his_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v catholic_a and_o true_o it_o can_v but_o appear_v strange_a that_o any_o christian_n not_o blind_v with_o partiality_n or_o prejudice_n shall_v imagine_v that_o the_o sacred_a apostle_n entrust_v to_o preach_v save_v doctrine_n to_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v not_o have_v give_v a_o sufficient_a notice_n of_o it_o in_o the_o system_fw-la of_o article_n they_o leave_v to_o we_o that_o those_o venerable_a father_n of_o the_o pure_a age_n of_o christianity_n congregat_v in_o the_o four_o first_o general_a council_n shall_v give_v we_o but_o a_o diminute_a account_n of_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a belief_n that_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n supremacy_n and_o other_o article_n of_o latter_a impression_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v be_v so_o essential_a to_o christian_a faith_n as_o none_o may_v be_v save_v without_o a_o belief_n of_o they_o this_o argument_n may_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o athanasius_n relate_v by_o suarez_n in_o the_o chapter_n above_o mention_v num_fw-la 2._o saying_n that_o the_o collection_n of_o article_n contain_v in_o his_o creed_n be_v the_o catholic_a faith_n haec_fw-la est_fw-la fides_n catholica_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o be_v the_o catholic_a faith_n which_o except_o a_o man_n believe_v he_o can_v be_v save_v but_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o faith_n call_v catholic_n and_o contain_v in_o the_o creed_n of_o athanasius_n be_v believe_v and_o profess_v therefore_o if_o any_o church_n profess_v the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v catholic_n itself_o the_o church_n of_o england_n profess_v this_o catholic_a faith_n be_v true_o catholic_n the_o second_o foundation_n lay_v by_o suarez_n in_o the_o same_o chapter_n n._n 6._o to_o prove_v that_o his_o church_n be_v catholic_n be_v to_o say_v that_o it_o do_v in_o all_o time_n profess_v the_o faith_n of_o that_o creed_n wherein_o the_o church_n be_v call_v catholic_a but_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v and_o always_o do_v profess_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o same_o creed_n therefore_o it_o have_v the_o same_o right_n to_o the_o like_a call_n the_o three_o foundation_n lay_v by_o suarez_n from_o the_o 15._o num_fw-la of_o the_o say_a chapter_n be_v a_o sign_n or_o distinctive_a use_v by_o ancient_a father_n for_o to_o know_v a_o church_n or_o congregation_n true_o catholic_n and_o to_o distinguish_v it_o from_o another_o not_o catholic_n that_o whensoever_o any_o sect_n take_v its_o name_n from_o the_o master_n or_o teacher_n of_o such_o a_o doctrine_n and_o the_o follower_n of_o it_o do_v call_v themselves_o by_o such_o a_o name_n neither_o the_o doctrine_n nor_o the_o follower_n of_o it_o be_v catholic_a for_o which_o he_o allege_v the_o testimony_n of_o athanasius_n chrysostom_n lactantius_n and_o other_o and_o the_o reason_n or_o cause_n of_o this_o distinctive_a be_v that_o every_o heresy_n bring_v in_o some_o novelty_n against_o the_o ancient_a faith_n and_o new_a thing_n must_v have_v new_a name_n whereby_o to_o be_v know_v and_o distinguish_v from_o other_o but_o it_o be_v very_o remarkable_a how_o this_o subtle_a disputant_n otherwise_o very_o exact_a and_o formal_a in_o his_o discourse_n pretend_v to_o rob_v the_o church_n of_o england_n of_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a by_o the_o principle_n now_o mention_v come_v to_o confirm_v the_o same_o name_n upon_o it_o not_o find_v it_o capable_a of_o the_o foresay_a note_n of_o a_o sect_n not_o catholic_n for_o pretend_v to_o name_v it_o from_o calvin_n he_o find_v a_o obstacle_n in_o it_o because_o calvin_n do_v not_o approve_v a_o chief_a doctrine_n of_o it_o then_o he_o pass_v to_o call_v it_o henrician_n from_o king_n henry_n the_o eigth_n because_o from_o he_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v learn_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o king_n for_o head_n or_o supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o own_o dominion_n against_o this_o also_o he_o meet_v with_o several_a obstacle_n to_o which_o i_o will_v add_v this_o other_o very_o considerable_a that_o this_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v by_o many_o age_n more_o ancient_a than_o the_o time_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o whereas_o it_o allow_v no_o other_o supremacy_n to_o our_o king_n over_o the_o church_n than_o such_o as_o the_o godly_a king_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o christian_a emperor_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v exercise_n in_o their_o respective_a dominion_n as_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o 37._o article_n and_o in_o the_o second_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n since_o suarez_n can_v not_o find_v the_o name_n of_o lutheran_n calvinist_n henrician_n or_o any_o other_o take_v from_o any_o particular_a author_n or_o teacher_n to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o this_o church_n it_o must_v follow_v from_o the_o above_o mention_a note_n of_o a_o catholic_a church_n deliver_v by_o he_o and_o take_v out_o of_o ancient_a father_n that_o it_o be_v a_o church_n true_o catholic_n that_o be_v the_o only_a name_n itself_o own_v his_o and_o the_o preacher_n of_o it_o pray_v for_o our_o king_n do_v stile_n he_o defender_n of_o the_o faith_n true_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a and_o king_n james_n in_o his_o monitory_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o christian_a prince_n style_v himself_o defender_n of_o the_o faith_n true_o christian_n catholic_a and_o apostolic_a of_o the_o ancient_a and_o primitive_a church_n and_o we_o do_v all_o pray_v hearty_o that_o our_o king_n may_v never_o defend_v any_o other_o faith_n then_o this_o chap._n ii_o suarez_n his_o argument_n take_v from_o the_o propriety_n of_o the_o word_n catholic_n apply_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v true_o catholic_n the_o four_o foundation_n lay_v by_o suarez_n in_o the_o 14_o chap._n of_o his_o foresay_a book_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v not_o catholic_a he_o take_v from_o the_o propriety_n &_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n catholic_n he_o suppose_v that_o according_a to_o the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n in_o greek_a catholic_n be_v the_o same_o as_o universal_a or_o common_a which_o universality_n he_o say_v be_v fourfold_a in_o relation_n to_o the_o present_a purpose_n first_o as_o to_o the_o matter_n or_o object_n of_o our_o belief_n that_o it_o be_v entire_a comprehend_v all_o point_n belong_v to_o christian_a and_o save_v faith_n second_o that_o it_o have_v a_o universal_a or_o common_a reason_n of_o belief_n which_o common_a reason_n or_o rule_n must_v be_v divine_a truth_n or_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o give_v testimony_n to_o truth_n according_a to_o that_o expression_n of_o saint_n paul_n 1_o thess_n 2.13_o when_o you_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o you_o hear_v of_o we_o you_o receive_v it_o not_o as_o the_o word_n of_o man_n but_o as_o it_o be_v in_o truth_n the_o word_n of_o god_n three_o universality_n be_v require_v in_o relation_n to_o the_o degree_n and_o order_n of_o person_n according_a to_o that_o description_n of_o a_o church_n give_v by_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la lib._n 2._o contra_fw-la parmenianum_fw-la certa_fw-la membra_fw-la sva_fw-la habet_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la episcopos_fw-la presbyteros_fw-la diaconos_fw-la minister_n &_o turbam_fw-la fidelium_fw-la that_o the_o church_n have_v its_o certain_a member_n bishop_n priest_n deacon_n minister_n and_o a_o congregation_n of_o the_o faithful_a the_o four_o and_o chief_a universality_n require_v for_o the_o propriety_n of_o the_o name_n catholic_n be_v that_o a_o church_n to_o be_v such_o be_v extend_v over_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n according_a to_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o say_v optatus_n lib._n 2._o contra_fw-la donatistas_n ubi_fw-la ergo_fw-la erit_fw-la proprietas_fw-la catholici_fw-la nominis_fw-la quod_fw-la sit_fw-la rationabilis_fw-la &_o ubique_fw-la diffusat_fw-la that_o the_o propriety_n of_o the_o name_n catholic_n require_v it_o shall_v be_v a_o church_n rational_a and_o diffuse_v over_o all_o place_n suarez_n endeavour_v to_o prove_v that_o all_o these_o propriety_n of_o universality_n belong_v to_o a_o catholic_a church_n be_v want_v to_o this_o of_o england_n that_o it_o may_v be_v call_v catholic_n first_o as_o to_o the_o material_a universality_n or_o integrity_n of_o article_n necessary_a to_o a_o catholic_a faith_n he_o pretend_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v deficient_a in_o several_a article_n as_o he_o promise_v to_o prove_v elsewhere_o but_o at_o present_a single_n out_o as_o chief_a that_o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n which_o the_o church_n of_o england_n deny_v and_o he_o promise_v to_o prove_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o a_o catholic_a faith_n i_o commend_v suarez_n his_o ingenuity_n and_o
perspicacity_n in_o strike_v the_o nail_n in_o the_o head_n this_o indeed_o be_v that_o stumble_a stone_n and_o rock_n of_o offence_n this_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o i_o may_v say_v the_o only_a cause_n of_o that_o irreconcilable_a disunion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o we_o we_o know_v by_o certain_a and_o well_o authorize_v 152._o authorize_v tortura_fw-la torti_fw-la pag._n 152._o record_n that_o pope_n paul_n the_o four_o offer_v queen_n elizabeth_n to_o approve_v of_o the_o reformation_n if_o the_o queen_n will_v acknowledge_v his_o primacy_n and_o the_o reformation_n from_o he_o and_o he_o be_v dead_a his_o successor_n plus_fw-fr the_fw-fr 4._o prosecute_v the_o same_o as_o appear_v by_o his_o letter_n write_v the_o 5_o 1560._o 5_o cambden_n anno_fw-la 1560._o of_o 5._o of_o twisden_n h._n vind._n cap._n ix_o n._n 5._o may_n 1560._o and_o send_v by_o vincentius_n parpalia_n offer_v to_o confirm_v the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o english_a church_n if_o she_o will_v acknowledge_v his_o supremacy_n this_o be_v tell_v by_o sir_n roger_n twisden_n as_o he_o relate_v himself_o to_o a_o italian_a gentleman_n verse_v in_o public_a affair_n together_o with_o the_o ground_n on_o which_o he_o speak_v it_o well_o say_v the_o gentleman_n if_o this_o be_v hear_v in_o rome_n among_o religious_a man_n it_o will_v never_o gain_v credit_n but_o with_o such_o as_o have_v in_o their_o hand_n the_o maneggi_fw-la della_fw-it corte_fw-la the_o management_n of_o the_o court_n affair_n it_o may_v be_v hold_v true_a and_o indeed_o su●h_o as_o know_v the_o spirit_n of_o that_o court_n may_v easy_o believe_v that_o if_o this_o great_a point_n of_o the_o supremacy_n the_o foundation_n of_o their_o power_n and_o grandeur_n be_v agree_v upon_o they_o will_v easy_o wink_v at_o other_o dissension_n whereof_o we_o have_v a_o pregnant_a testimony_n from_o bellarmin_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la cap._n 20._o assert_v that_o even_o such_o as_o have_v no_o interior_a faith_n nor_o any_o christian_a virtue_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n provide_v they_o do_v but_o outward_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n though_o it_o be_v only_o for_o some_o temporal_a interest_n so_o ready_a they_o be_v in_o rome_n to_o embrace_v all_o sort_n of_o man_n provide_v they_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n this_o be_v establish_v all_o be_v well_o be_v deny_v the_o best_a of_o man_n and_o sound_a believer_n in_o christ_n must_v be_v damn_v heretic_n by_o sentence_n of_o that_o court._n but_o i_o shall_v declare_v sufficient_o in_o the_o 15._o chapter_n of_o the_o 2_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n how_o vain_a the_o pretence_n of_o suarez_n and_o his_o party_n be_v to_o make_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n a_o article_n of_o save_a faith_n how_o unjust_a and_o tyrannical_a a_o usurpation_n it_o be_v how_o far_o the_o best_a pope_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v from_o pretend_v to_o it_o and_o more_o from_o press_v it_o upon_o christian_n as_o a_o article_n of_o save_v faith_n and_o indeed_o it_o must_v appear_v strange_a to_o any_o impartial_a judgement_n that_o the_o system_fw-la of_o article_n contain_v in_o the_o three_o creed_n and_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n which_o gain_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a to_o the_o church_n first_o call_v so_o shall_v not_o suffice_v to_o make_v a_o church_n catholic_n in_o all_o time_n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o england_n profess_v all_o those_o article_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o true_o catholic_n though_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n not_o contain_v in_o the_o foresay_a system_n nor_o ever_o own_a by_o the_o church_n first_o call_v catholic_n as_o hereafter_o will_v be_v prove_v as_o to_o the_o second_o sort_n of_o universality_n consist_v in_o take_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o a_o common_a reason_n or_o rule_v of_o belief_n how_o can_v any_o pretend_v the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o be_v deficient_a herein_o have_v ever_o protest_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n contain_v in_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v the_o prime_n and_o only_a rule_n of_o its_o belief_n while_o the_o roman_a church_n deny_v to_o stand_v to_o this_o rule_n as_o unable_a to_o make_v out_o all_o the_o belief_n it_o will_v force_v upon_o we_o what_o suarez_n pretend_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n want_v a_o rule_n infallible_a for_o know_v which_o be_v true_a scripture_n and_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o it_o which_o they_o conceive_v to_o have_v themselves_o in_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n i_o shall_v declare_v in_o the_o eight_o chap._n of_o the_o 2_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n how_o vain_a it_o be_v we_o have_v in_o universal_a tradition_n and_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n mean_v sufficient_o certain_a for_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a scripture_n and_o which_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o it_o in_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o for_o other_o less_o necessary_a if_o there_o be_v obscurity_n and_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n among_o our_o writer_n so_o be_v there_o among_o they_o nor_o can_v their_o pretend_a infallibility_n ever_o make_v they_o agree_v nay_o among_o the_o best_a and_o wise_a father_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v always_o a_o great_a diversity_n of_o opinion_n in_o point_n not_o fundamental_a without_o breach_n of_o catholic_a and_o christian_a union_n now_o concern_v the_o three_o kind_n of_o union_n or_o universality_n consist_v in_o a_o hierarchical_a order_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n etc._n etc._n suarez_n be_v much_o mistake_v in_o say_v that_o we_o have_v they_o not_o true_a and_o legal_a i_o will_v declare_v at_o large_a from_o the_o five_o chapter_n follow_v that_o we_o have_v all_o the_o security_n they_o have_v of_o a_o legal_a sucession_n and_o true_a ordination_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n it_o be_v their_o concern_n we_o shall_v not_o be_v find_v deficient_a herein_o for_o any_o defect_n conceive_v in_o our_o hierarchy_n will_v reflect_v upon_o they_o final_o touch_v the_o four_o manner_n of_o universality_n signify_v by_o the_o name_n catholic_n that_o a_o church_n or_o faith_n so_o call_v shall_v be_v extend_v over_o all_o the_o earth_n suarez_n exceed_v much_o in_o deny_v this_o property_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o faith_n profess_v in_o it_o say_v it_o pass_v not_o the_o bound_n of_o british_a land_n to_o which_o be_v contrary_a that_o grave_n and_o modest_a testimony_n of_o king_n james_n relate_v by_o suarez_n in_o the_o same_o place_n chapter_n xv_o n_z 6._o nos_fw-la dei_fw-la benesicio_fw-la nec_fw-la numero_fw-la nec_fw-la dignitate_fw-la ita_fw-la sumus_fw-la contemnendi_fw-la qui_fw-la ●●ono_fw-la vicinis_fw-la nostris_fw-la exemplo_fw-la praeire_fw-la possimis_fw-la quandoquidem_fw-la christiani_n orbis_fw-la omniumque_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la ordinum_fw-la inde_fw-la à_fw-la regibus_fw-la liberisque_fw-la principibus_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la insimae_fw-la conditionis_fw-la homines_fw-la pars_fw-la propè_fw-la media_fw-la in_o nostram_fw-la religionem_fw-la consensit_fw-la we_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v not_o so_o despicable_a either_o for_o number_n or_o dignity_n that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v a_o good_a example_n to_o our_o neighbour_n whereas_o near_o the_o one_o half_a of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o all_o order_n of_o people_n in_o it_o from_o king_n and_o sovereign_n prince_n to_o the_o mean_a sort_n of_o person_n have_v already_o embrace_v our_o religion_n i_o shall_v declare_v hereafter_o from_o the_o xix_o chapter_n descend_v to_o particular_n that_o this_o say_n of_o king_n james_n be_v both_o true_a and_o modest_a and_o that_o more_o than_o the_o one_o half_a of_o the_o christian_a world_n agree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o unity_n of_o faith_n sufficient_a to_o render_v they_o catholic_n and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v cease_v brag_v of_o her_o extent_n be_v now_o come_v so_o short_a of_o that_o latitude_n which_o make_v she_o swell_v to_o the_o contemt_a of_o all_o other_o christian_a church_n now_o far_o exceed_v she_o in_o number_n and_o lustre_n of_o prince_n and_o kingdom_n embrace_v the_o faith_n profess_v in_o they_o suarez_n prevent_v a_o check_n to_o his_o argument_n from_o this_o discovery_n in_o the_o xvi_o chapter_n num_fw-la 4._o of_o his_o say_a book_n premise_n that_o this_o general_a extension_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n over_o all_o the_o world_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o extension_n either_o by_o right_n or_o by_o actual_a possession_n and_o though_o the_o latter_a be_v deficient_a the_o former_a of_o right_n can_v want_v christ_n have_v command_v that_o his_o gospel_n shall_v be_v preach_v to_o all_o the_o world_n but_o how_o can_v suarez_n pretend_v that_o this_o right_n shall_v belong_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o church_n rather_o than_o to_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n whereas_o this_o latter_a preach_v only_o for_o object_n of_o
belief_n the_o word_n of_o god_n contain_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o the_o other_o canonical_a scripture_n while_o the_o roman_a preach_v article_n coin_v by_o herself_o and_o never_o give_v to_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v preach_v as_o we_o shall_v show_v abundant_o hereafter_o refute_v the_o error_n of_o it_o chap._n iu._n the_o church_n of_o england_n prove_v to_o be_v apostolic_a upon_o the_o foundation_n lay_v by_o suarez_n to_o rob_v it_o of_o that_o title_n svarez_n after_o have_v use_v his_o best_a endeavour_n to_o deprive_v the_o church_n of_o england_n of_o her_o right_a to_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a with_o so_o little_a success_n as_o we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n he_o pass_v in_o the_o 17._o chapter_n of_o his_o foresay_a book_n to_o rob_v it_o of_o the_o name_n of_o apostolic_a &_o so_o to_o deprive_v king_n james_n of_o the_o title_n he_o give_v himself_o of_o defender_n of_o the_o faith_n true_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v not_o apostolic_a he_o lay_v this_o foundation_n that_o two_o thing_n be_v requisite_a to_o make_v a_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n apostolic_a the_o first_o that_o it_o proceed_v in_o some_o manner_n from_o the_o preach_a word_n or_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n second_o that_o it_o be_v convey_v to_o we_o by_o legal_a tradition_n and_o succession_n the_o first_o be_v contain_v in_o those_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n ephes_n 2.19_o now_o therefore_o you_o be_v no_o more_o stranger_n and_o foreigner_n but_o fellow_n citizen_n with_o the_o saint_n &_o of_o the_o household_n of_o god_n &_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n the_o second_o requisite_a be_v declare_v by_o irenaeus_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 3._o in_o these_o word_n traditionem_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la in_o omni_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la adest_fw-la perspicere_fw-la quae_fw-la vera_fw-la velint_fw-la audire_fw-la &_o habemus_fw-la annumerare_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n instituti_fw-la sunt_fw-la episcopi_fw-la in_fw-la ecclesiis_fw-la &_o successores_fw-la eorum_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la nos_fw-la who_o be_v willing_a to_o hear_v truth_n must_v look_v upon_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o all_o church_n and_o we_o can_v number_v those_o that_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n to_o our_o own_o time_n suarez_n pretend_v these_o two_o requisite_n to_o be_v want_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o merit_v the_o name_n of_o apostolic_a first_o say_v he_o because_o the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o be_v not_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n neither_o be_v it_o take_v out_o of_o their_o doctrine_n or_o convey_v to_o we_o by_o lawful_a tradition_n against_o which_o position_n he_o bring_v king_n james_n protest_v himself_o to_o believe_v admit_v and_o reverence_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o three_o creed_n and_o the_o first_o four_o general_n council_n in_o which_o sacred_a fountain_n he_o judge_v the_o apostolic_a faith_n to_o be_v contain_v and_o suarez_n acknowledge_v that_o king_n james_n speak_v herein_o not_o only_o his_o own_o sense_n but_o the_o sense_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o england_n which_o be_v no_o small_a glory_n to_o it_o but_o how_o can_v suarez_n make_v out_o that_o the_o apostolic_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n be_v not_o sufficient_o contain_v in_o those_o sacred_a fountain_n of_o the_o scripture_n creed_n and_o council_n receive_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n see_v reader_n and_o admire_v his_o answer_n though_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o say_a book_n consider_v in_o itself_o say_v he_o be_v catholic_n apostolic_a faith_n or_o rather_o a_o part_n of_o it_o for_o he_o pretend_v that_o all_o catholic_a faith_n be_v not_o contain_v in_o those_o fountain_n yet_o as_o it_o be_v receive_v by_o sectary_n either_o it_o be_v not_o apostlic_a or_o it_o may_v not_o be_v certain_o take_v for_o such_o first_o because_o they_o can_v be_v certain_a whether_o those_o book_n they_o receive_v be_v canonical_a or_o the_o council_n legal_a second_o that_o they_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n creed_n or_o council_n so_o that_o in_o conclusion_n the_o divinity_n of_o our_o saviour_n preach_v by_o a_o romish_a priest_n be_v catholic_a apostolic_a faith_n but_o not_o so_o when_o preach_v by_o one_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o shall_v indeed_o think_v this_o only_a consequence_n to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a confutation_n of_o this_o unhappy_a subtlety_n of_o suarez_n but_o further_a to_o his_o reason_n when_o effective_o we_o be_v secure_v that_o the_o scripture_n receive_v by_o we_o be_v true_o canonical_a and_o divine_a and_o our_o adversary_n do_v allow_v it_o what_o need_n be_v there_o for_o quarrel_v about_o the_o ground_n and_o motive_n of_o our_o security_n therein_o and_o touch_v the_o sense_n both_o of_o scripture_n creed_n &_o council_n the_o descripta_fw-la the_o se_fw-la tria_fw-la symbola_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la se●su_fw-la interpretari_fw-la quem_fw-la illis_fw-la esse_fw-la voluerunt_fw-la patres_fw-la atque_fw-la concilia_fw-la a_o quibus_fw-la font_n condita_fw-la atque_fw-la descripta_fw-la say_n of_o k._n james_n relate_v by_o suarez_n n._n 9_o that_o he_o do_v take_v the_o creed_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n which_o the_o father_n and_o counsel_n by_o who_o they_o be_v make_v be_v willing_a to_o give_v to_o they_o well_o consider_v be_v both_o pious_a and_o prudent_a when_o the_o word_n of_o a_o scripture_n or_o article_n be_v capable_a of_o different_a sense_n all_o consistent_a with_o christian_a verity_n and_o none_o repugnant_a to_o sound_a doctrine_n it_o be_v b●t_v catholic_a pretty_a to_o suspend_v a_o firm_a assent_n to_o one_o and_o keep_v a_o readiness_n to_o adhere_v to_o what_o may_v be_v the_o real_a intention_n of_o the_o sacred_a writer_n for_o example_n that_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n touch_v our_o saviour_n descent_n into_o hell_n be_v capable_a of_o different_a sense_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o hell_n he_o descend_v into_o it_o be_v a_o groundless_a conjecture_n of_o suarez_n that_o king_n james_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n with_o he_o shall_v deny_v a_o real_a descent_n and_o say_v he_o do_v suffer_v the_o pain_n of_o hell_n in_o the_o garden_n as_o may_v be_v see_v by_o the_o grave_a discourse_n of_o learned_a dr._n pearson_n now_o bishop_n of_o chester_n upon_o that_o article_n we_o believe_v he_o descend_v real_o into_o hell_n that_o be_v to_o say_v into_o some_o place_n under_o the_o earth_n it_o may_v be_v without_o any_o absurdity_n to_o the_o hell_n of_o the_o damn_a as_o declare_v in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n c._n 27._o but_o whether_o it_o be_v that_o hell_n or_o a_o other_o subterranean_a place_n he_o descend_v into_o we_o may_v with_o piety_n and_o prudence_n suspend_v our_o judgement_n have_v no_o divine_a oracle_n to_o ground_n upon_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o place_n and_o suarez_n give_v we_o a_o signal_n example_n of_o this_o resignation_n of_o our_o intellect_n to_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o writer_n in_o a_o matter_n less_o sacred_a than_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n i_o mean_v the_o expression_n of_o pope_n touch_v indulgency_n find_v insuperable_a difficulty_n in_o give_v a_o congruous_a sense_n to_o term_n of_o that_o art_n which_o appear_v nonsense_n as_o those_o of_o plena_fw-la plenior_fw-la plenissima_fw-la full_a more_o full_a most_o full_a if_o full_a or_o plenary_a how_o can_v another_o be_v more_o full_a etc._n etc._n he_o confess_v not_o to_o understand_v the_o propriety_n of_o these_o and_o other_o expression_n use_v upon_o that_o subject_a but_o will_v rest_v upon_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n which_o know_v the_o meaning_n of_o those_o measure_n as_o will_v be_v see_v in_o the_o 39_o chapter_n and_o certain_o all_o those_o of_o his_o party_n have_v need_n of_o this_o kind_n of_o resignation_n to_o rest_v upon_o if_o they_o will_v have_v quiet_a for_o there_o be_v no_o article_n of_o creed_n or_o council_n without_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n touch_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o it_o among_o their_o doctor_n but_o this_o author_n have_v more_o to_o say_v to_o we_o that_o the_o point_n wherein_o we_o differ_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v never_o teach_v by_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n for_o example_n say_v he_o to_o make_v the_o king_n supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n this_o nettle_n he_o still_o what_o place_n of_o scripture_n what_o history_n do_v warrant_v this_o doctrine_n what_o christian_n or_o godly_a king_n do_v practice_v such_o a_o supremacy_n over_o the_o church_n to_o which_o i_o say_v that_o we_o have_v a_o warrant_n for_o this_o subjection_n to_o our_o prince_n in_o the_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n rom._n xiii_o 1._o let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o high_a power_n where_o no_o distinction_n be_v
posterity_n with_o false_a record_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o romish_a party_n be_v find_v guilty_a by_o uncessant_a experience_n of_o asperse_v without_o measure_n or_o regard_n of_o truth_n the_o protestant_n cause_n and_o all_o defender_n of_o it_o whereof_o the_o story_n of_o ordination_n at_o the_o nagshead_n confident_o revive_v of_o late_a by_o one_o of_o a_o great_a call_n and_o confute_v to_o his_o shame_n and_o confusion_n by_o the_o lord_n primate_n bramhall_n may_v be_v a_o conspicuous_a evidence_n to_o which_o i_o can_v add_v not_o a_o few_o more_o of_o my_o own_o experience_n and_o certain_a knowledge_n they_o get_v a_o great_a person_n to_o relate_v in_o dublin_n that_o i_o be_v strike_v dumb_a at_o make_v of_o my_o declaration_n in_o the_o church_n of_o cashel_n and_o that_o i_o fall_v sudden_o dead_a soon_o after_o go_v in_o the_o street_n a_o miracle_n i_o suppose_v be_v put_v by_o this_o time_n into_o the_o annual_a letter_n of_o rome_n and_o indies_n to_o terrify_v other_o from_o follow_v my_o example_n an_o other_o person_n of_o like_a quality_n be_v employ_v to_o testify_v that_o after_o my_o foresay_a declaration_n make_v at_o cashel_n a_o extraordinary_a concourse_n of_o people_n be_v present_a at_o it_o i_o go_v to_o a_o nobleman_n house_n where_o my_o habitation_n be_v former_o and_o say_v mass_n in_o it_o whereas_o i_o be_v not_o out_o of_o the_o arch-bishop_n company_n from_o that_o day_n until_o i_o come_v to_o dublin_n with_o a_o considerable_a number_n of_o man_n and_o arm_n to_o guard_v i_o and_o after_o some_o month_n constant_a retirement_n in_o the_o college_n of_o dublin_n without_o ever_o lie_v out_o of_o it_o or_o go_v abroad_o but_o seldom_o to_o the_o castle_n and_o few_o house_n of_o the_o chief_a prelate_n and_o nobility_n a_o irish_a papist_n tell_v confident_o to_o one_o of_o my_o lord_n chancellor_n gentleman_n who_o relate_v it_o to_o i_o after_o that_o he_o see_v i_o few_o day_n before_o say_v mass_n at_o kilkullen_a bridg_n where_o i_o be_v not_o in_o some_o year_n before_o that_o time_n after_o my_o public_a sermon_n of_o recantation_n at_o dublin_n and_o the_o gentleman_n ask_v how_o that_o can_v possible_o be_v so_o i_o be_v in_o their_o sight_n and_o company_n and_o never_o out_o of_o dublin_n all_o that_o time_n he_o take_v a_o book_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o swear_v by_o it_o that_o what_o he_o say_v be_v true_a at_o this_o very_a instant_n it_o happen_v that_o i_o shall_v come_v out_o of_o christ-church_n from_o prayer_n in_o company_n of_o a_o other_o gentleman_n of_o the_o college_n and_o my_o lord_n chancellor_n gentleman_n see_v i_o ask_v of_o the_o swearer_n whether_o he_o do_v know_v i_o if_o he_o see_v i_o he_o answer_v yea_o and_o ask_v whether_o i_o be_v of_o those_o two_o that_o go_v by_o he_o say_v no._n but_o be_v tell_v i_o be_v one_o of_o they_o he_o confess_v that_o he_o never_o see_v i_o before_o so_o punctual_a as_o this_o be_v their_o report_n of_o we_o if_o they_o be_v but_o seldom_o we_o may_v take_v they_o for_o mistake_n but_o see_v they_o so_o frequent_a and_o continual_a we_o have_v too_o much_o ground_n for_o suspect_v a_o set_a purpose_n of_o impose_v upon_o we_o especial_o their_o most_o creditable_a doctor_n teach_v they_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o raise_v false_a testimony_n in_o defence_n of_o their_o credit_n that_o their_o opposer_n may_v not_o be_v believe_v the_o author_n of_o this_o godly_a doctrine_n confessor_n and_o preacher_n to_o emperor_n and_o prince_n you_o may_v see_v quote_v by_o john_n caramuel_n titular_a bishop_n of_o misia_n in_o theologia_n fundamentali_fw-la fundamento_fw-la 55._o n._n 1589._o this_o be_v so_o it_o appear_v how_o little_a credit_n be_v due_a to_o their_o testimony_n against_o our_o cause_n and_o person_n i_o premise_v second_o that_o by_o sacred_a order_n a_o character_n indelible_a be_v give_v to_o the_o person_n ordain_v whether_o bishop_n priest_n or_o deacon_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o spiritual_a sign_n or_o ability_n to_o certain_a function_n uncapable_a of_o be_v take_v away_o by_o humane_a power_n or_o accident_n so_o it_o be_v define_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n sess_v 7._o can_n 9_o si_fw-mi quis_fw-la dixerit_fw-la in_o tribus_fw-la sacramentis_fw-la baptismo_fw-la sc_fw-la confirmatione_fw-la &_o ordine_fw-la non_fw-la imprimi_fw-la characterem_fw-la in_o anima_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la signum_fw-la quoddam_fw-la spiritual_fw-la &_o indelibile_fw-la unde_fw-la ea_fw-la iterari_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la anathema_n esto_fw-la if_o any_o shall_v say_v that_o in_o these_o three_o sacrament_n baptism_n confirmation_n and_o order_n a_o character_n be_v not_o leave_v in_o the_o soul_n viz._n a_o spiritual_a and_o undelible_a sign_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n they_o may_v not_o be_v repete_v let_v he_o be_v anathema_n it_o be_v not_o my_o present_a business_n to_o dispute_v with_o the_o council_n upon_o what_o account_n it_o call_v confirmation_n and_o order_n sacrament_n but_o to_o note_v that_o by_o it_o be_v define_v that_o sacred_a order_n do_v leave_v a_o character_n indelible_a and_o that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v reiterated_a upon_o the_o same_o person_n the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v deliver_v again_o in_o the_o 23._o sess_v 3._o can_v of_o the_o same_o council_n add_v that_o who_o be_v once_o a_o priest_n can_v never_o be_v make_v a_o layman_n and_o in_o the_o eight_o council_n of_o toledo_n cap._n 7._o and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n under_o eugenius_n the_o 4_o in_o decree_n de_fw-fr union_n hence_o follow_v say_v bellarmine_n that_o no_o superior_a power_n can_v hinder_v a_o bishop_n from_o confirm_v and_o ordain_v if_o he_o please_v to_o do_v it_o and_o peter_n sotus_n say_v that_o doubtless_o no_o heresy_n excommunication_n or_o even_o degradation_n take_v away_o the_o power_n of_o order_n though_o the_o use_n of_o they_o may_v be_v unlawful_a so_o as_o though_o a_o heretic_n excommunicate_v or_o degrade_v person_n sin_n in_o give_v order_n or_o administer_a sacrament_n yet_o the_o action_n be_v valid_a for_o where_o such_o a_o character_n be_v say_v bellarmine_n god_n in_o force_n of_o a_o covenant_n do_v concur_v to_o produce_v a_o supernatural_a effect_n to_o wit_n to_o give_v a_o other_o character_n even_o episcopal_a 12._o episcopal_a bellarmine_n de_fw-fr confir_n cap._n 12._o 1560._o 12._o peter_n soto_n lect_n 5._o de_fw-fr inst_z sacer._n lin_v 5_o fol._n 279._o edit_n dil_v a_o 1560._o 19_o 1560._o ubicunque_fw-la est_fw-la talis_fw-la character_n deus_fw-la ex_fw-la pacto_fw-la concurrit_fw-la ad_fw-la effectum_fw-la supernaturalem_fw-la producendum_fw-la bellar._n de_fw-fr sacramentorum_fw-la effectu_fw-la lib._n 2._o c._n 19_o these_o two_o premise_n suppose_v for_o examine_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n which_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o this_o work_n we_o be_v to_o rely_v upon_o the_o public_a authentic_a record_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n faithful_o produce_v by_o mr._n francis_n mason_n and_o true_o examine_v at_o the_o request_n of_o mr._n fitz_n herbert_n who_o see_v a_o mortal_a wound_n give_v to_o the_o romish_a calumny_n against_o the_o lawful_a ordination_n of_o english_a clergy_n by_o this_o narrative_a of_o mr._n mason_n desire_v that_o those_o record_n relate_v by_o mr._n mason_n shall_v be_v show_v to_o some_o learned_a person_n of_o the_o romish_a communion_n which_o be_v according_o do_v by_o the_o most_o reverend_a father_n in_o god_n george_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n who_o have_v read_v this_o challenge_n in_o fitz._n herbert_n book_n call_v to_o he_o mr._n collington_n then_o repute_v archipresbyter_n mr._n laithwait_n and_o mr._n faircloath_v jesuit_n and_o mr._n leagume_v a_o secular_a priest_n all_o these_o be_v bring_v before_o the_o archbishop_n the_o 12._o of_o may_v 1614_o in_o presence_n of_o the_o right_n reverend_a bishop_n of_o london_n dunelm_n ely_n bath_n and_o wells_n lincoln_n and_o rochester_n the_o say_a record_n be_v give_v to_o they_o to_o see_v feel_v read_v and_o turn_v and_o have_v consider_v all_o exact_o they_o declare_v that_o no_o exception_n can_v be_v take_v against_o that_o book_n in_o their_o opinion_n and_o the_o archbishop_n desire_v they_o to_o signify_v so_o much_o by_o letter_n to_o fitz_n herbert_n they_o promise_v to_o do_v it_o as_o mr._n champney_n relate_v the_o story_n and_o the_o same_o record_n be_v at_o this_o day_n and_o always_o to_o be_v see_v if_o man_n will_v not_o be_v satisfy_v otherwise_o then_o by_o eyesight_n fitz_n herbert_n append._n n._n 13._o the_o record_n produce_v by_o mr._n mason_n be_v thus_o justify_v we_o will_v take_v our_o measure_n by_o they_o to_o clear_v this_o point_n first_o our_o adversary_n allow_v we_o that_o the_o bishop_n rule_v in_o england_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o his_o reign_n be_v lawful_a bishop_n and_o legal_o ordain_v according_a to_o
that_o the_o word_n of_o their_o pontifical_a accipe_fw-la potestatem_fw-la offerendi_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la provivis_fw-la &_o defunctis_fw-la be_v contain_v in_o those_o other_o of_o our_o saviour_n at_o the_o last_o supper_n hoc_fw-la facite_fw-la in_o meam_fw-la commemorationem_fw-la do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o be_v notorious_o weak_a gratis_o dicitur_fw-la gratis_o negatur_fw-la as_o it_o be_v say_v without_o ground_n so_o it_o may_v be_v deny_v without_o regard_n now_o as_o to_o the_o form_n of_o ordination_n 9_o ordination_n bellar._n de_fw-fr sacramento_n ordinis_fw-la lib._n 1._o c._n 9_o bellarmine_n tell_v we_o that_o all_o agree_v in_o take_v for_o form_n the_o word_n that_o be_v pronounce_v by_o the_o minister_n when_o he_o exhibit_v the_o sensible_a sign_n or_o matter_n he_o add_v that_o though_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o mention_v particular_a word_n to_o be_v pronounce_v in_o each_o order_n yet_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n ambrose_n jerome_n and_o augustine_n do_v express_o teach_v that_o a_o form_n of_o word_n suitable_a to_o each_o order_n be_v require_v and_o be_v practise_v so_o in_o the_o ancient_a roman_a ordinal_n and_o so_o be_v practise_v to_o this_o day_n in_o the_o ordinal_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o in_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o his_o time_n be_v dispose_v according_a to_o the_o more_o qualify_v ancient_a ordinal_n use_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o ordination_n of_o deacon_n the_o bishop_n lay_v his_o hand_n several_o upon_o the_o head_n of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o kneel_v before_o he_o say_v take_v thou_o authority_n to_o execute_v the_o office_n of_o a_o deacon_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n commit_v unto_o thou_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n after_o deliver_v to_o every_o one_o of_o they_o the_o new_a testament_n he_o say_v take_v thou_o authority_n to_o read_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o to_o preach_v the_o same_o if_o thou_o be_v thereto_o license_v by_o the_o bishop_n himself_o in_o ordain_v priest_n the_o bishop_n with_o the_o priest_n present_v do_v lay_v their_o hand_n several_o upon_o the_o head_n of_o every_o one_o that_o receive_v the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n the_o receiver_n kneel_v and_o the_o bishop_n say_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o office_n and_o work_n of_o a_o priest_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n now_o commit_v unto_o thou_o by_o the_o imposition_n of_o our_o hand_n who_o sin_n thou_o do_v forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v and_o who_o sin_n thou_o do_v retain_v they_o be_v retain_v and_o be_v thou_o a_o faithful_a dispenser_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o holy_a sacrament_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o consecration_n of_o bishop_n the_o archbishop_z and_z bishop_n present_a do_v lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o elect_a bishop_n kneel_v before_o they_o and_o the_o archbishop_n say_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o office_n and_o work_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n now_o commit_v unto_o thou_o by_o the_o imposition_n of_o our_o hand_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n amen_n and_o remember_v that_o thou_o stir_v up_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v give_v thou_o by_o this_o imposition_n of_o our_o hand_n for_o god_n have_v not_o give_v we_o the_o spirit_n of_o fear_n but_o of_o power_n and_o love_n and_o soberness_n the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v thus_o exact_a in_o observe_v the_o form_n and_o matter_n essential_a to_o holy_a order_n it_o appear_v how_o rash_a and_o false_a be_v kellison_n in_o say_v that_o in_o king_n edward_n time_n neither_o matter_n nor_o form_n of_o ordination_n be_v use_v how_o vain_a and_o windy_a 3●9_n windy_a fitz_n symons_n britonomach_n p._n 3●9_n fitz_n symons_n his_o flourish_n cu_z in_o sacramento_n mutatur_fw-la materia_fw-la forma_fw-la intentio_fw-la faciendi_fw-la quod_fw-la facit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quae_fw-la ejus_fw-la essentiam_fw-la conficiunt_fw-la desinit_fw-la esse_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la omnium_fw-la qui_fw-la ante_fw-la te_fw-la vixerunt_fw-la tecum_fw-la vivunt_fw-la &_o post_fw-la te_fw-la victuri_fw-la sunt_fw-la orthodox_n sentientium_fw-la consensu_fw-la when_o in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o matter_n form_n and_o intention_n of_o do_v what_o the_o church_n do_v which_o make_v up_o the_o essence_n of_o it_o be_v change_v it_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o catholic_n that_o live_v before_o you_o do_v live_v with_o you_o and_o after_o you_o shall_v live_v true_o fitz_n symons_n seem_v to_o study_v more_o how_o his_o phrase_n shall_v be_v round_o and_o sound_a then_o to_o furnish_v it_o with_o sense_n and_o truth_n so_o as_o without_o injury_n i_o may_v say_v here_o of_o he_o that_o sine_fw-la ment_fw-la sonum_fw-la set_v aside_o what_o belong_v to_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n who_o tell_v fitz_n symons_n that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n have_v not_o a_o intention_n to_o do_v what_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n do_v and_o though_o their_o intention_n be_v to_o do_v express_o what_o their_o own_o church_n of_o england_n do_v and_o not_o what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n bellarmin_n declare_v that_o not_o to_o be_v a_o alteration_n annul_v the_o sacrament_n non_fw-la est_fw-la opus_fw-la intendere_fw-la quod_fw-la facit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la romana_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la facit_fw-la vera_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la illa_fw-la sit_fw-la vel_fw-la quod_fw-la christus_fw-la instituit_fw-la vel_fw-la quod_fw-la faciunt_fw-la christiani_n imo_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la intendat_fw-la facere_fw-la quod_fw-la aliqua_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la particularis_fw-la &_o falsa_fw-la ut_fw-la genevensis_fw-la &_o intendat_fw-la non_fw-la facere_fw-la quod_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la romana_fw-la respondeo_fw-la etiam_fw-la id_fw-la sufficere_fw-la nam_fw-la qui_fw-la intendit_fw-la facere_fw-la quod_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la genevensis_fw-la intendit_fw-la facere_fw-la quod_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la universalis_fw-la it_o be_v not_o necessary_a say_v bellarmin_n to_o have_v a_o intention_n of_o do_v what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v but_o what_o the_o true_a church_n which_o soever_o that_o be_v nay_o if_o he_o shall_v intend_v to_o do_v what_o some_o particular_a false_a church_n which_o he_o think_v to_o be_v true_a as_o that_o of_o geneva_n say_v the_o cardinal_n even_o that_o will_v suffice_v for_o he_o that_o intend_v to_o do_v what_o the_o church_n of_o geneva_n 27._o geneva_n bellar._n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la in_o gen._n lib._n 2._o c._n 27._o do_v intend_v to_o do_v what_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v of_o which_o he_o believe_v the_o church_n of_o geneva_n to_o be_v a_o member_n then_o fitz_n symons_n be_v mistake_v when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o suppose_a alteration_n in_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o minister_n do_v annul_v the_o sacrament_n by_o consent_n of_o all_o catholic_n if_o he_o will_v not_o have_v bellarmine_n to_o be_v put_v out_o of_o that_o number_n not_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o his_o extravagancy_n in_o make_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o minister_n a_o essential_a constitute_v of_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o of_o the_o dismal_a confusion_n and_o discomfort_n he_o bring_v upon_o his_o proselyte_n by_o make_v the_o effect_n of_o sacrament_n depend_v upon_o the_o foresay_a intention_n whereof_o no_o man_n receive_v a_o sacrament_n can_v have_v a_o full_a certainty_n the_o word_n of_o the_o minister_n i_o can_v hear_v and_o his_o action_n i_o can_v see_v but_o of_o his_o intention_n i_o can_v never_o be_v entire_o assure_v then_o if_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n of_o order_n necessary_a and_o essential_a be_v retain_v in_o our_o church_n as_o we_o have_v see_v and_o no_o reasonable_a doubt_n be_v leave_v of_o the_o intention_n of_o our_o minister_n to_o do_v what_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v which_o according_a to_o bellarmin_n supposition_n now_o mention_v be_v sufficient_a how_o come_v fitz_n symons_n to_o say_v that_o in_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n and_o intention_n of_o our_o minister_n such_o alteration_n be_v make_v as_o annul_v our_o sacrament_n chap._n vii_o how_o far_o the_o form_n of_o ordination_n use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n agree_v with_o that_o of_o the_o ancient_a c●●rch_n declare_v in_o t●e_v four_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o how_o much_o the_o form_n prescribe_v by_o t●e_v roman_n pontifical_a of_o this_o time_n differ_v from_o the_o ancient_a f●rm_n as_o in_o many_o other_o point_n so_o in_o this_o of_o crdination_n especial_o i_o can_v but_o admire_v how_o bold_a the_o romish_a writer_n be_v in_o impose_v upon_o the_o ignorant_a that_o themselves_o be_v the_o observer_n of_o antiquity_n and_o the_o reform_a church_n the_o contemner_n of_o it_o whereas_o indeed_o
the_o main_a purpose_n of_o the_o reformation_n be_v to_o cut_v off_o the_o superstitious_a innovation_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o sti●k_v to_o the_o christian_a simplicity_n and_o gravity_n of_o the_o primitive_a apostolic_a church_n this_o will_v appear_v evident_o by_o compare_v the_o present_a form_n of_o ordination_n use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n with_o the_o most_o qualify_v of_o ancient_a formulary_n establish_v in_o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n celebrate_v by_o 214._o father_n whereof_o st._n augustine_n be_v one_o in_o the_o year_n 398._o honorius_n and_o arcadius_n be_v emperor_n of_o which_o council_n baronius_n give_v this_o honourable_a character_n extitit_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la carthaginense_fw-la concilium_fw-la veluti_fw-la ecclesiasticae_fw-la promtuarium_fw-la disciplinae_fw-la non_fw-la quidem_fw-la recens_fw-la inventae_fw-la sedantiquioribus_fw-la 68_o sedantiquioribus_fw-la baron_fw-fr an._n 393._o n._n 68_o usu_fw-la receptae_fw-la atque_fw-la ad_fw-la pristinam_fw-la consuetudinem_fw-la revocatae_fw-la this_o council_n of_o carthage_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o treasure_n of_o ecclesiastic_a discipline_n not_o new_o invent_v but_o use_v by_o the_o ancient_a and_o restore_v to_o the_o former_a custom_n he_o add_v that_o this_o council_n be_v take_v as_o a_o pattern_n by_o the_o other_o church_n both_o eastern_a and_o western_a i_o have_v peruse_v careful_o this_o council_n and_o confer_v it_o with_o our_o form_n of_o ordination_n set_v down_o in_o the_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n as_o also_o with_o the_o form_n of_o ordination_n use_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o contain_v in_o their_o latter_a pontifical_a publish_v by_o authority_n of_o pope_n clement_n the_o 8._o &_o print_v at_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n 1595._o clement_n complain_v of_o many_o error_n creep_v into_o the_o former_a pontifical_n and_o purpose_n to_o mend_v they_o in_o this_o latter_a according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o ancient_a integrity_n for_o which_o purpose_n it_o seem_v no_o better_a rule_n can_v be_v take_v then_o the_o foresay_a council_n of_o carthage_n for_o the_o reason_n aforesaid_a of_o baronius_n now_o if_o we_o show_v that_o our_o form_n of_o ordination_n be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o that_o of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n than_o the_o form_n prescribe_v in_o the_o roman_a pontifical_a we_o shall_v prove_v that_o we_o stand_v for_o the_o most_o warrantable_a antiquity_n and_o consequent_o for_o right_v in_o this_o point_n i_o will_v not_o dispute_v now_o about_o those_o call_v inferior_a order_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n both_o because_o none_o will_v pretend_v they_o to_o be_v essential_a to_o church_n discipline_n and_o the_o duty_n appropriate_v to_o they_o be_v perform_v in_o both_o church_n sometime_o by_o person_n constitute_v in_o no_o order_n and_o sometime_o by_o those_o in_o sacred_a order_n i_o will_v therefore_o only_o treat_v of_o the_o three_o sacred_a order_n propose_v by_o suarez_n out_o of_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la as_o necessary_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n to_o wit_n bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n and_o beginning_n with_o deacon_n the_o say_a council_n in_o the_o four_o chapter_n have_v only_o these_o word_n diaconus_fw-la cum_fw-la ordinatur_fw-la solus_fw-la episcopus_fw-la qui_fw-la eum_fw-la benedicit_fw-la manum_fw-la super_fw-la caput_fw-la illius_fw-la ponat_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la ad_fw-la sacerdotium_fw-la sed_fw-la ad_fw-la ministerium_fw-la consecratur_fw-la when_o a_o deacon_n be_v ordain_v only_o the_o bishop_n who_o bless_v or_o ordain_v he_o be_v to_o lay_v his_o hand_n on_o his_o head_n because_o he_o be_v not_o ordain_v to_o priesthood_n but_o to_o ministry_n here_o we_o have_v three_o thing_n declare_v the_o minister_n the_o matter_n the_o order_n the_o minister_n be_v only_o the_o bishop_n the_o matter_n or_o the_o exterior_a sign_n be_v the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n the_o form_n be_v not_o describe_v in_o particular_a but_o be_v include_v in_o the_o word_n benedicit_fw-la for_o to_o bless_v here_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o pronounce_v the_o word_n by_o which_o the_o power_n of_o this_o order_n be_v confer_v to_o the_o person_n ordain_v all_o which_o be_v exact_o perform_v in_o the_o ordinationof_n deacon_n by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o chapter_n precedent_n now_o touch_v the_o ordination_n of_o priest_n the_o council_n decree_v thus_o presbyter_n cum_fw-la ordinatur_fw-la episcopo_fw-la eum_fw-la benedicente_fw-la &_o manum_fw-la super_fw-la caput_fw-la illius_fw-la tenente_fw-la etiam_fw-la omnes_fw-la presbyteri_fw-la qui_fw-la praesentes_fw-la sunt_fw-la manus_fw-la svas_fw-la juxta_fw-la manus_fw-la episcopi_fw-la super_fw-la caput_fw-la illius_fw-la teneant_fw-la when_o a_o priest_n be_v ordain_v the_o bishop_n blessing_n he_o and_o lay_v his_o hand_n on_o his_o head_n the_o priest_n present_a be_v likewise_o to_o lay_v their_o hand_n on_o his_o head_n together_o with_o the_o bishop_n hand_n of_o this_o decree_n likewise_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v as_o observant_a as_o the_o roman_a be_v negligent_a for_o in_o their_o present_a pontifical_a above_o mention_v of_o clement_n the_o eight_o i_o see_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o what_o the_o council_n decree_n that_o the_o priest_n present_v shall_v lay_v their_o hand_n together_o with_o the_o bishop_n hand_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v prie_v and_o their_o practice_n go_v according_o but_o in_o lieu_n of_o this_o ceremony_n decree_v by_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n i_o find_v many_o other_o substitute_v in_o the_o foresay_a pontifical_a of_o which_o the_o council_n make_v no_o mention_n such_o as_o those_o about_o the_o amict_n albeit_o girdle_n maniple_n steal_v cope_n candle_n cross_n oil_n and_o the_o like_a and_o which_o be_v more_o remarkable_a the_o council_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o that_o great_a and_o chief_a ceremony_n use_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o appoint_v in_o the_o aforesaid_a pontifical_a and_o wherein_o some_o of_o their_o author_n will_v have_v the_o very_a essence_n of_o priestly_a ordination_n to_o consist_v as_o we_o have_v see_v above_o out_o of_o bellarmin_n that_o the_o bishop_n be_v to_o deliver_v to_o the_o person_n to_o be_v prie_v after_o have_v anoint_v his_o hand_n with_o holy_a oil_n the_o chalice_n with_o wine_n and_o water_n and_o the_o patin_n over_o it_o with_o the_o host_n or_o wafer_n say_v accipe_fw-la potestatem_fw-la offer_n sacrificium_fw-la deo_fw-la missasque_fw-la celebrare_fw-la tam_fw-la pro_fw-la vivis_fw-la quam_fw-la per_fw-la defunctis_fw-la receive_v power_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o god_n and_o to_o celebrate_v mass_n for_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a if_o this_o ceremony_n be_v so_o essential_a or_o the_o power_n of_o sacrifice_v be_v so_o inherent_a to_o priestly_a ordination_n as_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v certain_o that_o grave_n and_o venerable_a council_n of_o carthage_n will_v not_o have_v pass_v it_o over_o with_o so_o deep_a a_o silence_n when_o it_o descend_v to_o particularize_v the_o duty_n and_o performance_n of_o inferior_a minister_n not_o so_o necessary_a as_o those_o of_o priest_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o ensue_a chapter_n of_o that_o council_n from_o the_o five_o chapter_n forward_o final_o touch_v the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n the_o aforesaid_a council_n of_o carthage_n have_v these_o word_n episcopus_fw-la cum_fw-la ordinatur_fw-la duo_fw-la episcopi_fw-la ponant_fw-la &_o teneant_fw-la evangeliorum_fw-la codicem_fw-la super_fw-la caput_fw-la &_o cervicem_fw-la ejus_fw-la &_o uno_fw-la super_fw-la eum_fw-la fundente_fw-la benedictionem_fw-la reliqui_fw-la omnes_fw-la episcopi_fw-la qui_fw-la adsunt_fw-la manibus_fw-la suis_fw-la caput_fw-la ejus_fw-la tangant_fw-la when_o a_o bishop_n be_v ordain_v let_v two_o bishop_n put_v and_o hold_v the_o book_n of_o the_o gospel_n over_o his_o head_n and_o neck_n and_o one_o blessing_n he_o let_v all_o the_o other_o bishop_n that_o be_v there_o present_a touch_n his_o head_n with_o their_o hand_n here_o three_o thing_n be_v require_v the_o give_v or_o place_v of_o the_o book_n the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o the_o blessing_n to_o be_v give_v whereof_o the_o place_v of_o the_o book_n be_v no_o essential_a part_n as_o 63._o as_o vasquez_n in_o 3._o p._n disp_n 240._o w._n 63._o vasquez_n declare_v and_o so_o both_o church_n deviate_v something_o from_o the_o form_n mention_v for_o if_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v vasquez_n and_o the_o pontifical_a he_o quote_v the_o book_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v put_v upon_o the_o shoulder_n of_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_v not_o by_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_v but_o by_o one_o of_o the_o chaplain_n and_o he_o relate_v out_o of_o pope_n clement_n that_o ancient_o it_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o deacon_n who_o be_v no_o minister_n of_o this_o order_n neither_o do_v i_o find_v by_o mr._n mason_n that_o the_o pontifical_a he_o see_v do_v contradict_v what_o vasquez_n say_v yet_o i_o find_v it_o otherwise_o in_o the_o roman_a pontifical_a foremention_v of_o clement_n the_o eight_o to_o be_v see_v
in_o the_o library_n of_o dublin_n university_n where_o it_o be_v order_v that_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_v together_o with_o the_o bishop_n assist_v to_o help_v he_o do_v place_n the_o book_n over_o the_o neck_n and_o the_o shoulder_n of_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_v without_o say_v any_o word_n one_o of_o the_o chaplain_n of_o the_o bishop_n elect_v kneel_v behind_o he_o and_o hold_v the_o book_n until_o it_o be_v give_v to_o his_o hand_n and_o then_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_v and_o the_o other_o bishop_n assist_v he_o do_v touch_n with_o both_o their_o hand_n the_o head_n of_o the_o bishop_n elect_v say_v accipe_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o supposition_n that_o the_o mode_n of_o place_v the_o book_n be_v not_o essential_a to_o this_o ordination_n certain_o the_o form_n prescribe_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o this_o particular_a be_v very_o decent_a and_o apposite_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o this_o action_n the_o archbishop_n or_o other_o bishop_n consecrate_v deliver_v the_o bible_n to_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_v say_v give_v heed_n unto_o read_v exhortation_n and_o doctrine_n with_o other_o wholesome_a admonition_n touch_v his_o pastoral_a duty_n now_o touch_v the_o essential_a part_n of_o this_o ordination_n which_o do_v consist_v in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n as_o matter_n and_o the_o benediction_n or_o word_n pronounce_v by_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_v as_o form_n the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v exact_a in_o observe_v the_o form_n prescribe_v by_o the_o foresay_a council_n of_o carthage_n since_o it_o order_n that_o all_o the_o bishop_n present_v shall_v lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o the_o bishop_n elect_v and_o only_o the_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n consecrate_v shall_v bless_v or_o pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o the_o form_n say_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o office_n and_o work_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n now_o commit_v unto_o thou_o by_o the_o imposition_n of_o our_o hand_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ch●st_n here_o the_o roman_a pontifical_a deviate_n from_o the_o foresay_a form_n prescribe_v by_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n order_v that_o both_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_v and_o the_o bishop_n assist_v shall_v pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o the_o form_n say_v accipe_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la by_o this_o we_o see_v how_o exact_a the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v in_o observe_v all_o the_o essential_a and_o necessary_a part_n and_o ceremony_n prescribe_v by_o that_o renown_a council_n of_o carthage_n for_o the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n as_o for_o other_o ceremony_n not_o essential_a the_o council_n of_o trent_n itself_o declare_v that_o even_o in_o the_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n whereof_o they_o will_v have_v order_n to_o be_v a_o part_n they_o may_v be_v alter_v by_o the_o church_n as_o the_o condition_n of_o matter_n time_n and_o place_n may_v require_v neither_o be_v this_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o church_n universal_a congregat_v in_o a_o general_a council_n only_o but_o also_o of_o each_o particular_a church_n whence_o proceed_v the_o great_a variety_n of_o rite_n in_o thing_n indifferent_a among_o the_o ancient_a and_o even_o modern_a christian_n of_o several_a place_n and_o order_n approve_v by_o that_o grave_a sentence_n of_o 41._o of_o lib._n 1._o epist_n 41._o gregory_n the_o great_a in_o una_fw-la fide_fw-la nihil_fw-la ossicit_fw-la sanctae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la consuetudo_fw-la diversa_fw-la and_o as_o the_o roman_a church_n upon_o this_o account_n introduce_v new_a rite_n why_o may_v not_o that_o of_o england_n abolish_v other_o especial_o such_o as_o be_v find_v to_o be_v superstitious_a for_o which_o the_o quia_fw-la the_o distinct_a 63._o quia_fw-la canon_n law_n give_v this_o warrant_n docemur_fw-la exemplo_fw-la ezechiae_fw-la frangentis_fw-la serpontem_fw-la aeneum_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o superstitionem_fw-la vertuntur_fw-la illa_fw-la sine_fw-la tarditate_fw-la aliqua_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la magna_fw-la autoritate_fw-la à_fw-la posteris_fw-la destrui_fw-la posse_fw-la we_o be_v teach_v by_o example_n of_o hezechias_n that_o such_o thing_n as_o turn_v to_o superstition_n may_v be_v without_o delay_n and_o with_o authority_n extirpate_v in_o after_o age_n as_o a_o good_a husband_n cut_v off_o not_o only_o rot_v but_o superfluous_a branch_n that_o may_v suck_v away_o the_o sap_n from_o the_o main_a tree_n so_o any_o church_n that_o be_v free_a and_o independent_a such_o as_o this_o of_o england_n be_v may_v cut_v off_o superstitious_a and_o superfluous_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n which_o by_o their_o multiplicity_n may_v distract_v both_o the_o minister_n and_o congregation_n and_o take_v their_o attention_n from_o the_o main_a object_n of_o their_o devotion_n and_o certain_o who_o ever_o consider_v the_o vast_a number_n of_o ceremony_n use_v now_o by_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o prescribe_v in_o their_o pontifical_a will_v find_v it_o a_o task_n not_o easy_a for_o even_o a_o good_a capacity_n to_o comprehend_v and_o practise_v they_o all_o and_o very_o hard_a to_o think_v of_o elevate_a the_o mind_n withal_o to_o prayer_n or_o meditation_n chap._n viii_o how_o far_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o romish_a in_o matter_n of_o ordination_n wherein_o they_o differ_v and_o how_o absurd_a the_o pretention_n of_o romanist_n be_v that_o our_o difference_n herein_o with_o they_o shall_v annul_v our_o order_n as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v not_o think_v convenient_a to_o follow_v that_o of_o rome_n in_o all_o their_o superfluous_a ceremony_n especial_o such_o of_o they_o as_o be_v noxious_a and_o opposite_a to_o the_o sincerity_n of_o christian_a discipline_n so_o it_o do_v not_o grudge_n to_o go_v along_o and_o conform_v with_o they_o in_o what_o they_o retain_v of_o ancient_a integrity_n in_o many_o thing_n we_o agree_v with_o they_o first_o that_o only_a bishop_n be_v to_o give_v order_n second_o that_o none_o be_v promote_v to_o order_n without_o the_o title_n of_o a_o benefice_n or_o sufficient_a patrimony_n which_o be_v far_o more_o exact_o observe_v in_o the_o english_a then_o in_o the_o romish_a church_n three_o that_o the_o person_n to_o be_v ordain_v be_v examine_v as_o to_o behaviour_n and_o ability_n four_o that_o certain_a time_n and_o day_n be_v appoint_v for_o ordination_n five_o that_o the_o person_n to_o be_v ordain_v aught_o to_o appear_v in_o the_o church_n six_o that_o they_o receive_v their_o order_n on_o their_o knee_n seven_o that_o they_o receive_v the_o communion_n all_o this_o be_v common_o observe_v in_o both_o church_n but_o more_o exact_o and_o indispensible_o in_o the_o english_a as_o to_o order_n in_o general_n now_o as_o to_o particular_a order_n we_o agree_v in_o the_o follow_a point_n as_o to_z deacon_n first_o that_o the_o archdeacon_n present_v they_o to_o the_o bishop_n second_o that_o the_o bishop_n inquire_v of_o the_o archdeacon_n whether_o he_o know_v they_o to_o be_v worthy_a of_o that_o order_n three_o that_o the_o bishop_n admonish_v the_o congregation_n that_o if_o any_o person_n have_v any_o thing_n to_o say_v against_o they_o he_o shall_v declare_v it_o four_o that_o the_o bishop_n instruct_v they_o in_o the_o duty_n they_o be_v to_o perform_v five_o that_o litany_n be_v say_v and_o the_o bishop_n exhort_v the_o congregation_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o person_n to_o be_v ordain_v that_o they_o may_v be_v fit_a minister_n in_o that_o sacred_a order_n sixthy_a that_o the_o bishop_n give_v they_o the_o book_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o power_n to_o read_v they_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n seven_o that_o one_o of_o the_o deacon_n new_o ordain_v shall_v read_v the_o gospel_n herein_o we_o agree_v but_o we_o differ_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n first_o where_o they_o add_v to_o the_o litany_n the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n second_o where_o power_n be_v give_v to_o the_o deacon_n to_o read_v the_o gospel_n for_o the_o dead_a three_o that_o what_o be_v not_o express_o deliver_v by_o the_o roman_a formulary_a be_v more_o clear_o express_v by_o the_o english_a as_o for_o example_n the_o order_n of_o deacon_n in_o the_o former_a be_v give_v by_o these_o word_n receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o power_n to_o resist_v the_o devil_n and_o his_o temtation_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v too_o general_a and_o common_a to_o all_o christian_n be_v make_v more_o proper_a and_o apposite_a to_o the_o function_n of_o deacon_n by_o these_o other_o word_n use_v in_o the_o english_a ordinal_n receive_v authority_n to_o exercise_v the_o work_n of_o a_o deacon_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n commit_v to_o thou_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n four_o that_o we_o reduce_v the_o tedious_a variety_n of_o vestment_n and_o ceremony_n use_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o
the_o romish_a party_n now_o it_o remain_v to_o show_v that_o the_o succession_n of_o our_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n from_o those_o of_o unquestioned_a legality_n before_o the_o reformation_n and_o the_o due_a ordination_n of_o they_o according_a to_o the_o say_a rule_n and_o rite_n be_v more_o clear_a and_o unquestionable_a with_o we_o then_o with_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n mr._n mason_n give_v a_o exact_a account_n of_o their_o succession_n and_o lawful_a ordination_n the_o time_n and_o place_n of_o it_o the_o person_n conscerate_v they_o run_v upon_o several_a diocese_n especial_o that_o of_o canterbury_n from_o the_o time_n he_o publish_v his_o book_n which_o be_v the_o year_n 1638._o to_o the_o time_n of_o k._n henry_n the_o eight_o when_o the_o validity_n of_o ordination_n be_v not_o question_v ground_v his_o narrative_a upon_o the_o authentic_a record_n keep_v in_o london_n and_o in_o the_o same_o record_n may_v be_v find_v the_o like_a account_n of_o the_o ensue_a ordination_n from_o mr._n mason_n time_n to_o this_o day_n the_o like_a account_n may_v be_v find_v in_o the_o several_a registry_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ireland_n from_o our_o day_n up_o to_o the_o aforesaid_a time_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o and_o touch_v the_o prime_a church_n that_o of_o armagh_n i_o find_v the_o ensue_a account_n of_o the_o succession_n and_o ordination_n of_o arch-bishop_n in_o it_o from_o the_o present_a archbishop_n the_o most_o reverend_a father_n in_o god_n james_n lord_n archbishop_n of_o armagh_n primate_n of_o all_o ireland_n to_o the_o great_a comfort_n and_o benefit_n of_o it_o since_o the_o blind_a passion_n can_v miss_v to_o see_v in_o his_o grace_n the_o idea_n of_o a_o most_o renown_a and_o perfect_a prelate_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o worthy_a vicar_n general_n and_o judge_n of_o his_o prerogative_n court_v the_o noble_a and_o learned_a dudley_n loftus_n doctor_n in_o law_n i_o find_v i_o say_v the_o account_n follow_v of_o his_o grace_n his_o lineal_a succession_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o unquestioned_a authority_n in_o queen_n mary_n time_n james_n margetson_n consecrate_a the_o 27._o of_o january_n 1660._o by_o john_n bramhal_o archbishop_n of_o armagh_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o cathedral_n church_n of_o st._n patric_n in_o dublin_n john_n bramhal_o doctor_n of_o divinity_n be_v consecrate_a bishop_n of_o derry_n in_o the_o chapel_n of_o the_o castle_n of_o dublin_n the_o 26._o of_o may_v 1634._o by_o james_n usher_n archbishop_n of_o armagh_n etc._n etc._n james_n usher_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n be_v consecrate_a bishop_n of_o meath_z at_o droghedah_n in_o the_o church_n of_o st._n peter_n anno_fw-la 1621._o by_o christopher_n hampton_n archbishop_n of_o armagh_n etc._n etc._n christopher_n hampton_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n be_v conseciate_v bishop_n of_o derry_n may_v the_o 5._o 1613._o in_o the_o cathedral_n church_n of_o st._n patric_n by_o thomas_n jones_n archbishop_n of_o dublin_n etc._n etc._n thomas_n jones_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n be_v consecrate_a bishop_n of_o meath_z in_o the_o cathedral_n church_n of_o st._n patric_n dublin_n the_o 12._o of_o may_n 1584._o by_o adam_n loftus_n lord_n archbishop_n of_o dublin_n etc._n etc._n adam_n loftus_n lord_n archbishop_n of_o dublin_n be_v consecrate_a archbishop_n of_o armagh_n in_o the_o church_n of_o st._n patric_n dublin_n anno_fw-la 1562._o by_o hugh_n curwin_n lord_n archbishop_n of_o dublin_n etc._n etc._n hugh_n curwin_n doctor_n of_o law_n be_v consecrate_a archbishop_n of_o dublin_n the_o 8._o of_o september_n 1555._o being_n the_o three_o of_o queen_n mary_n together_o with_o james_n turbirwill_n bishop_n of_o exeter_n and_o william_n glin_n bishop_n of_o bargor_n each_o one_o of_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o ireland_n may_v give_v the_o like_a account_n of_o their_o lawful_a ordination_n and_o lineal_a succession_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o unquestioned_a authority_n in_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o and_o queen_n mary_n time_n no_o exception_n be_v know_v to_o have_v be_v take_v against_o the_o legality_n of_o any_o of_o they_o and_o the_o law_n be_v so_o severe_a and_o the_o penalty_n of_o praemunire_n so_o heavy_a against_o any_o bishop_n that_o will_v enter_v otherwise_o then_o by_o the_o rite_n and_o requisite_n above_o mention_v and_o justify_v it_o be_v moral_o incredible_a that_o any_o will_v permit_v any_o defect_n to_o intervene_v in_o his_o consecration_n that_o may_v bring_v upon_o he_o so_o great_a a_o damage_n it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o the_o bishop_n or_o pope_n of_o rome_n we_o have_v not_o only_a conjecture_n but_o clear_a evidence_n by_o a_o learned_a and_o exact_a pen_n of_o their_o own_o party_n that_o none_o of_o the_o bishop_n or_o pope_n who_o usurp_v that_o see_v from_o gregory_n the_o 13._o be_v a_o lawful_a bishop_n or_o pope_n the_o treatise_n pen_v upon_o this_o subject_n in_o latin_a and_o dedicate_v to_o king_n james_n bear_v this_o title_n the_o new_a man_n or_o a_o supplication_n from_o a_o unknown_a person_n a_o roman_n catholic_n unto_o james_n the_o monarch_n of_o great_a britain_n and_o from_o he_o to_o the_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n touch_v the_o cause_n and_o reason_n that_o will_v argue_v a_o necessity_n of_o a_o general_n council_n to_o be_v forthwith_o assemble_v against_o he_o that_o now_o usurp_v the_o papal_a chair_n under_o the_o name_n of_o paul_n the_o five_o this_o treatise_n be_v publish_v by_o order_n of_o so_o excellent_a a_o prince_n as_o the_o world_n know_v king_n james_n to_o be_v it_o be_v a_o blind_a insolence_n to_o say_v it_o shall_v not_o be_v real_a and_o unfeigned_a and_o a_o treatise_n so_o destructive_a to_o the_o credit_n and_o interest_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n be_v not_o disprove_v for_o the_o space_n of_o nine_o year_n by_o any_o of_o that_o party_n as_o report_v by_o mr._n william_n crashaw_n translator_n of_o the_o say_a treatise_n from_o latin_a into_o english_a in_o the_o year_n 1622._o nor_o to_o this_o day_n by_o any_o that_o we_o know_v it_o be_v a_o clear_a argument_n they_o want_v mean_n to_o gainsay_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o i_o will_v reduce_v to_o a_o brief_a sum_n the_o head_n of_o his_o proof_n as_o well_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n as_o of_o law_n that_o the_o election_n of_o pope_n sixtus_n the_o five_o succeed_a gregory_n the_o thirteen_o be_v null_n and_o invalid_a and_o consequent_o the_o cardinal_n create_v by_o he_o be_v no_o true_a cardinal_n nor_o the_o pope_n elect_a by_o such_o cardinal_n true_a pope_n for_o ground_n of_o this_o discourse_n it_o be_v to_o be_v suppose_v that_o any_o simoniacal_a contract_n intervening_a in_o the_o election_n of_o a_o pope_n such_o a_o election_n be_v therefore_o render_v null_n and_o invalid_a as_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o bull_n of_o julius_n the_o 2_o set_v out_o against_o simonaical_a election_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o word_n be_v as_o follow_v if_o it_o shall_v hereafter_o fall_v out_o through_o the_o devil_n malice_n the_o enemy_n of_o mankind_n or_o the_o ambition_n or_o covetousness_n of_o the_o elector_n that_o when_o we_o or_o any_o of_o our_o successor_n shall_v by_o god_n appointment_n be_v remove_v from_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n the_o election_n of_o the_o new_a pope_n be_v make_v and_o do_v either_o by_o he_o that_o be_v ch●sen_v or_o by_o any_o other_o or_o more_o of_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n by_o the_o heresy_n of_o simonaical_a contract_n give_v promise_a or_o receive_v any_o good_n of_o any_o kind_n or_o land_n or_o castle_n or_o office_n or_o benefice_n or_o by_o make_v any_o other_o promise_n or_o obligation_n of_o what_o kind_n soever_o whether_o they_o do_v it_o by_o themselves_o or_o another_o by_o a_o few_o or_o by_o many_o and_o whether_o the_o election_n be_v accomplish_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o two_o part_n of_o the_o cardinal_n divide_v in_o three_o or_o by_o the_o uniform_a consent_n or_o voice_n of_o they_o all_o whether_o it_o be_v do_v by_o way_n of_o assumption_n or_o adoration_n yea_o though_o there_o be_v no_o writing_n make_v at_o all_o we_o determine_v define_v and_o declare_v that_o not_o only_o the_o election_n or_o assumption_n so_o make_v shall_v be_v from_o that_o very_a moment_n void_a and_o of_o none_o effect_n and_o no_o power_n or_o faculty_n shall_v accrue_v to_o he_o thereby_o thrust_v in_o of_o any_o administration_n government_n or_o jurisdiction_n in_o matter_n spiritual_a or_o temporal_a but_o also_o that_o it_o shall_v and_o may_v be_v lawful_a to_o any_o cardinal_n present_a at_o the_o say_a election_n to_o except_v against_o the_o say_a intruder_n and_o to_o call_v he_o into_o question_n for_o the_o crime_n of_o simony_n as_o of_o a_o true_a and_o undoubted_a heresy_n that_o so_o be_v a_o heretic_n he_o may_v be_v of_o all_o man_n accounteda_n no_o pope_n or_o
now_o in_o use_n the_o pope_n charge_v every_o live_n in_o his_o gift_n with_o a_o pension_n more_o or_o less_o ordinary_o it_o amount_v to_o half_a of_o the_o whole_a value_n of_o the_o benefice_n if_o but_o a_o three_o part_n it_o be_v hold_v easy_a and_o favourable_a but_o sometime_o it_o extend_v to_o two_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a divide_v into_o three_o which_o do_v he_o provide_v by_o a_o other_o ordination_n that_o by_o present_a payment_n of_o five_o year_n profit_n the_o pension_n shall_v be_v exringuish_v now_o when_o by_o this_o concourse_n and_o comparison_n of_o competitor_n they_o have_v find_v which_o of_o they_o be_v best_o able_a to_o buy_v it_o on_o he_o present_o it_o be_v confer_v &_o so_o not_o the_o worthy_a but_o the_o wealthy_a carry_v it_o and_o thus_o be_v all_o the_o pope_n live_n bestow_v at_o rome_n now_o he_o that_o come_v thus_o to_o a_o benefice_n by_o pay_v down_o five_o year_n pension_n before_o hand_n buy_v it_o full_a dear_a for_o he_o pay_v for_o it_o at_o the_o rate_n of_o 30._o in_o the_o 100_o over_z and_o beside_o his_o personal_a service_n for_o the_o clear_n of_o this_o point_n suppose_v a_o benefice_n worth_a 300_o crown_n a_o year_n this_o be_v sure_a to_o be_v charge_v be_v so_o great_a a_o live_n with_o a_o pension_n of_o the_o large_a size_n namely_o some_o 200_o that_o so_o one_o 100_o may_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o incumbent_n he_o than_o that_o come_v to_o it_o in_o this_o manner_n pay_v down_o a_o 1000_o crown_n for_o the_o pension_n and_o a_o 100_o more_o for_o writing_n and_o seal_v of_o his_o bull_n and_o for_o expedition_n and_o so_o all_o lay_v together_o he_o buy_v his_o live_n of_o 300_o at_o the_o rate_n of_o 30._o for_o the_o hundred_o beside_o his_o personal_a service_n and_o cure_v of_o soul_n moreover_o whereas_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n certain_a simoniacal_a trick_n and_o device_n call_v regressus_fw-la &_o expectative_n be_v flat_o forbid_v the_o pope_n to_o delude_v the_o council_n decree_n grant_v coadjutorship_n with_o assurance_n of_o future_a succession_n after_o his_o death_n to_o who_o he_o be_v make_v coadjutor_n but_o make_v they_o pay_v one_o year_n profit_n for_o the_o expedit_v and_o dispatch_n of_o their_o bull_n now_o these_o coadjutorship_n be_v the_o very_a same_o and_o tend_v to_o the_o very_a same_o end_n even_o to_o bring_v in_o by_o hook_n and_o crook_n sum_n of_o money_n for_o by_o these_o pension_n and_o buy_v out_o of_o pension_n this_o pope_n have_v scrape_v up_o twenty_o hundred_o thousand_o scute_v all_o which_o he_o have_v bestow_v in_o buy_v land_n for_o his_o nephew_n he_o buy_v of_o sarelly_n a_o goodly_a large_a territory_n call_v rignanum_n near_o unto_o rome_n at_o the_o price_n of_o 353000_o scute_v the_o city_n of_o sulmona_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n he_o buy_v of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n and_o give_v for_o the_o same_o the_o sum_n of_o 150000_o scute_v he_o purchase_v those_o goodly_a demain_n call_v the_o four_o casalia_fw-la within_o the_o territory_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n which_o cost_v no_o less_o than_o 700000_o scute_v in_o the_o mountainous_a country_n belong_v to_o the_o city_n which_o be_v common_o at_o six_o in_o the_o hundred_o he_o make_v a_o purchase_n that_o stand_v he_o in_o 400000_o scute_v he_o have_v build_v a_o palace_n and_o call_v it_o after_o his_o own_o name_n the_o palace_n of_o burghesius_n upon_o the_o fabric_n whereof_o he_o have_v bestow_v 300000._o he_o have_v so_o enrich_v the_o cardinal_n burghesius_n his_o nephew_n in_o private_a stock_n and_o wealth_n that_o his_o very_a moveable_n be_v esteem_v worth_a 600000_o scute_v good_a god_n what_o a_o mighty_a wealth_n be_v here_o and_o i_o appeal_v to_o any_o that_o know_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n if_o this_o can_v be_v get_v together_o by_o any_o mean_n into_o the_o pope_n own_o coffer_n and_o private_a purse_n but_o only_o out_o of_o that_o office_n of_o the_o benefice_n call_v the_o datary_n therefore_o this_o one_o demonstration_n be_v presumption_n sufficient_a enough_o to_o prove_v his_o foul_a and_o detestable_a simony_n see_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o whole_a name_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o burghesy_n be_v but_o of_o a_o mean_a estate_n nay_o many_o of_o they_o be_v know_v to_o have_v run_v out_o of_o their_o live_n and_o to_o be_v little_a better_o than_o bankrupt_a when_o this_o man_n get_v the_o popedom_n hitherto_o the_o word_n of_o the_o foresay_a author_n who_o promise_v to_o justify_v all_o that_o he_o have_v say_v to_o be_v true_a out_o of_o the_o authentical_a book_n record_n and_o writing_n extant_a in_o rome_n and_o that_o out_o of_o the_o register_n of_o the_o pope_n bull_n it_o shall_v appear_v to_o who_o each_o benefice_n have_v be_v give_v and_o with_o what_o pension_n they_o be_v charge_v of_o all_o which_o the_o spanish_a nation_n can_v give_v a_o large_a testimony_n for_o many_o of_o they_o deal_v in_o business_n of_o benefice_n at_o rome_n have_v transact_v they_o in_o this_o manner_n the_o conclusion_n of_o all_o before_o say_v be_v that_o if_o simoniacal_a contract_n do_v annul_v the_o election_n of_o a_o pope_n and_o the_o same_o crime_n commit_v after_o his_o election_n deprive_v he_o of_o all_o right_n to_o that_o place_n and_z calling_z if_o all_o cardinal_n make_v by_o such_o unlawful_a and_o criminal_a pope_n be_v no_o cardinal_n and_o pope_n make_v by_o unlawful_a cardinal_n be_v no_o pope_n as_o be_v establish_v by_o the_o law_n and_o canon_n foremention_v if_o all_o those_o nullity_n of_o simony_n fraud_n and_o cheat_n have_v intervene_v in_o the_o election_n of_o sixtus_n and_o follow_v pope_n as_o hitherto_o record_v and_o no_o care_n have_v be_v take_v of_o repair_v those_o nullity_n as_o be_v manifest_a but_o rather_o the_o like_a practice_n continue_v to_o this_o day_n as_o be_v well_o know_v to_o those_o that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o that_o court_n all_o this_o be_v so_o it_o follow_v as_o a_o forceable_a consequence_n that_o there_o be_v not_o in_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n any_o true_a pope_n nor_o have_v be_v since_o gregory_n the_o thirteen_o how_o strange_a will_v all_o the_o precedent_n narrative_a appear_v to_o many_o poor_a irish_a and_o english_a roman_a catholic_o who_o be_v not_o permit_v to_o know_v more_o than_o their_o bead_n and_o some_o small_a prayer_n book_n with_o the_o litany_n of_o the_o conception_n of_o saint_n joseph_n sancta_fw-la theresa_n etc._n etc._n and_o a_o list_n of_o great_a indulgence_n for_o very_o small_a devotion_n but_o such_o as_o know_v by_o sight_n or_o faithful_a relation_n the_o intrigue_n of_o rome_n whereof_o my_o good_a friend_n n._n n._n who_o give_v i_o the_o occasion_n of_o this_o discourse_n be_v one_o will_v easy_o perceive_v that_o all_o which_o be_v say_v be_v very_o suitable_a to_o the_o language_n and_o practice_n of_o that_o court._n now_o therefore_o let_v the_o poor_a soul_n consider_v by_o these_o particular_n what_o metal_n that_o roman_a holiness_n be_v which_o they_o so_o blind_o adore_v and_o let_v their_o bold_a and_o presumptuous_a instructor_n forbear_v to_o censure_v the_o ordination_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o which_o no_o such_o dirty_a practice_n do_v ever_o intervene_v when_o their_o prime_n see_v be_v deface_v and_o disgrace_v with_o such_o public_a and_o peremptory_a exception_n against_o the_o usurper_n of_o it_o and_o let_v they_o cease_v boast_v as_o they_o do_v of_o a_o wicked_a practice_n reordain_v such_o as_o be_v ordain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n if_o they_o chance_v to_o pass_v to_o their_o communion_n whereas_o it_o be_v not_o less_o sacrilegious_a and_o unlawful_a to_o reordain_v person_n already_o lawful_o ordain_v then_o to_o rebaptize_v such_o as_o be_v lawful_o baptize_v according_a to_o gregory_n the_o great_a his_o declaration_n 58._o declaration_n lib._n 2._o epist_n 32._o end_n 10._o cap._n 58._o sicut_fw-la baptizatus_fw-la semel_fw-la iterum_fw-la baptizari_fw-la non_fw-la debet_fw-la ita_fw-la qui_fw-la consecratus_fw-la est_fw-la semel_fw-la in_fw-la eodem_fw-la iterum_fw-la ordine_fw-la consecrari_fw-la non_fw-la debet_fw-la as_o those_o who_o be_v baptize_v before_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v rebaptise_v again_o so_o he_o that_o be_v once_o consecrate_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v consecrate_v again_o in_o the_o same_o order_n the_o same_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n ch_n 38._o and_o before_o in_o the_o council_n of_o capua_n as_o relate_v by_o the_o say_a council_n of_o carthage_n and_o by_o baronius_n in_o the_o year_n 139._o to_o transgress_v the_o decree_n of_o these_o grave_n and_o ancient_a council_n be_v the_o boast_n of_o romanist_n when_o they_o brag_v of_o not_o admit_v priest_n ordain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o the_o function_n of_o priesthood_n with_o they_o if_o they_o be_v
not_o ordain_v again_o after_o their_o ceremony_n which_o point_n of_o presumption_n and_o contemt_a of_o ancient_a canon_n the_o church_n of_o england_n refuse_v to_o learn_v from_o the_o romish_a admit_v to_o the_o practice_n of_o their_o respective_a order_n among_o we_o such_o as_o have_v be_v ordain_v in_o the_o romish_a church_n though_o we_o have_v far_o great_a reason_n to_o suspect_v their_o ordination_n as_o disagree_v with_o ancient_a canon_n than_o they_o have_v to_o suspect_v we_o as_o we_o have_v hitherto_o large_o declare_v by_o all_o this_o discourse_n it_o appear_v how_o groundless_a be_v the_o scruple_n of_o such_o as_o refuse_v to_o join_v with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o fear_n that_o the_o ordination_n of_o its_o clergy_n be_v not_o valid_a whereas_o we_o have_v all_o the_o certainty_n and_o even_o more_o for_o the_o validity_n of_o our_o ordination_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v for_o she_o &_o how_o much_o suarez_n be_v mistake_v in_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v not_o the_o ecclesiastic_a hierarchy_n compose_v of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n necessary_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o catholic_a church_n chap._n xii_o of_o the_o large_a extent_n of_o christian_a religion_n profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o four_o and_o chief_a kind_n of_o universality_n propose_v by_o suarez_n as_o necessary_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o extent_n of_o it_o over_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n this_o he_o deny_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o not_o pass_v say_v he_o the_o limit_n of_o the_o british_a dominion_n but_o if_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o faith_n profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v for_o the_o present_a purpose_n he_o be_v great_o mistake_v here_o i_o will_v show_v that_o king_n james_n saying_n as_o suarez_n relate_v that_o the_o one_o half_a of_o the_o christian_a world_n do_v join_v with_o we_o in_o the_o same_o faith_n do_v not_o exceed_v the_o bound_n of_o truth_n and_o modesty_n and_o that_o of_o three_o part_n of_o christian_n two_o do_v join_v with_o we_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n though_o not_o of_o all_o contain_v in_o the_o creed_n of_o trent_n whereby_o the_o roman_a church_n alone_o be_v single_v from_o we_o and_o from_o all_o other_o christian_a church_n not_o unlike_o ishmael_n who_o hand_n be_v against_o every_o one_o and_o every_o man_n hand_n against_o he_o and_o as_o the_o donatist_n will_v confine_v the_o church_n of_o god_n to_o that_o corner_n of_o africa_n they_o inhabit_v so_o the_o romanist_n will_v not_o have_v it_o extend_v further_a than_o their_o jurisdiction_n declare_v for_o excommunicate_v and_o damn_v all_o that_o join_v not_o with_o they_o in_o obedience_n to_o their_o pope_n that_o they_o may_v be_v ashamed_a or_o weary_a of_o their_o blind_a presumption_n and_o cruelty_n in_o offer_v to_o mangle_v and_o deface_v in_o this_o manner_n the_o church_n of_o god_n if_o avarice_n and_o ambition_n the_o genuine_a cause_n of_o this_o proceed_n be_v capable_a of_o shame_n or_o amendment_n i_o will_v give_v to_o the_o people_n blind_v by_o they_o a_o view_n of_o the_o multitude_n of_o illustrious_a nation_n and_o religious_a believer_n in_o christ_n which_o they_o do_v rash_o if_o not_o malicious_o condemn_v and_o segregate_v from_o their_o communion_n and_o beginning_n with_o protestant_n inhabit_v europe_n from_o the_o remote_a part_n thereof_o eastward_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o polonia_n contain_v under_o its_o dominion_n polonia_n lituania_n podolia_n russia_n the_o less_o volhinia_n massovia_n livonia_n prussia_n all_o which_o unite_v in_o a_o roundish_n enclosure_n be_v in_o circuit_n about_o 2600_o mile_n and_o of_o no_o less_o space_n than_o spain_n and_o france_n lay_v together_o in_o this_o so_o large_a a_o kingdom_n the_o protestant_n in_o great_a number_n be_v diffuse_v through_o all_o the_o quarter_n thereof_o have_v in_o every_o province_n their_o public_a church_n and_o congregation_n orderly_o sever_v and_o bound_v with_o dioceses_n whence_o they_o send_v some_o of_o their_o chief_a man_n of_o worth_n unto_o their_o general_a synod_n which_o they_o have_v frequent_o hold_v with_o great_a celebrity_n and_o with_o such_o prudence_n and_o piety_n as_o may_v be_v a_o happy_a example_n to_o be_v follow_v by_o all_o christian_a church_n and_o likely_o will_v be_v follow_v upon_o a_o due_a consideration_n if_o the_o insatiable_a avarice_n and_o boundless_a ambition_n of_o rome_n aspire_v desperate_o to_o a_o monarchical_a power_n over_o all_o do_v not_o obstruct_v all_o the_o way_n that_o sincere_a piety_n and_o zeal_n of_o religion_n can_v imagine_v for_o the_o peace_n of_o christian_n for_o as_o much_o as_o there_o be_v diverse_a sort_n of_o these_o polonic_a protestant_n some_o embrace_v the_o waldensian_a or_o the_o bohemic_a other_o the_o augustan_n and_o some_o the_o helvetian_a confession_n and_o so_o do_v differ_v in_o some_o outward_a circumstance_n of_o discipline_n and_o ceremony_n yet_o know_v well_o that_o a_o kingdom_n divide_v can_v stand_v and_o that_o the_o one_o god_n who_o all_o of_o they_o worship_n in_o spirit_n be_v the_o god_n of_o peace_n and_o concord_n they_o joint_o meet_v at_o one_o general_a synod_n and_o their_o first_o act_n always_o be_v a_o religious_a and_o solemn_a profession_n of_o their_o unfeigned_a consent_n in_o the_o substantial_a point_n of_o christian_a faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n thus_o in_o general_a synod_n at_o lendomire_n cracovia_n petricove_n woodslave_n torun_n they_o declare_v upon_o the_o bohememic_a and_o helvetic_a and_o augustan_n confession_n several_o receive_v among_o they_o that_o they_o agree_v in_o the_o general_a head_n of_o faith_n touch_v the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o sacred_a trinity_n the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n god_n and_o man_n the_o providence_n of_o god_n sin_n free_a will_n the_o law_n the_o gospel_n justification_n by_o christ_n faith_n in_o his_o name_n regeneration_n the_o catholic_a church_n and_o supreme_a head_n thereof_o christ_n the_o sacrament_n their_o number_n and_o use_v the_o state_n of_o soul_n after_o death_n the_o resurrection_n and_o life_n eternal_a they_o decree_v that_o whereas_o in_o the_o forename_a confession_n there_o be_v some_o difference_n in_o phrase_n and_o form_n of_o speech_n concern_v christ_n presence_n in_o his_o holy_a supper_n which_o may_v breed_v dissension_n all_o disputation_n touch_v the_o manner_n of_o christ_n presence_n shall_v be_v cut_v off_o see_v all_o of_o they_o do_v believe_v the_o presence_n itself_o and_o that_o the_o eucharistical_a element_n be_v not_o naked_a and_o emty_a sign_n but_o do_v true_o perform_v to_o the_o faithful_a receiver_n that_o which_o they_o signify_v and_o represent_v to_o prevent_v future_a occasion_n of_o violate_v this_o sacred_a consent_n they_o ordain_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v call_v to_o the_o sacred_a ministry_n without_o subscription_n thereunto_o and_o when_o any_o person_n shall_v be_v exclude_v by_o excommunication_n from_o the_o congregation_n of_o one_o confession_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v receive_v by_o they_o of_o another_o last_o for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o accord_n in_o the_o substantial_a verity_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n they_o profess_v themselves_o content_a to_o tolerate_v diversity_n of_o ceremony_n according_a to_o the_o diverse_a practice_n of_o their_o particular_a church_n and_o to_o remove_v the_o least_o suspicion_n of_o rebel_a &_o sedition_n wherewith_o their_o malicious_a and_o calumniate_a adversary_n may_v blemish_v the_o gospel_n though_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o many_o grievous_a pressure_n yet_o they_o earnest_o exhort_v one_o another_o to_o follow_v that_o worthy_a and_o christian_a admonition_n of_o lactantius_n defendenda_fw-la religio_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la occidendo_fw-la sed_fw-la moriendo_fw-la non_fw-la saevitiâ_fw-la sed_fw-la patientiâ_fw-la non_fw-la scelere_fw-la sed_fw-la side_n illa_fw-la enim_fw-la bonorum_fw-la haec_fw-la malorum_fw-la sunt_fw-la this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o elective_a monarchy_n of_o polonia_n who_o in_o the_o adjoin_a country_n on_o the_o fouth_z transylvania_n and_o hungary_n be_v also_o exceed_o multiply_v in_o the_o former_a by_o the_o favour_n of_o gabriel_n bartorius_n prince_n of_o that_o region_n who_o not_o many_o year_n since_o expel_v thence_o all_o such_o as_o be_v of_o the_o papal_a faction_n in_o a_o manner_n the_o whole_a inhabitant_n except_o some_o few_o rot_a and_o putrid_a limb_n of_o arrian_n antitrinitarian_n ebionits_n socinian_n anabaptist_n who_o here_o as_o also_o in_o polonia_n lituania_n and_o borussia_n have_v some_o public_a assembly_n be_v profess_a protestant_n and_o in_o hungary_n the_o great_a part_n especial_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o papist_n thence_o westward_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o bohemia_n consist_v of_o 3200_o parish_n
my_o great_a comfort_n and_o no_o small_a grief_n to_o consider_v the_o disingenuity_n of_o romanist_n in_o foment_v animosity_n among_o christian_n by_o calumniate_a thus_o the_o opposer_n of_o their_o error_n chap._n xiii_o of_o the_o several_a large_a and_o flourish_a christian_a church_n in_o the_o eastern_a country_n not_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n to_o all_o man_n true_o zealous_a of_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n it_o can_v but_o be_v comfortable_a to_o see_v how_o happy_o the_o bless_a apostle_n have_v comply_v with_o the_o command_n of_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n and_o saviour_n ●9_n saviour_n math._n 28_o ●9_n go_v and_o teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o how_o glorious_o the_o church_n plant_v by_o they_o have_v persevere_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o spite_n of_o the_o great_a persecution_n and_o under_o the_o great_a enemy_n of_o the_o christian_a name_n such_o as_o the_o turk_n be_v know_v to_o be_v and_o yet_o under_o his_o domion_n be_v a_o numberless_a number_n of_o christian_n of_o which_o the_o grecian_n be_v for_o antiquity_n number_n and_o dignity_n the_o chief_a they_o acknowledge_v obedience_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n under_o who_o jurisdiction_n be_v in_o asia_n the_o christian_n of_o anatolia_n circassia_n mengrelia_n and_o russia_n as_o in_o europe_n also_o the_o christian_n of_o grece_n macedon_n epirus_n thrace_n bulgaria_n servia_n bosnia_n walachia_n moldavia_n ●odolia_fw-la &_o moscovia_n together_o with_o all_o the_o island_n of_o the_o aegean_a sea_n and_o other_o about_o grece_n as_o far_o as_o corfu_n beside_o a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o large_a dominion_n of_o polonia_n and_o those_o part_n of_o dalmatia_n and_o croatia_n that_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o turkish_a dominion_n all_o which_o congregation_n of_o christian_n subject_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n do_v exceed_v in_o number_n they_o of_o the_o romish_a communion_n as_o i_o find_v record_v by_o diligent_a 2._o diligent_a brerewood_n inquiry_n cap._n 15._o pagit_n christianography_n cap._n 2._o writer_n whereof_o pagit_n say_v that_o christian_n make_v up_o the_o two_o three_o part_n of_o the_o grand_a signior_n subject_n all_o these_o church_n do_v deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n they_o account_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o church_n schismatical_a the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n do_v yearly_a upon_o the_o sunday_n call_v dominica_n invocavit_fw-la solemn_o excommunicate_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n for_o schismatic_n they_o deny_v transubstantiation_n touch_v which_o point_n cyril_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n deliver_v this_o excellent_a confession_n as_o agreeable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o opposite_a to_o the_o romish_a in_o the_o eucharist_n say_v 60._o say_v cap._n 17._o pag._n 60._o he_o we_o do_v confess_v a_o true_a and_o a_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n but_o such_o a_o one_o as_o faith_n offer_v we_o not_o such_o as_o devise_v transubstantiation_n teach_v for_o we_o believe_v the_o faithful_a to_o eat_v christ_n body_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n not_o sensible_o champ_v it_o with_o our_o tooth_n but_o partake_v it_o with_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o that_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o offer_v itself_o to_o our_o eye_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o that_o which_o faith_n spiritual_o apprehend_v and_o offer_v to_o we_o hence_o ensue_v that_o if_o we_o believe_v we_o eat_v and_o participate_v if_o we_o believe_v not_o we_o receive_v no_o profit_n by_o it_o hieremy_n the_o patriarch_n teach_v a_o change_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v a_o transmutation_n which_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o infer_v a_o transubstantiation_n because_o it_o may_v only_o signify_v a_o mystical_a alteration_n which_o the_o patriarch_n in_o the_o same_o place_n plain_o show_v say_v that_o the_o mystery_n be_v true_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n not_o that_o these_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v he_o be_v change_v into_o humane_a flesh_n but_o we_o into_o they_o for_o the_o better_a thing_n have_v ever_o the_o preeminence_n the_o word_n of_o cyril_n and_o hieremy_n in_o greek_a be_v to_o be_v find_v with_o mr._n pagit_n in_o his_o christianography_n cap._n 4._o they_o deny_v purgatory_n fire_n so_o nilus_n archbishop_n of_o thessalonica_n igne_fw-la thessalonica_n nilus_n p_o 219._o the_o purge_v igne_fw-la we_o have_v not_o receive_v by_o tradition_n from_o our_o teacher_n that_o there_o be_v any_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n nor_o any_o temporal_a punishment_n by_o fire_n neither_o do_v we_o know_v of_o any_o such_o doctrine_n teach_v in_o the_o eastern_a church_n 1.8_o church_n castr_n adver_n haeres_fw-la l._n 12._o p._n 1.8_o alphonsus_n de_fw-fr castro_n it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o know_a error_n of_o the_o grecian_n and_o armenian_n that_o they_o teach_v there_o be_v no_o place_n of_o purgatory_n where_o soul_n after_o this_o life_n be_v purge_v from_o their_o corruption_n which_o they_o have_v contract_v in_o their_o body_n before_o they_o deserve_v to_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o eternal_a tabernacle_n they_o administer_v the_o eucharist_n in_o both_o kind_n of_o which_o 61._o which_o cyr_n c_o 17._o p._n 61._o c●rill_n the_o patriarch_n as_o the_o institutor_n speak_v of_o his_o body_n so_o also_o of_o his_o blood_n which_o commandment_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v rend_v asunder_o or_o mangle_a according_a to_o humane_a arbitrement_n but_o the_o institution_n deliver_v to_o be_v keep_v entire_a aliter_fw-la entire_a resp_n p._n 129_o distinct_a 31._o aliter_fw-la they_o allow_v marry_v priest_n hier._n patr._n we_o do_v permit_v those_o priest_n that_o can_v contain_v the_o use_n of_o marriage_n they_o deny_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n concern_v which_o point_n 97._o point_n cyr._n resp_n ad_fw-la inter_fw-la 4._o p._n 97._o cyril_n speak_v we_o forbid_v not_o the_o historical_a use_n of_o picture_n paint_v being_n a_o famous_a and_o commendable_a art_n we_o grant_v to_o they_o that_o will_v have_v they_o the_o picture_n of_o christ_n and_o saint_n but_o their_o adoration_n and_o worship_n we_o detest_v as_o forbid_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o holy_a scripture_n lest_o we_o shall_v before_o we_o be_v aware_a adore_v colour_n instead_o of_o our_o creator_n and_o maker_n they_o acknowledge_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n for_o a_o entire_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o our_o salvation_n of_o which_o 1._o which_o damasc_n de_fw-fr orthodoxa_fw-la fide_fw-la lib._n 1._o c._n 1._o damascen_n give_v this_o testimony_n what_o soever_o be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o law_n and_o in_o the_o prophet_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n that_o we_o receive_v acknowledge_v and_o reverence_n and_o beside_o these_o we_o require_v nothing_o else_o they_o do_v not_o forbid_v the_o laity_n the_o read_n of_o scripture_n as_o the_o read_n of_o scripture_n be_v forbid_v to_o no_o christian_a man_n say_v cyril_n the_o patriarch_n so_o no_o man_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v from_o the_o read_n of_o it_o for_o the_o word_n be_v near_o in_o their_o mouth_n and_o in_o their_o heart_n therefore_o manifest_a injury_n be_v offer_v to_o any_o christian_a man_n of_o what_o rank_n or_o condition_n soever_o he_o be_v who_o be_v deprive_v or_o keep_v from_o read_v or_o hear_v the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o allow_v no_o private_a mass_n as_o ch●traeus_n relate_v no_o private_a mass_n say_v he_o be_v celebrate_v among_o the_o greck_n without_o other_o communicant_n as_o their_o liturgy_n and_o faithful_a relation_n testify_v they_o have_v prayer_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n they_o use_v not_o prayer_n for_o soul_n to_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o purgatory_n nor_o the_o extreme_a unction_n nor_o elevate_a and_o carry_v about_o the_o sacrament_n that_o it_o may_v be_v adore_v nor_o indulgence_n nor_o sale_n of_o mass_n neither_o be_v there_o in_o their_o canon_n any_o mention_n make_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o live_n and_o dead_a as_o chytraeus_n guagnirus_n and_o other_o quote_v by_o 4._o by_o pagit_n c._n 4._o pagit_n do_v relate_v other_o difference_n of_o less_o account_n betwixt_o the_o grecian_a church_n and_o the_o roman_a you_o may_v see_v relate_v by_o 38._o by_o brerew_n c._n 15._o possev_n dereb_fw-mi muscov_n pag._n 38._o brerewood_n and_o possevin_n of_o the_o same_o religion_n with_o the_o grecian_n be_v the_o christian_n of_o the_o vast_a and_o mighty_a empire_n of_o muscovia_n and_o russia_n under_o their_o metropolitan_a the_o archbishop_n of_o moscow_n nominate_v and_o appoint_v by_o the_o prince_n the_o emperor_n of_o russia_n and_o upon_o this_o nomination_n consecrate_v by_o two_o or_o three_o of_o his_o own_o suffragans_fw-la to_o these_o may_v
say_v that_o this_o severe_a sentence_n be_v not_o of_o their_o make_n but_o deliver_v by_o christ_n against_o all_o that_o will_v not_o obey_v his_o vicar_n upon_o earth_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o possible_a it_o be_v that_o some_o of_o the_o simple_a sort_n may_v believe_v it_o be_v so_o but_o it_o be_v long_a since_o i_o know_v and_o prove_v that_o none_o sufficient_o conversant_a in_o the_o principle_n of_o their_o own_o theology_n can_v serious_o think_v it_o to_o be_v so_o but_o that_o according_a to_o their_o principle_n its_o blasphemy_n and_o heresy_n to_o say_v without_o restriction_n and_o in_o general_a term_n as_o common_o they_o do_v that_o none_o may_v be_v save_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o my_o antagonist_n i.s._n tell_v we_o i_o do_v not_o trespass_v therein_o against_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n but_o against_o policy_n or_o prudence_n as_o he_o call_v it_o whereby_o i_o put_v a_o great_a stop_n to_o the_o conversion_n of_o protestant_n if_o people_n do_v think_v that_o out_o of_o the_o romish_a communion_n any_o may_v be_v save_v so_o as_o the_o prudence_n demand_v from_o i_o be_v to_o fashion_v my_o doctrine_n to_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o pope_n dominion_n be_v it_o with_o truth_n or_o untruth_n and_o pronounce_v sentence_n of_o damnation_n against_o all_o christian_n not_o subject_a to_o he_o though_o i_o shall_v know_v no_o such_o sentence_n to_o be_v against_o they_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n i_o wish_v my_o good_a brethren_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v reflect_v upon_o and_o acknowledge_v the_o great_a injury_n they_o do_v to_o themselves_o in_o breed_v and_o foment_v this_o unchristian_a hostility_n with_o the_o whole_a society_n of_o christian_n separate_v from_o their_o communion_n so_o numerous_a and_o illustrious_a as_o we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o precede_a chapter_n imprint_v hatred_n towards_o all_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o their_o child_n which_o forcible_o must_v beget_v a_o return_n of_o hatred_n or_o disaffection_n and_o mistrust_n how_o incommodious_a it_o be_v to_o create_v to_o themselves_o so_o many_o enemy_n how_o uneasy_a and_o disadvantageous_a to_o bereave_v themselves_o of_o the_o free_a and_o amiable_a society_n of_o so_o many_o noble_a nation_n and_o brave_a people_n which_o the_o apprehension_n of_o heresy_n make_v intractable_a to_o they_o what_o happen_v to_o i_o with_o a_o spanish_a young_a man_n that_o come_v in_o my_o company_n out_o of_o spain_n into_o england_n make_v i_o more_o sensible_a of_o the_o misery_n that_o romanist_n bring_v upon_o themselves_o this_o way_n he_o be_v of_o his_o own_o disposition_n cheerful_a and_o sociable_a but_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o come_v among_o the_o english_a people_n his_o heart_n and_o countenance_n fall_v down_o and_o he_o appear_v sad_a and_o melancholic_a i_o inquire_v of_o he_o the_o cause_n of_o that_o alteration_n he_o answer_v that_o he_o look_v upon_o all_o those_o man_n as_o heretic_n which_o make_v their_o very_a sight_n odious_a to_o he_o and_o their_o company_n displease_v the_o man_n do_v not_o well_o know_v what_o heresy_n be_v and_o much_o less_o do_v he_o know_v whether_o those_o man_n he_o see_v be_v heretic_n or_o no._n he_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v good_a man_n just_a and_o civil_a in_o their_o deal_n and_o adorn_v with_o noble_a gift_n of_o god_n yet_o the_o prejudice_n he_o be_v in_o against_o they_o by_o conceive_v they_o to_o be_v heretic_n make_v their_o sight_n and_o company_n odious_a to_o he_o will_v not_o this_o man_n have_v be_v more_o happy_a in_o conceive_v a_o better_a opinion_n of_o the_o people_n will_v it_o not_o make_v he_o live_v with_o more_o ease_n and_o comfort_n among_o they_o not_o to_o mention_v now_o that_o high_a emolument_fw-fr and_o duty_n of_o maintain_v charity_n towards_o all_o men._n chap._n xvi_o inference_n from_o the_o precede_a doctrine_n of_o this_o whole_a treatise_n against_o the_o several_a objection_n of_o n._n n._n he_o that_o have_v not_o consider_v the_o frame_n i_o propose_v to_o observe_v in_o this_o treatise_n and_o see_v i_o go_v through_o many_o chapter_n of_o it_o debate_v with_o suarez_n and_o other_o romish_a writer_n without_o any_o mention_n of_o n._n n._n may_v think_v i_o have_v neglect_v or_o forget_v he_o and_o his_o book_n but_o if_o he_o will_v take_v notice_n of_o my_o purpose_n make_v in_o the_o beginning_n of_o cut_v down_o by_o the_o root_n the_o whole_a fabric_n of_o the_o say_a book_n he_o shall_v find_v i_o be_o still_o upon_o my_o intend_a work_n the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o all_o the_o cry_n and_o complaint_n of_o n._n n._n against_o i_o be_v a_o supposition_n that_o i_o have_v leave_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o faith_n by_o withdraw_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o embrace_v this_o of_o england_n in_o the_o whole_a discourse_n of_o this_o treatise_n i_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v in_o all_o propriety_n catholic_n and_o the_o faith_n profess_v in_o it_o true_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a and_o all_o this_o by_o rule_n and_o principle_n take_v from_o the_o able_a of_o romish_a writer_n for_o proceed_v in_o this_o inquiry_n whereby_o it_o remain_v prove_v that_o all_o the_o exclamation_n of_o n._n n._n against_o i_o go_v upon_o a_o false_a supposition_n and_o consequent_o be_v vain_a and_o groundless_a hence_o i_o infer_v first_o how_o vain_a be_v his_o query_n and_o more_o vain_a his_o divine_a answer_n about_o what_o draw_v i_o out_o of_o god_n house_n it_o appear_v by_o what_o be_v say_v hitherto_o and_o will_v be_v further_o declare_v in_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o book_n that_o in_o my_o change_n i_o do_v not_o leave_v the_o house_n of_o god_n but_o remove_v to_o the_o best_a and_o sound_a part_n of_o it_o that_o no_o private_a spirit_n or_o rash_a fancy_n move_v i_o but_o a_o sincere_a acknowledgement_n of_o truth_n by_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n god_n have_v dispose_v for_o we_o to_o come_v by_o it_o i_o infer_v second_o how_o groundless_a and_o unreasonable_a his_o pretention_n be_v that_o i_o shall_v have_v quit_v the_o holy_a doctor_n gregory_n ambrose_n augustine_n and_o jerom_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o catholic_a doctor_n he_o do_v not_o tell_v how_o or_o wherein_o i_o have_v desert_v that_o noble_a company_n neither_o indeed_o be_v it_o easy_a for_o he_o to_o tell_v it_o i_o live_v and_o do_v firm_o resolve_v to_o die_v in_o the_o same_o catholic_a church_n which_o they_o live_v and_o die_v in_o and_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o same_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a faith_n which_o they_o profess_v the_o same_o and_o no_o other_o faith_n be_v profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o communion_n i_o have_v embrace_v as_o have_v be_v sufficient_o demonstrate_v hitherto_o and_o i_o hope_v by_o the_o merit_n and_o grace_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n to_o enjoy_v the_o company_n of_o those_o bless_a saint_n in_o heaven_n maugreall_a the_o censure_n of_o rome_n neither_o be_v i_o ever_o close_o with_o those_o holy_a father_n in_o the_o romish_a church_n than_o i_o be_o now_o in_o the_o english_a it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o perverse_a calumny_n of_o our_o adversary_n to_o give_v forth_o that_o there_o be_v not_o due_a regard_n have_v of_o they_o here_o i_o see_v the_o contrary_n i_o have_v observe_v diligent_o the_o way_n of_o the_o university_n and_o method_n of_o study_n with_o learned_a man_n in_o england_n and_o ireland_n and_o i_o see_v with_o they_o far_o great_a application_n to_o the_o study_n and_o read_n of_o holy_a father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n than_o ever_o i_o see_v among_o romanist_n whilst_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o these_o spend_v their_o life_n and_o force_n in_o speculative_a notion_n only_o serve_v school_n debate_v learned_a protestant_n employ_v their_o time_n more_o happy_o in_o the_o study_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o father_n and_o credible_a history_n i_o infer_v three_o how_o rash_a and_o injurious_a be_v his_o censure_n in_o say_v that_o by_o embrace_v the_o confession_n contain_v in_o the_o 39_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o have_v make_v myself_o partaker_n of_o all_o the_o heresy_n and_o a_o associate_n of_o all_o the_o heretic_n that_o be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o this_o day_n of_o these_o he_o make_v a_o great_a list_n begin_v with_o lucifer_n who_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v the_o first_o heretic_n before_o man_n creation_n and_o from_o he_o proceed_v to_o lamech_v the_o giant_n all_o those_o that_o enter_v not_o into_o the_o ark_n but_o perish_v in_o the_o deluge_n who_o be_v all_o heretic_n say_v he_o then_o enter_v cham_n with_o the_o bvilder_n of_o babel_n esau_n jannes_n and_o jambres_n corah_n and_o dathan_n nadah_n and_o
abihu_n all_o those_o strange_a king_n that_o make_v war_n against_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n all_o the_o false_a prophet_n of_o baal_n of_o all_o these_o heretic_n he_o say_v i_o be_o become_v a_o associate_n by_o embrace_v the_o confession_n contain_v in_o the_o 39_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o be_v not_o all_o this_o rage_n without_o any_o mixture_n of_o reason_n be_v it_o not_o a_o sufficient_a confutation_n of_o the_o man_n and_o a_o foul_a confusion_n to_o he_o to_o repete_fw-la this_o rave_a speech_n of_o he_o in_o what_o part_n of_o the_o 39_o article_n or_o of_o the_o three_o creed_n we_o use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n will_v he_o find_v those_o heresy_n he_o appropriat_v to_o we_o but_o he_o will_v come_v near_a home_n and_o make_v a_o long_a narrative_a of_o error_n and_o vice_n relate_v of_o luther_n calvin_n melanchton_n and_o other_o who_o contribute_v with_o their_o writing_n to_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n to_o which_o i_o say_v first_o that_o i_o have_v but_o too_o much_o reason_n not_o to_o believe_v all_o that_o they_o say_v of_o their_o opposer_n second_o that_o though_o some_o of_o those_o who_o concur_v to_o the_o reformation_n shall_v have_v fall_v as_o man_n into_o some_o vice_n or_o error_n the_o reformation_n itself_o which_o certain_o be_v a_o work_n of_o god_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v undervalue_v for_o that_o the_o sacred_a college_n of_o the_o apostle_n first_o founder_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n have_v in_o it_o one_o as_o bad_a as_o judas_n shall_v the_o whole_a college_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o religion_n found_v by_o they_o be_v disesteem_v for_o that_o several_a of_o those_o renown_a father_n preacher_n and_o defender_n of_o the_o gospel_n after_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o origen_n tertullian_n etc._n etc._n through_o human_a frailty_n be_v guilty_a of_o no_o few_o error_n shall_v we_o therefore_o despise_v the_o work_n they_o do_v and_o the_o healthful_a part_n of_o their_o doctrine_n if_o you_o do_v tell_v i_o of_o some_o doctrine_n impose_v upon_o we_o as_o a_o article_n of_o belief_n and_o rule_v of_o manner_n that_o be_v heretical_a or_o opposite_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n that_o be_v pertinent_a to_o work_v upon_o i_o but_o this_o i_o be_o certain_a you_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o do_v and_o no_o less_o certain_a be_o i_o that_o your_o church_n be_v guilty_a of_o such_o imposition_n upon_o its_o follower_n as_o i_o shall_v demonstrate_v by_o several_a instance_n in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n but_o to_o tell_v i_o of_o vice_n and_o error_n of_o particular_a person_n be_v both_o impertinent_a and_o imprudent_a i_o know_v so_o much_o how_o matter_n go_v on_o your_o side_n i_o appeal_v to_o your_o own_o knowledge_n by_o what_o you_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v of_o of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o if_o you_o will_v conceal_v your_o knowledge_n herein_o i_o remit_v yourself_o and_o the_o reader_n not_o to_o protestant_a historian_n which_o happy_o you_o may_v suspect_v but_o to_o your_o own_o most_o qualify_v as_o platina_n onuphrius_n and_o even_o baronius_n read_v in_o they_o the_o act_n and_o life_n of_o several_a of_o those_o your_o holy_a father_n and_o infallible_a oracle_n of_o doctrine_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n see_v the_o transaction_n of_o john_n the_o thirteen_o about_o the_o year_n 966_o or_o of_o sylvester_n the_o secound_a about_o the_o year_n 999._o or_o john_n the_o 18._o about_o the_o year_n 1003._o or_o benedict_n the_o 9_o about_o the_o year_n 1033._o or_o of_o gregory_n the_o 7._o about_o the_o year_n 1080._o or_o boniface_n the_o 8._o about_o the_o year_n 1294._o or_o alexander_n the_o 6._o and_o of_o his_o outrageous_a son_n caesar_n borgia_n about_o the_o year_n 1294._o and_o you_o shall_v find_v they_o to_o be_v such_o man_n as_o no_o epicurean_a monster_n story_v out_o to_o the_o world_n have_v outgon_v they_o in_o sensuality_n cruelty_n tyranny_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o vice_n and_o while_o i_o have_v in_o my_o memory_n and_o before_o my_o eye_n unfeigned_a history_n of_o this_o kind_n spare_v heap_v fable_n against_o some_o particular_a person_n concur_v to_o the_o reformation_n but_o who_o will_v not_o admire_v the_o man_n disingenuity_n in_o reproach_v i_o and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n with_o the_o tenet_n or_o madness_n of_o the_o quaker_n which_o he_o relate_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 16_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n know_v and_o confess_v in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o they_o be_v reprove_v and_o punish_v by_o this_o church_n and_o that_o the_o author_n of_o they_o james_n naylour_n be_v condemn_v to_o a_o perpetual_a imprisonment_n after_o be_v whip_v public_o and_o his_o tongue_n bore_v with_o a_o burn_a iron_n may_v not_o i_o with_o the_o same_o reason_n reproach_n he_o and_o his_o church_n with_o the_o horrid_a impiety_n of_o the_o jew_n moor_n and_o atheist_n as_o thick_o set_v in_o spain_n and_o italy_n as_o quaker_n among_o we_o but_o be_v that_o fair_a deal_n i_o know_v that_o such_o sect_n be_v not_o approve_v of_o but_o rather_o punish_v in_o those_o country_n why_o then_o for_o shame_n will_n n._n n._n tell_v i_o i_o be_o become_v of_o the_o society_n of_o quaker_n by_o adhere_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n he_o tell_v at_o the_o same_o time_n how_o severe_o they_o be_v punish_v among_o we_o and_o if_o i_o be_v of_o his_o temper_n for_o pleasure_v vulgar_a reader_n with_o story_n and_o rarity_n of_o this_o kind_n i_o can_v with_o more_o ground_n of_o truth_n and_o therefore_o more_o sensible_o return_v upon_o he_o a_o large_a sum_n of_o practice_n which_o to_o indifferent_a judgement_n will_v appear_v no_o better_o than_o madness_n yet_o daily_o use_v by_o person_n and_o society_n approve_v and_o applaud_v in_o his_o church_n but_o i_o reserve_v my_o time_n and_o labour_n for_o a_o more_o serious_a and_o become_a work_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o remit_v he_o to_o sir_n edwin_n sandys_n his_o book_n contain_v a_o survey_n of_o the_o western_a church_n where_o he_o shall_v see_v set_v down_o with_o candour_n and_o ingenuity_n become_v a_o gentleman_n and_o a_o christian_a the_o rite_n and_o custom_n he_o see_v practise_v in_o several_a society_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o do_v not_o grudge_n to_o praise_v they_o where_o he_o find_v they_o praise_v worthy_a neither_o do_v he_o sour_a his_o pen_n in_o relate_v their_o fault_n if_o you_o will_v be_v ingenuous_a you_o will_v confess_v he_o say_v nothing_o but_o what_o you_o know_v yourself_o to_o be_v in_o practice_n and_o if_o long_a custom_n and_o passion_n get_v by_o it_o have_v not_o blind_v your_o judgement_n you_o shall_v perceive_v many_o of_o those_o practice_n to_o be_v as_o unreasonable_a and_o mad_a as_o any_o of_o those_o you_o relate_v of_o the_o quaker_n and_o if_o you_o will_v have_v a_o more_o exact_a and_o vigorous_a discussion_n of_o this_o point_n go_v to_o dr._n still_v fleet_n his_o book_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o fanaticism_n practise_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v in_o it_o confusion_n enough_o and_o reason_n to_o spare_v object_v to_o we_o the_o folly_n of_o quaker_n and_o whereas_o you_o pretend_v to_o fright_v i_o with_o represent_v to_o i_o error_n of_o particular_a person_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n if_o i_o will_v resolve_v to_o make_v a_o return_n to_o you_o of_o that_o kind_n i_o can_v make_v my_o book_n swell_v and_o the_o reader_n heart_n tremble_v by_o relate_v the_o heresy_n blasphemy_n and_o execrable_a doctrine_n which_o i_o have_v hear_v preach_v and_o see_v print_v by_o person_n of_o your_o church_n i_o will_v only_o relate_v to_o you_o for_o example_n some_o few_o proposition_n of_o book_n that_o come_v to_o my_o own_o hand_n the_o one_o be_v of_o a_o grave_a preacher_n who_o prepare_v for_o the_o print_n a_o large_a volume_n of_o commentary_n upon_o the_o gospel_n of_o st._n mark_n this_o book_n be_v send_v by_o the_o provincial_n of_o his_o order_n to_o be_v examine_v by_o i_o and_o have_v read_v it_o with_o attention_n i_o vote_v against_o the_o print_n of_o it_o for_o several_a fault_n i_o specify_v in_o my_o censure_n but_o especial_o for_o contain_v some_o desperate_a blasphemous_a proposition_n as_o this_o follow_v touch_v st._n john_n evangelist_n joannis_n excellentia_fw-la titulo_fw-la dilecti_fw-la maxima_fw-la est_fw-la major_a est_fw-la quam_fw-la redemtoris_fw-la etiam_fw-la in_o deo_fw-la tanta_fw-la est_fw-la quanta_fw-la esse_fw-la deum_fw-la trinum_fw-la &_o unum_fw-la imo_fw-la propter_fw-la hoc_fw-la verbum_fw-la caro_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la for_o the_o understanding_n of_o which_o mad_a piece_n of_o rhetoric_n it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o there_o be_v two_o sect_n of_o nun_n the_o
papam_fw-la de_fw-la parte_fw-la mea_fw-la salutate_fw-la &_o apostolica_fw-la praecepta_fw-la humiliter_fw-la audite_fw-la sed_fw-la superfluas_fw-la adinventiones_fw-la regno_fw-la meo_fw-la adinferre_v nolite_fw-la salute_v the_o pope_n from_o he_o hear_v his_o precept_n but_o bring_v no_o superfluous_a device_n or_o innovation_n into_o his_o kingdom_n true_a it_o be_v that_o several_a of_o our_o godly_a king_n do_v permit_v appeal_n shall_v be_v make_v to_o rome_n in_o matter_n wherein_o our_o own_o bishop_n can_v not_o agree_v and_o direction_n to_o be_v seek_v from_o thence_o as_o from_o a_o flourish_a and_o learned_a church_n not_o as_o a_o superior_a judicature_n and_o when_o the_o roman_a bishop_n do_v pretend_v to_o any_o such_o superiority_n our_o king_n do_v protest_v against_o it_o so_o henry_n the_o five_o have_v demand_v of_o martin_n the_o four_o some_o particular_n to_o which_o his_o ambassador_n not_o find_v he_o ready_a to_o assent_v they_o 57_o they_o arthur_n duc._n in_o vita_fw-la henrici_fw-la chich_o p._n 56._o 57_o tell_v he_o that_o they_o have_v order_n to_o protest_v before_o he_o that_o the_o king_n will_v use_v his_o own_o right_n in_o those_o particular_n as_o thing_n which_o he_o demand_v not_o out_o of_o necessity_n but_o for_o the_o honour_n &_o respect_n he_o be_v willing_a to_o show_v to_o that_o sea_n that_o they_o shall_v make_v a_o public_a protestation_n thereof_o before_o the_o whole_a college_n of_o cardinal_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n be_v sundry_a example_n remain_v on_o 38._o on_o rot._n parliam_fw-la 17_o edward_n 3._o n._n 59_o 25._o edw._n 3._o oct_n purif_n n._n 13._o 7._o hen._n 4._o n._n 114._o 13._o hen._n 6._o n._n 38._o record_n where_o the_o king_n at_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o commons_o for_o redress_v of_o some_o thing_n amiss_o belong_v to_o ecclesiastic_a cognizance_n first_o choose_v to_o write_v to_o the_o pope_n but_o on_o his_o delay_n or_o fail_v to_o give_v satisfaction_n do_v either_o himself_o by_o statute_n redress_v the_o inconveniency_n or_o command_v the_o archbishop_n to_o see_v it_o do_v for_o certain_a it_o be_v by_o the_o course_n of_o all_o our_o chronicle_n and_o history_n that_o our_o king_n together_o with_o the_o convocation_n of_o their_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n have_v in_o themselves_o absolute_a and_o entire_a power_n of_o govern_v and_o reform_v the_o church_n of_o this_o kingdom_n without_o any_o dependency_n upon_o any_o foreign_a authority_n it_o be_v never_o doubt_v neither_o can_v it_o be_v deny_v upon_o any_o warrantable_a ground_n that_o they_o have_v within_o their_o own_o dominion_n the_o same_o power_n which_o constantine_n have_v in_o the_o empire_n and_o that_o our_o bishop_n have_v the_o same_o which_o st._n peter_n have_v in_o the_o church_n for_o which_o since_o the_o erection_n of_o canterbury_n into_o a_o archbishopric_n the_o bishop_n of_o that_o sea_n be_v hold_v 127.15_o hold_v malm_n de_fw-fr pontif._n lib._n 1._o in_o ansel_n fol._n 127.15_o quasi_fw-la alterius_fw-la orbis_fw-la papae_fw-la as_o vrban_a the_o second_o style_v they_o and_o do_v exercise_v vice_n apostolicas_fw-la in_o anglia_fw-it that_o be_v they_o use_v the_o same_o power_n within_o this_o island_n which_o the_o 27._o the_o eadmer_n p._n 27._o pope_n do_v in_o other_o part_n and_o in_o our_o writer_n the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v frequent_o call_v princeps_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la angliae_fw-la 33._o angliae_fw-la ib._n p._n 107._o 33._o pontifex_fw-la summus_fw-la 54._o summus_fw-la gervas_n boro_n by'r_a col_fw-fr 1663._o 54._o patriacha_n king_n edgar_z assert_v this_o power_n to_o be_v in_o himself_o and_o in_o his_o clergy_n in_o his_o memorable_a speech_n make_v to_o they_o 361.16_o they_o apud_fw-la ailred_n col_fw-fr 361.16_o ego_fw-la constantini_n vos_fw-fr petri_n gladium_fw-la habetis_fw-la in_o manibus_fw-la i_o bear_v in_o my_o hand_n the_o sword_n of_o constantin_n and_o you_o that_o of_o peter_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o affair_n of_o most_o concern_v in_o the_o church_n have_v their_o dependence_n on_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o those_o time_n do_v not_o doubt_v to_o continue_v to_o he_o the_o style_n of_o pontifex_fw-la maximus_fw-la as_o 106._o as_o tom._n 3._o a_o 312._o n._n 106._o baronius_n note_n sine_fw-la ulla_fw-la christianitatis_fw-la labe_fw-la so_o 16._o so_o regularis_fw-la concordia_fw-la etc._n etc._n not._n seldeni_n ad_fw-la eadmerum_fw-la p._n 146._o 16._o king_n edgar_n be_v solicito_fw-la be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o his_o kingdom_n veluti_fw-la domini_fw-la sedulus_fw-la agricola_n &_o pastorum_fw-la pastor_n and_o write_v himself_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o his_o 476._o his_o council_n spelm._n à_fw-fr p._n 444._o a●_n p._n 476._o law_n and_o canon_n he_o make_v know_v that_o he_o do_v not_o assume_v those_o title_n in_o vain_a king_n defendat_fw-la king_n leg._n edw._n confess_v c._n 17._o p._n 142._o rex_fw-la quia_fw-la vicartus_fw-la summi_fw-la regis_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la hocest_n constitutus_fw-la ut_fw-la regnum_fw-la terrenum_fw-la &_o populum_fw-la dom●ni_fw-la &_o s●per_fw-la omne_fw-la sanctam_fw-la veneretur_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la ejus_fw-la &_o regat_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la injurtis_fw-la defendat_fw-la edward_n the_o confessor_n a_o canonize_a saint_n do_v declare_v the_o same_o and_o practise_v according_o the_o king_n say_v he_o be_v vicar_n of_o the_o supreme_a king_n his_o duty_n be_v to_o govern_v and_o defend_v the_o earthly_a kingdom_n and_o the_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n from_o injury_n and_o over_o all_o to_o reverence_n govern_v and_o defend_v his_o church_n the_o same_o be_v declare_v and_o practise_v by_o 1._o by_o leg._n inae_fw-la in_o pras_fw-la p._n 1._o ina_n who_o baronius_n style_v a_o most_o pious_a king_n by_o 109._o by_o leg._n fol._n 11._o p._n 109._o canutus_n acknowledge_v for_o a_o most_o bountiful_a benefactor_n of_o church_n and_o of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n erga_n ecclesias_fw-la atque_fw-la dei_fw-la seruos_fw-la benignissimus_fw-la largitor_fw-la as_o c_o as_o epist_n 97._o fol._n 93._o canut_n c_o furbertus_n carnotensis_n relate_v of_o he_o and_o several_a other_o godly_a king_n of_o england_n who_o several_a law_n touch_v ecclesiastic_a affair_n you_o may_v see_v relate_v by_o jorvalens_n c._n 2._o col_fw-fr 761._o c._n 5._o col_fw-fr 830._o c._n 23._o col_fw-fr 921._o as_o also_o the_o law_n of_o emperor_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o the_o book_n of_o co_fw-la of_o codex_fw-la theodos_fw-la de_fw-fr seriis_fw-la de_fw-la nuptiis_fw-la etc._n etc._n de_fw-fr s●de_fw-fr catholica_fw-la de_fw-la episcopis_fw-la ecclesiis_fw-la &_o clericis_fw-la de_fw-la monachis_fw-la de_fw-la haereticit_fw-la de_fw-fr apost_n de_fw-fr religione_fw-la de_fw-la episcopali_fw-la judicio_fw-la &_o cod_n jast_n l._n 1._o tit._n 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o &_o passim_fw-la in_o co_fw-la theodosius_n and_o justinian_n the_o emperor_n do_v employ_v their_o bishop_n and_o divine_n in_o resolve_v upon_o wholesome_a decree_n touch_v church_n affair_n and_o these_o decree_n they_o espouse_v themselves_o for_o law_n so_o as_o the_o transgressor_n of_o they_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o penalty_n this_o same_o course_n our_o king_n have_v take_v as_o well_o in_o former_a age_n as_o in_o this_o latter_a of_o the_o reformation_n of_o our_o church_n henry_n the_o eight_o have_v those_o occasion_n of_o discontent_n with_o pope_n clement_n the_o seven_o which_o as_o too_o much_o know_v i_o omit_v to_o relate_v and_o be_v urge_v by_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o execute_v at_o last_o what_o long_a time_n be_v desire_v and_o often_o attemt_v in_o england_n viz._n to_o throw_v off_o the_o usurp_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o this_o kingdom_n to_o proceed_v with_o due_a legality_n and_o consideration_n in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n he_o write_v to_o the_o university_n and_o great_a monastery_n and_o church_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o year_n 1534._o and_o the_o eighteen_o of_o may_n of_o the_o same_o year_n to_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n require_v they_o like_o man_n of_o virtue_n and_o profound_a literature_n diligent_o to_o entreat_v examine_v and_o discuss_v a_o certain_a question_n viz._n a_o romanus_n episcopus_fw-la habeat_fw-la majorem_fw-la aliquam_fw-la jurisdictionem_fw-la sibi_fw-la collatam_fw-la in_o sacra_fw-la scriptura_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la regno_fw-la angliae_fw-la quam_fw-la alius_fw-la quivis_fw-la externus_fw-la episcopus_fw-la whether_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v any_o great_a jurisdiction_n give_v to_o he_o in_o holy_a scripture_n over_o this_o kingdom_n of_o england_n than_o any_o other_o foreign_a bishop_n and_o to_o return_v their_o opinion_n in_o write_v under_o their_o common_a seal_n according_a to_o the_o mere_a and_o sincere_a truth_n of_o the_o same_o to_o which_o after_o mature_a deliberation_n and_o examination_n they_o return_v answer_v that_o he_o have_v no_o such_o jurisdiction_n in_o this_o land_n the_o word_n of_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n return_v their_o answer_n to_o the_o king_n upon_o this_o subject_a the_o 27._o of_o june_n of_o the_o aforesaid_a 1534._o
which_o i_o see_v in_o the_o record_n of_o that_o university_n be_v as_o follow_v post_fw-la susceptam_fw-la itaque_fw-la per_fw-la nos_fw-la quaestionem_fw-la ante_fw-la dictam_fw-la cum_fw-la omni_fw-la humilitate_fw-la devotione_fw-la ac_fw-la debita_fw-la reverentia_fw-la convocatis_fw-la undique_fw-la dictae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la academiae_fw-la theologis_fw-la habitoque_fw-la complurium_fw-la dierum_fw-la spatio_fw-la ac_fw-la deliberandi_fw-la tempore_fw-la satis_fw-la amplo_fw-la quo_fw-la interim_n cum_fw-la omni_fw-la qua_fw-la potuimus_fw-la diligentia_fw-la justitiae_fw-la zelo_fw-la religione_fw-la &_o conscientia_fw-la incorrupta_fw-la perscrutaremur_fw-la tam_fw-la sacrae_fw-la scripturae_fw-la libros_fw-la quam_fw-la super_fw-la cisdem_fw-la approbatissimos_fw-la interpretes_n &_o eos_fw-la quidem_fw-la saepe_fw-la &_o saepius_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la evolutos_fw-la &_o exactissime_fw-la collatos_fw-la repetitos_fw-la &_o examinatos_fw-la deinde_fw-la &_o disputationibus_fw-la solennibus_fw-la palam_fw-la &_o publicae_fw-la habitis_fw-la &_o celebratis_fw-la tandem_fw-la in_o hanc_fw-la sententiam_fw-la unanimiter_fw-la omnes_fw-la convenimus_fw-la ac_fw-la concord_n fuimus_fw-la viz._n romanum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la majorem_fw-la aliquam_fw-la jurisdictionem_fw-la non_fw-la habere_fw-la sibi_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la collatam_fw-la in_o sacra_fw-la scriptura_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la regno_fw-la anglia_fw-it quam_fw-la alium_fw-la quemvis_fw-la externum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la we_o therefore_o after_o have_v take_v in_o hand_n this_o question_n with_o all_o humility_n devotion_n and_o due_a reverence_n the_o divine_n of_o our_o university_n be_v call_v together_o from_o all_o place_n and_o the_o space_n of_o many_o day_n and_o time_n enough_o bein_z give_v for_o deliberate_v whereby_o with_o all_o diligence_n possible_a zeal_n of_o justice_n religion_n and_o upright_a conscience_n we_o shall_v search_v as_o well_o the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o the_o most_o approve_a interpreter_n of_o they_o and_o they_o be_v very_o often_o turn_v over_o by_o we_o and_o most_o exact_o confer_v together_o review_v &_o examine_v &_o moreover_o have_v celebrate_v &_o hold_v public_a &_o solemn_a dispute_n on_o this_o subject_n at_o last_o we_o have_v all_o unanimous_o agree_v upon_o this_o sentence_n viz._n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o any_o more_o jurisdiction_n give_v to_o he_o by_o god_n in_o holy_a scripture_n in_o this_o kingdom_n of_o england_n than_o any_o other_o foreign_a bishop_n have_v have_v meet_v with_o this_o religious_a and_o learned_a declaration_n of_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n i_o think_v convenient_a to_o relate_v it_o here_o as_o well_o for_o the_o authority_n the_o opinion_n of_o this_o great_a university_n be_v apt_a to_o give_v to_o the_o matter_n as_o also_o that_o it_o may_v be_v to_o we_o a_o argument_n of_o the_o zeal_n and_o diligence_n wherewith_o the_o other_o school_n monastery_n and_o church_n do_v proceed_v to_o deliver_v their_o opinion_n upon_o this_o subject_n and_o if_o it_o be_v true_a what_o the_o famous_a canonist_n tenerent_fw-la canonist_n navar._n cap._n cum_fw-la conti_fw-la get_v the_o rescript_n reme_v 1_o n._n ●o_o qui_fw-la unius_fw-la ●_z erudition_n ac_fw-la animi_fw-la pretate_fw-la celebr●s_fw-la autoritate_fw-la d●ctus_fw-la secerit_fw-la all_o quid_fw-la ex●usatur_fw-la etiam●●d_fw-la non_fw-la esset_fw-la justum_fw-la &_o alii_fw-la contrarium_fw-la tenerent_fw-la navarre_n say_v and_o now_o be_v more_o common_o say_v and_o confirm_v by_o casuist_n and_o canonist_n that_o who_o do_v any_o thing_n follow_v therein_o the_o opinion_n of_o one_o doctor_n of_o know_a learning_n and_o piety_n though_o other_o be_v of_o contrary_a opinion_n be_v excuse_v though_o happy_o what_o he_o do_v shall_v not_o be_v just_a in_o itself_o and_o if_o the_o authority_n of_o one_o doctor_n of_o learning_n and_o piety_n can_v justify_v a_o man_n proceed_v shall_v not_o the_o opinion_n of_o so_o great_a a_o number_n of_o man_n famous_a for_o learning_n and_o piety_n that_o be_v then_o in_o the_o university_n monastery_n and_o church_n of_o england_n justify_v the_o proceed_n of_o king_n henry_n in_o free_v his_o kingdom_n from_o the_o slavery_n it_o be_v in_o under_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n this_o indeed_o be_v to_o lay_v the_o axe_n to_o the_o root_n of_o the_o romish_a usurpation_n and_o corruption_n in_o this_o land_n their_o pretend_a authority_n in_o it_o be_v find_v and_o declare_v not_o to_o be_v from_o god_n nor_o ground_v upon_o his_o divine_a word_n but_o illegal_o and_o fraudulent_o intrude_v upon_o the_o nation_n it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v all_o at_o their_o own_o liberty_n to_o reform_v their_o church_n by_o a_o national_a synod_n of_o their_o own_o prelate_n and_o clergy_n under_o the_o protection_n and_o inspection_n of_o their_o prince_n as_o in_o other_o time_n be_v do_v in_o this_o land_n &_o in_o consequence_n to_o this_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v congregat_v in_o 1533._o in_o stat._n 26._o hen._n 8._o c._n 1._o begin_v nou._n 3._o end_n dec._n 18._o 1533._o parliament_n a_o 1533_o have_v declare_v that_o his_o majesty_n his_o heir_n and_o successor_n king_n of_o this_o realm_n shall_v have_v full_a power_n and_o authority_n from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o visit_v repress_v redress_v all_o such_o error_n heresy_n abuse_n etc._n etc._n which_o by_o any_o manner_n of_o spiritual_a authority_n or_o jurisdiction_n may_v be_v lawful_o reform_v repress_a order_v redress_v etc._n etc._n and_o this_o be_v not_o to_o assume_v a_o new_a power_n but_o to_o renew_v and_o publish_v the_o ancient_a right_n of_o the_o king_n of_o this_o land_n it_o be_v true_a that_o pope_n in_o former_a age_n not_o find_v mean_n to_o hinder_v our_o prince_n from_o exercise_v this_o right_a of_o their_o own_o will_v by_o privilege_n continue_v it_o unto_o they_o so_o pope_n nichelas_n find_v our_o king_n to_o express_v one_o part_n of_o their_o office_n to_o be_v regere_fw-la populum_fw-la domini_fw-la &_o ecclesiam_fw-la ejus_fw-la write_v to_o edward_n the_o confessor_n vobis_fw-la &_o posteris_fw-la ves●ris_fw-la regibus_fw-la angliae_fw-la committimus_fw-la convocationem_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la loci_fw-la &_o omnium_fw-la totius_fw-la angliae_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la &_o vice_fw-la nostra_fw-la cum_fw-la consilio_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la &_o abbatum_fw-la constituatis_fw-la ubique_fw-la quae_fw-la justa_fw-la sunt_fw-la we_o commit_v unto_o you_o and_o your_o successor_n king_n of_o england_n the_o government_n of_o that_o place_n and_o of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o in_o our_o name_n you_o may_v by_o the_o council_n of_o bishop_n and_o abbot_n order_n in_o all_o place_n what_o will_v be_v just_a the_o same_o pope_n do_v allow_v the_o like_a privilege_n to_o the_o emperor_n 23._o emperor_n bar._n 11._o annal._n 1059._o n._n 23._o nicolaus_n papa_n hoc_fw-la domino_fw-la meo_fw-la privilegium_fw-la quod_fw-la ex_fw-la paterno_fw-la jure_fw-la susceperat_fw-la praebuit_fw-la say_a the_o emperor_n advocate_n pope_n nicholas_n allow_v this_o privilege_n to_o my_o master_n which_o himself_o have_v by_o his_o birthright_n by_o the_o like_a art_n find_v the_o people_n of_o england_n unwilling_a to_o acknowledge_v any_o ecclesiastic_a power_n beside_o that_o of_o the_o land_n and_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n for_o supreme_a of_o it_o under_o the_o king_n the_o pope_n have_v contrive_v that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n shall_v exercise_v that_o power_n as_o from_o they_o under_o the_o name_n of_o legatus_fw-la natus_fw-la or_o legate_n by_o his_o place_n of_o the_o roman_a sea_n this_o may_v seem_v like_o what_o they_o report_v of_o the_o great_a cham_n of_o tartary_n that_o after_o he_o have_v dine_v he_o order_v to_o give_v leave_n by_o the_o sound_n of_o a_o trumpet_n to_o all_o the_o king_n of_o the_o world_n that_o they_o may_v go_v to_o dinner_n but_o the_o pope_n drive_v further_a in_o his_o grant_n that_o in_o time_n if_o power_n shall_v assist_v he_o he_o may_v force_v upon_o they_o a_o subjection_n to_o he_o as_o if_o real_o the_o prince_n do_v owe_v their_o power_n to_o he_o but_o the_o art_n of_o rome_n be_v too_o much_o know_v in_o england_n for_o the_o people_n to_o be_v further_o delude_v by_o they_o and_o therefore_o a_o national_a synod_n or_o a_o convocation_n of_o the_o arch-bishop_n bishop_n abbot_n and_o other_o clergy_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v celebrate_v at_o london_n by_o order_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o six_o in_o the_o six_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n be_v that_o of_o our_o lord_n 1552._o a_o summary_n of_o article_n be_v agree_v upon_o to_o remove_v dissension_n in_o religion_n and_o reform_v the_o church_n from_o corruption_n that_o creep_v into_o it_o so_o pious_a and_o moderate_a so_o well_o ground_v upon_o divine_a scripture_n and_o upon_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a apostolic_a church_n that_o romanist_n may_v more_o easy_o rail_v and_o rant_v at_o then_o discover_v any_o real_a error_n in_o they_o my_o adversary_n n._n n._n after_o high_o inveigh_v against_o these_o article_n and_o boast_v to_o discover_v heresy_n in_o they_o single_v out_o the_o 22._o article_n which_o run_v thus_o the_o roman_a
doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n indulgence_n veneration_n and_o adoration_n as_o well_o of_o image_n as_o of_o relic_n as_o also_o of_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n be_v absurd_a and_o vain_o invent_v nor_o be_v ground_v upon_o any_o authority_n of_o scripture_n but_o be_v rather_o repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n upon_o which_o article_n n._n n._n deliver_v this_o heavy_a censure_n that_o it_o be_v false_a profane_a and_o heretical_a but_o in_o the_o whole_a discourse_n of_o the_o second_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n i_o will_v demonstrate_v god_n willing_a that_o it_o be_v rather_o true_a religious_a and_o catholic_a as_o also_o i_o do_v intend_v by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n to_o vindicate_v the_o rest_n of_o those_o article_n in_o a_o separate_a treatise_n from_o the_o cavil_n of_o alexander_n white_n and_o other_o romanist_n whereby_o n._n n._n will_v find_v how_o much_o he_o be_v mistake_v in_o take_v the_o say_v alexander_n white_n be_v book_n against_o the_o thirty_o nine_o article_n for_o unanswerable_a as_o certain_o he_o be_v far_o mistake_v in_o say_v resolute_o though_o without_o have_v any_o ground_n for_o it_o that_o the_o aforesaid_a white_n have_v bestow_v more_o time_n and_o deliberation_n in_o quit_v those_o article_n than_o i_o have_v do_v in_o desert_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n seven_o year_n he_o say_v mr._n white_a spend_v in_o deliberate_v upon_o his_o resolution_n but_o certain_o i_o have_v spend_v many_o more_o year_n in_o deliberate_v upon_o i_o how_o many_o they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o demonstrate_v so_o it_o be_v not_o material_a to_o tell_v man_n may_v deliberate_v long_o and_o err_v at_o last_o in_o their_o resolution_n to_o my_o reason_n allege_v for_o that_o resolution_n which_o i_o take_v i_o appeal_v and_o do_v willing_o expose_v they_o to_o public_a view_n and_o examination_n that_o other_o as_o well_o as_o i_o may_v judge_n of_o the_o weight_n of_o they_o very_o foul_a and_o slanderous_a also_o have_v be_v the_o mistake_n of_o our_o adversary_n in_o say_v that_o the_o author_n of_o our_o 39_o article_n be_v only_o some_o few_o obscare_v man_n priest_n and_o friar_n run_v out_o of_o germany_n and_o that_o by_o they_o the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o england_n be_v govern_v in_o the_o reformation_n of_o their_o religion_n how_o false_a their_o report_n be_v may_v appear_v by_o the_o public_a record_n and_o history_n of_o the_o land_n and_o by_o several_a act_n of_o parliament_n pass_v with_o great_a deliberation_n of_o all_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n upon_o the_o settlement_n of_o the_o reformation_n and_o of_o those_o article_n as_o well_o in_o that_o great_a synod_n or_o convocation_n celebrate_v under_o edward_n the_o six_o in_o the_o year_n 1552._o above_o mention_v as_o also_o a_o other_o no_o less_o famous_a synod_n hold_v at_o london_n ten_o year_n after_o viz._n 1562._o wherein_o the_o say_v article_n be_v review_v examine_v and_o confirm_v i_o have_v see_v among_o selden_n book_n keep_v in_o the_o bodleian_n library_n of_o oxford_n a_o authentic_a copy_n of_o these_o article_n print_v at_o london_n in_o the_o year_n 1563_o and_o a_o scroul_n of_o parchment_n annex_v to_o it_o with_o the_o subscription_n by_o their_o proper_a hand_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o low_a house_n of_o convocation_n be_v all_o dean_n arch_a deacon_n and_o procurator_n of_o clergy_n which_o i_o find_v to_o be_v in_o number_n 104_o beside_o the_o arch-bishop_n and_o bishop_n sit_v in_o the_o upper_a house_n who_o name_n come_v not_o in_o my_o way_n to_o see_v but_o i_o be_o to_o suppose_v they_o be_v all_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o land_n as_o they_o use_v to_o meet_v in_o convocation_n and_o be_v this_o to_o shuffle_v up_o a_o reformation_n and_o make_v article_n in_o clande_v in_o manner_n without_o due_a examination_n as_o our_o adversary_n will_v make_v his_o reader_n believe_v chap._n xviii_o a_o view_n of_o n._n n._n his_o discourse_n upon_o transubstantiation_n and_o upon_o the_o affinity_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o the_o grecian_a though_o n._n n._n have_v declare_v his_o purpose_n in_o the_o beginning_n to_o deal_v with_o i_o not_o scholastical_o but_o historical_o yet_o it_o seem_v he_o will_v not_o part_v with_o i_o without_o dispute_v upon_o the_o point_n of_o transubstantiation_n he_o allege_v testimony_n and_o father_n and_o miracle_n in_o favour_n of_o it_o and_o pretend_v it_o to_o have_v be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o more_o ancient_a stand_v then_o the_o lateran_n council_n to_o all_o which_o i_o have_v give_v a_o full_a answer_n in_o what_o i_o have_v deliver_v by_o my_o discourse_n former_o print_v and_o in_o what_o will_v follow_v in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n from_o the_o 18._o chapter_n forward_o only_o i_o will_v reflect_v here_o upon_o two_o or_o three_o very_a gross_a mistake_n of_o n._n n._n in_o his_o present_a discourse_n with_o i_o upon_o the_o point_n the_o first_o be_v touch_v my_o belief_n of_o this_o great_a mystery_n he_o say_v resolute_o without_o give_v any_o ground_n for_o his_o say_n as_o indeed_o he_o can_v have_v none_o for_o it_o that_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v christ_n to_o be_v real_o present_a at_o all_o in_o this_o sacrament_n why_o then_o say_v he_o shall_v he_o dispute_v with_o we_o about_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n see_v he_o flat_o deny_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v real_o and_o substantial_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o good_a sir_n where_o have_v you_o see_v this_o flat_a denial_n of_o i_o certain_o not_o in_o my_o declaration_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o object_n of_o your_o quarrel_n not_o in_o the_o 39_o article_n not_o in_o any_o public_a catechism_n or_o system_v of_o doctrine_n general_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n nay_o the_o catechism_n approve_v by_o authority_n and_o commend_v to_o the_o use_n of_o all_o be_v insert_v into_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n deliver_v the_o doctrine_n quite_o opposite_a for_o to_o the_o question_n propose_v touch_v the_o inward_a or_o invisible_a part_n of_o this_o sacrament_n this_o answer_n be_v return_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v very_o and_o indeed_o take_v and_o receive_v by_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o be_v this_o to_o deny_v flat_o that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v real_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o you_o impute_v to_o we_o when_o a_o jesuit_n in_o germany_n broach_v the_o like_a calumny_n in_o a_o conserence_n have_v with_o some_o of_o the_o english_a nobility_n wait_v upon_o our_o king_n in_o that_o country_n in_o presence_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o of_o a_o prince_n elector_n in_o that_o empire_n both_o his_o majesty_n and_o the_o nobleman_n take_v offence_n at_o his_o speech_n as_o be_v a_o foul_a calumny_n and_o therefore_o desire_v the_o reverend_n and_o learned_a doctor_n cousin_n bishop_n of_o durham_n to_o vindicate_v the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o that_o a_o spersion_n as_o he_o do_v abundant_o in_o a_o very_a learned_a tract_n publish_v under_o the_o title_n of_o historia_fw-la transubstantiationis_fw-la papalis_fw-la wherein_o he_o prove_v by_o the_o article_n public_a catechism_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o several_a 1._o several_a vide_fw-la jacobum_fw-la armac_n in_o resp_n ad_fw-la malon_n mont._n norw_n in_o antidiatribis_n laud._n cantua_n in_o resp_n ad_fw-la fish_n hooker_n polit._n eccles_n l._n s_o joh._n roffens_n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la pap._n in_o prae_fw-la fat_a stat_fw-la prime_n elis._n c._n 1._o &_o 8._o elis._n c._n 12_o 13._o elis._n c._n 1._o grave_n and_o learned_a prelate_n that_o all_o true_a protestant_n especial_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v constant_o believe_v and_o profess_v that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n be_v real_o and_o substantial_o present_a in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n real_o and_o substantial_o receive_v in_o it_o by_o the_o faithful_a and_o according_o he_o allege_v the_o learned_a bilson_n b._n of_o wincl_n ester_n declare_v the_o belief_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n touch_v this_o point_n in_o the_o word_n follow_v eucharistiam_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la figuram_fw-la esse_fw-la corporis_fw-la domini_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la ipsam_fw-la veritatem_fw-la naturam_fw-la atque_fw-la sul_z stantiam_fw-la in_o se_fw-la comprehendere_fw-la '_o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o only_o a_o figure_n or_o representation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n but_o that_o it_o comprehend_v also_o the_o very_a truth_n and_o nature_n and_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n the_o very_a same_o doctrine_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o 28._o article_n of_o the_o 39_o above_o mention_v in_o these_o word_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v or_o take_v and_o eat_v in_o the_o
q._n 1._o bonaventure_n 1._o bonaventure_n scot._n 1._o sent._n d._n prima_fw-la q._n 1._o scotus_n 36.42_o scotus_n aquin._n 1._o p._n q._n 36.42_o aquinas_n and_o other_o do_v endeavour_n to_o excuse_v the_o grecian_n in_o their_o chief_a error_n touch_v the_o proceed_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n only_o from_o the_o father_n and_o not_o from_o the_o son_n say_v that_o therein_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n only_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o speak_v not_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o doctrine_n chap._n xix_o n._n n._n his_o book_n entitle_v the_o bleed_a iphigenia_n examine_v his_o abusive_a language_n bestow_v therein_o upon_o person_n of_o honour_n and_o his_o censure_n upon_o the_o king_n majesty_n reprehend_v though_o this_o book_n begin_v with_o i_o and_o in_o the_o run_a title_n style_v itself_o a_o preface_n to_o the_o other_o great_a book_n design_v against_o i_o yet_o i_o have_v so_o little_a a_o share_n of_o this_o preface_n direct_v to_o i_o as_o i_o hope_v the_o discreet_a reader_n will_v excuse_v i_o if_o i_o be_v not_o so_o large_a in_o discuss_v it_o as_o some_o may_v expect_v true_o the_o matter_n and_o style_n of_o it_o be_v of_o that_o nature_n as_o make_v i_o ambiguous_a for_o a_o time_n in_o resolve_v upon_o any_o reply_n to_o it_o but_o upon_o more_o consideration_n i_o conceive_v it_o my_o duty_n to_o make_v the_o reflection_n follow_v upon_o it_o after_o have_v bestow_v some_o few_o page_n in_o bemoan_v a_o suppose_a fall_n of_o i_o from_o the_o catholic_a faith_n he_o fall_v sudden_o to_o lament_v the_o suffering_n of_o the_o irish_a and_o to_o accuse_v the_o suppose_a author_n of_o it_o as_o to_o the_o first_o i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o give_v satisfaction_n in_o the_o whole_a discourse_n of_o this_o treatise_n if_o he_o have_v true_a charity_n for_o i_o he_o will_v be_v glad_a to_o find_v that_o i_o be_o not_o in_o that_o bad_a condition_n he_o suppose_v and_o if_o he_o will_v be_v ingenuous_a and_o have_v not_o resolve_v as_o it_o be_v usual_a with_o they_o to_o shut_v his_o eye_n against_o all_o evidence_n that_o may_v let_v he_o see_v his_o error_n or_o entertain_v a_o charitable_a thought_n of_o his_o christian_a neighbour_n he_o may_v see_v clear_o by_o what_o i_o have_v say_v hitherto_o that_o by_o embrace_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o have_v not_o forsake_v the_o true_a catholic_a faith_n and_o church_n that_o i_o be_o far_o from_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o heresy_n or_o associate_v of_o those_o heretic_n he_o mention_n now_o as_o to_o the_o second_o touch_v the_o misery_n of_o the_o irish_a i_o hearty_o condole_v with_o he_o therein_o but_o can_v approve_v of_o his_o manner_n of_o plead_v for_o they_o nor_o of_o some_o doctrine_n he_o let_v we_o fall_v by_o the_o way_n i_o think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o more_o christian_a duty_n and_o more_o become_v a_o good_a pastor_n to_o exhort_v people_n in_o affliction_n to_o a_o conformity_n with_o god_n holy_a will_n and_o to_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o their_o sin_n that_o draw_v his_o anger_n upon_o they_o with_o due_a repentance_n of_o they_o then_o to_o excuse_v their_o error_n and_o thereby_o to_o encourage_v they_o to_o provoke_v divine_a justice_n to_o further_a severity_n against_o they_o the_o former_a i_o have_v do_v on_o all_o occasion_n the_o second_o i_o see_v you_o do_v in_o the_o particular_n of_o your_o book_n which_o i_o be_o to_o examine_v now_o i_o will_v not_o debate_v with_o you_o touch_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n you_o handle_v who_o begin_v or_o be_v more_o faulty_a in_o those_o unhappy_a revolution_n i_o do_v not_o envy_v you_o the_o occasion_n you_o have_v of_o great_a knowledge_n in_o that_o part_n than_o i_o who_o depart_v the_o country_n in_o my_o young_a age_n two_o year_n before_o those_o tragedy_n begin_v and_o never_o return_v until_o some_o year_n after_o our_o sovereign_n happy_a restauration_n i_o leave_v to_o other_o better_a furnish_v with_o notice_n to_o examine_v what_o you_o say_v that_o way_n but_o i_o may_v judge_v of_o the_o style_n and_o doctrinal_a part_n of_o your_o book_n ground_v my_o judgement_n as_o i_o hope_v i_o shall_v do_v upon_o good_a reason_n and_o first_o as_o touch_v the_o style_n i_o be_o probable_o persuade_v that_o no_o sober_a or_o wise_a man_n even_o of_o the_o party_n you_o pretend_v to_o favour_n will_v approve_v of_o the_o harsh_a and_o contemtuous_a language_n where_o with_o you_o speak_v of_o person_n of_o great_a honour_n and_o quality_n especial_o of_o one_o of_o the_o great_a peer_n of_o the_o realm_n a_o earl_n and_o son_n to_o one_o of_o the_o great_a earl_n of_o this_o monarchy_n lord_n precedent_n of_o that_o fair_a and_o goodly_a province_n of_o munster_n so_o style_v by_o yourself_o not_o to_o mention_v his_o personal_a talent_n apt_a to_o make_v even_o one_o of_o low_a birth_n noble_a and_o to_o gain_v he_o respect_n all_o these_o title_n &_o honourable_a quality_n can_v not_o induce_v you_o to_o give_v he_o once_o any_o of_o those_o civility_n and_o mark_n of_o respect_n that_o be_v due_a to_o person_n of_o his_o degree_n and_o quality_n and_o what_o be_v yet_o more_o intolerable_a not_o content_v to_o abuse_v his_o person_n you_o extend_v your_o contemtuous_a language_n to_o his_o whole_a family_n link_v by_o manifold_a tie_n of_o consanguinity_n with_o the_o most_o illustrious_a family_n of_o england_n and_o ireland_n i_o know_v that_o one_o of_o the_o rule_n of_o your_o roman_a deve_fw-fr roman_a index_n expurg_n noviss_v edit_fw-la matrit_a 1667._o regul_n gener_fw-la 16._o advertent_fw-la 5._o todo_fw-la lo_o que_fw-fr tiene_fw-it sonido_fw-la ●o_o apariencia_fw-la de_fw-fr alabanza_fw-es se_fw-es les_fw-fr niegue_fw-fr a_o los_fw-es que_fw-fr estan_fw-mi fuera_fw-mi de_fw-fr la_fw-fr yglesia_fw-la specialment_fw-it todo_fw-es los_fw-es epiteto_n de_fw-fr bueno_fw-it virtuoso_fw-la y_fw-fr pio_fw-la nl●el_fw-la titulo_fw-la de_fw-fr doctor_n o_o maestro_n ni_fw-fr el_fw-es de_fw-es theologo_fw-la permittese_n there_fw-mi le_fw-fr titulo_fw-la de_fw-fr sennor_fw-es o_fw-mi don_n a_o quien_v es_fw-la sennor_fw-es temporal_a y_fw-fr el_fw-es de_fw-mi padre_n o_o suegro_n a_o quien_v lo_o es_fw-mi por_fw-mi cortezia_fw-la aunque_fw-la no_n se_fw-la le_fw-fr deve_fw-fr expurgatory_n be_v to_o blot_v out_o of_o all_o book_n any_o honorary_a title_n of_o wit_n or_o virtue_n give_v to_o heretic_n which_o be_v to_o say_v in_o their_o language_n to_o any_o christian_n that_o be_v not_o of_o their_o communion_n a_o rule_n indeed_o rude_a enough_o but_o i_o do_v not_o hear_v yet_o of_o any_o rule_n give_v for_o divest_v earl_n and_o lord_n of_o their_o ordinary_a title_n rather_o the_o say_a rule_n permit_v it_o of_o courtesy_n if_o it_o be_v not_o perhaps_o a_o branch_n of_o that_o grand_a power_n they_o give_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o depose_v king_n of_o which_o n._n n._n may_v pretend_v to_o partake_v so_o much_o as_o may_v enable_v he_o to_o degrade_v a_o earl_n certain_o this_o practice_n of_o speak_v with_o contemt_a to_o peer_n &_o precedent_n of_o province_n may_v be_v soon_o learn_v in_o the_o school_n of_o rome_n then_o in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o apostle_n when_o our_o dear_a saviour_n be_v bring_v before_o the_o precedent_n of_o judea_n pilate_n and_o most_o unjust_o sentence_v to_o death_n by_o he_o he_o utter_v no_o bitter_a or_o contemtuous_a word_n against_o he_o when_o the_o great_a apostle_n paul_n be_v before_o porcius_n festus_n governor_n of_o the_o same_o province_n and_o abuse_v by_o he_o call_v his_o excellent_a speech_n madness_n paul_n answer_v he_o in_o mild_a and_o respectful_a term_n 25_o term_n ac._n 2d_o 25_o i_o be_o not_o mad_a most_o noble_a festus_n but_o speak_v forth_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o soberness_n can_v not_o you_o likewise_o speak_v what_o you_o conceive_v to_o be_v truth_n with_o soberness_n without_o offend_a governor_n and_o great_a man_n by_o contemtuous_a expression_n do_v your_o call_n give_v you_o great_a right_o to_o reprehend_v prince_n and_o governor_n then_o that_o of_o christ_n and_o st._n paul_n do_v to_o they_o thus_o matter_n do_v go_v in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o apostle_n but_o the_o roman_a school_n teach_v different_a lesson_n a_o very_a famous_a one_o n._n n._n profess_v to_o have_v learn_v there_o which_o be_v that_o he_o honour_v the_o pope_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o ●e_n cal●s_v luminare_fw-la majus_n the_o great_a light_n more_o than_o the_o king_n who_o he_o style_v luminare_fw-la minus_fw-la the_o mean_a light_n this_o he_o say_v to_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o his_o catholic_n which_o be_v teach_v to_o they_o by_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v as_o much_o above_o emperor_n and_o king_n on_o earth_n as_o the_o sun_n be_v above_o the_o moon_n in_o the_o heaven_n of_o which_o
go_v through_o stream_n of_o blood_n to_o extend_v the_o pope_n power_n and_o their_o own_o earthly_a advantage_n with_o it_o under_o the_o colour_n of_o catholic_a faith_n but_o by_o what_o be_v say_v hitherto_o and_o will_v be_v further_o confirm_v in_o the_o discourse_n follow_v it_o will_v easy_o appear_v to_o the_o unbiased_a reader_n that_o it_o be_v no_o want_n of_o true_a catholic_a faith_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n nor_o any_o true_a zeal_n for_o it_o in_o the_o roman_a court_n make_v they_o disturb_v thus_o the_o peace_n of_o these_o kingdom_n obstinate_o endeavour_v the_o ruin_n of_o they_o and_o if_o the_o irish_a be_v not_o quite_o give_v over_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o delusion_n they_o will_v look_v upon_o all_o bloody_a suggestion_n of_o this_o kind_n as_o proceed_v from_o he_o that_o be_v the_o first_o author_n of_o rebellion_n in_o heaven_n and_o upon_o earth_n and_o a_o murderer_n from_o the_o beginning_n 8.44_o beginning_n joh._n 8.44_o and_o they_o will_v according_o reject_v and_o detest_v they_o not_o only_o for_o 13.5_o for_o rom._n 13.5_o conscience_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o principal_a motive_n but_o also_o for_o wrath_n remember_v the_o sad_a effect_n of_o god_n wrath_n against_o they_o in_o each_o one_o of_o their_o several_a rebellion_n whether_o for_o religion_n or_o for_o any_o other_o cause_n chap._n xxi_o a_o conclusion_n of_o my_o discourse_n with_o n._n n._n with_o a_o friendly_a admonition_n to_o he_o sir_n if_o the_o severe_a decree_n of_o your_o church_n prohibit_v to_o the_o common_a sort_n the_o read_n of_o controversial_a writing_n do_v not_o comprehend_v you_o also_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v bestow_v a_o attentive_a read_n upon_o this_o book_n for_o our_o old_a friendship_n sake_n but_o more_o for_o the_o love_n of_o truth_n and_o if_o you_o have_v not_o make_v a_o firm_a inflexible_a resolution_n of_o not_o yield_v to_o any_o evidence_n be_v they_o never_o so_o clear_a that_o may_v justify_v the_o way_n i_o take_v or_o discover_v the_o error_n of_o that_o which_o you_o be_v in_o i_o may_v expect_v that_o by_o read_v this_o treatise_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o i_o be_o not_o in_o that_o deplorable_a condition_n by_o my_o change_n which_o you_o seem_v to_o imagine_v that_o by_o it_o i_o have_v not_o forsake_v the_o whole_a house_n of_o god_n as_o you_o say_v but_o remove_v to_o the_o sound_a and_o safe_a part_n of_o it_o that_o i_o have_v not_o desert_v the_o society_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o be_o become_v a_o associate_n of_o heretic_n have_v come_v to_o a_o church_n where_o i_o find_v as_o much_o veneration_n and_o study_n of_o those_o father_n and_o as_o much_o aversion_n to_o the_o heresy_n you_o mention_v as_o ever_o i_o see_v among_o you_o and_o if_o you_o read_v further_o the_o second_o part_n now_o to_o follow_v of_o this_o same_o book_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o i_o do_v not_o forsake_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n without_o grave_n and_o urgent_a reason_n force_v i_o to_o it_o those_o reason_n i_o have_v lay_v open_a in_o my_o first_o sermon_n preach_v at_o dublin_n and_o print_v great_a labour_n and_o study_n have_v be_v employ_v in_o answer_v they_o yet_o if_o you_o bring_v indifference_n with_o you_o to_o read_v my_o reply_n to_o that_o answer_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o my_o reason_n allege_v do_v still_o remain_v in_o their_o force_n and_o that_o the_o error_n i_o refute_v be_v further_o discover_v and_o clear_v by_o occasion_n of_o the_o defence_n make_v of_o they_o but_o if_o you_o resolve_v either_o not_o to_o read_v my_o book_n or_o bring_v to_o the_o read_n of_o it_o a_o firm_a purpose_n of_o not_o yield_v to_o any_o reason_n that_o may_v oppose_v those_o sentiment_n you_o be_v prepossess_v with_o than_o my_o labour_n be_v lose_v as_o to_o you_o but_o i_o hope_v not_o so_o as_o to_o other_o more_o rational_o dispose_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v a_o grain_n of_o seed_n and_o bring_v forth_o its_o fruit_n in_o time_n different_o according_a to_o the_o different_a disposition_n of_o the_o subject_n it_o meet_v with_o but_o especial_o i_o hope_v that_o my_o endeavour_n will_v avail_v i_o with_o god_n in_o who_o presence_n i_o write_v with_o sincerity_n what_o i_o understand_v to_o be_v conformable_a to_o his_o holy_a word_n &_o will_n and_o with_o a_o constant_a desire_n in_o all_o these_o scrutiny_n to_o satisfy_v my_o own_o conscience_n principal_o of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o way_n i_o take_v and_o to_o help_v other_o also_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o same_o truth_n when_o st._n paul_n be_v bring_v before_o king_n agrippa_n and_o the_o governor_n of_o judaea_n porcius_n festus_n to_o give_v account_n of_o himself_o and_o his_o religion_n he_o give_v it_o so_o full_a that_o agrippa_n say_v almost_o thou_o persuade_v i_o to_o be_v a_o christian_n to_o which_o the_o great_a apostle_n reply_v i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o not_o only_o thou_o but_o all_o that_o hear_v i_o be_v such_o as_o i_o be_o except_o these_o bond_n act._n xxvi_o 29._o if_o you_o read_v with_o indifferency_n and_o attention_n the_o account_n i_o give_v of_o my_o resolution_n and_o of_o the_o religion_n i_o embrace_v i_o be_o persuade_v whatsoever_o your_o outward_a expression_n may_v be_v it_o will_v work_v upon_o your_o mind_n a_o motion_n like_o that_o of_o agrippa_n and_o if_o you_o ask_v whether_o i_o will_v have_v you_o do_v what_o i_o do_v in_o this_o point_n i_o say_v free_o as_o st._n paul_n do_v say_v to_o agrippa_n that_o i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o both_o you_o and_o your_o brethren_n do_v take_v the_o like_a resolution_n but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v with_o less_o difficulty_n and_o reluctancy_n than_o i_o have_v and_o with_o less_o cross_n and_o danger_n for_o do_v it_o you_o tell_v i_o i_o be_o old_a and_o i_o have_v many_o reason_n to_o believe_v it_o by_o my_o long_a continue_a infirmity_n of_o body_n but_o i_o remember_v the_o time_n when_o you_o call_v i_o a_o young_a man_n and_o yourself_o a_o old_a man_n then_o i_o be_v now_o old_a you_o must_v be_v very_o old_a and_o therefore_o both_o of_o we_o ought_v to_o measure_v our_o resolution_n and_o doctrine_n with_o the_o rule_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o interest_n of_o eternity_n rather_o than_o with_o those_o of_o earthly_a policy_n and_o temporal_a advantage_n in_o which_o we_o can_v have_v but_o a_o little_a share_n and_o a_o short_a enjoyment_n how_o then_o come_v you_o to_o speak_v to_o i_o of_o the_o loss_n of_o friend_n and_o of_o infamy_n get_v by_o my_o change_n if_o it_o have_v be_v for_o the_o best_a in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o i_o be_o certain_o persuade_v it_o be_v i_o have_v get_v by_o it_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o give_v joy_n to_o his_o angel_n and_o this_o applause_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o that_o of_o the_o earthly_a friend_n you_o speak_v of_o i_o be_o much_o afraid_a that_o the_o fear_n of_o temporal_a shame_n and_o damage_n be_v too_o strong_a with_o you_o and_o many_o other_o of_o your_o party_n to_o keep_v you_o from_o follow_a truth_n and_o from_o search_v after_o it_o with_o due_a care_n i_o find_v it_o to_o be_v so_o in_o myself_o i_o confess_v my_o weakness_n herein_o with_o sorrow_n humble_o crave_v pardon_n of_o god_n for_o it_o the_o fear_n of_o shame_n and_o loss_n among_o man_n more_o than_o any_o superior_a consideration_n make_v i_o struggle_v along_o time_n against_o the_o inward_a calling_n of_o god_n from_o my_o former_a error_n and_o to_o use_v all_o mean_n possible_a to_o silence_v the_o cry_n of_o conscience_n but_o the_o more_o i_o labour_v and_o study_v to_o allay_v they_o the_o more_o force_n they_o get_v and_o when_o i_o see_v clear_o by_o a_o strict_a inquiry_n that_o they_o be_v indeed_o from_o god_n i_o yield_v to_o they_o notwithstanding_o my_o natural_a reluctancy_n and_o the_o heap_n of_o shame_n cross_n and_o danger_n which_o i_o see_v in_o the_o way_n look_v upon_o jesus_n the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n who_o for_o the_o joy_n that_o be_v set_v before_o he_o endure_v the_o cross_n despise_v the_o shame_n heb._n xii_o 2._o in_o the_o life_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n we_o shall_v find_v lesson_n of_o this_o kind_n but_o never_o in_o the_o dictate_v of_o nature_n how_o will_v you_o imagine_v it_o shall_v be_v a_o natural_a inclination_n that_o a_o man_n in_o his_o decline_a age_n shall_v change_v a_o state_n of_o quiet_a honour_n and_o plenty_n of_o all_o thing_n necessary_a for_o humane_a life_n into_o another_o of_o trouble_n cross_n affront_n no_o certainty_n of_o a_o competent_a livelihood_n and_o a_o certain_a and_o continual_a danger_n of_o lose_v his_o life_n this_o
be_v my_o condition_n at_o my_o change_n of_o religion_n and_o i_o may_v better_o declare_v it_o to_o you_o then_o to_o many_o other_o you_o can_v remember_v in_o what_o degree_n of_o honour_n applause_n and_o commodity_n i_o be_v where_o you_o know_v i_o plentiful_o assist_v with_o all_o thing_n necessary_a without_o any_o care_n or_o trouble_v in_o procure_v they_o of_o temporal_a blessing_n i_o can_v desire_v no_o more_o neither_o will_v i_o at_o any_o time_n though_o i_o have_v a_o choice_n of_o fortune_n give_v to_o i_o to_o this_o condition_n i_o may_v at_o that_o time_n have_v return_v with_o some_o special_a assurance_n of_o good_a reception_n when_o i_o come_v over_o to_o the_o protestant_a church_n without_o any_o bargain_n make_v or_o promise_v have_v of_o a_o livelihood_n rely_v sole_o upon_o divine_a providence_n that_o be_v never_o want_v to_o such_o as_o true_o confide_v in_o it_o and_o with_o certain_a knowledge_n that_o i_o be_v to_o suffer_v cross_n calumny_n curse_n affront_n false_a testimony_n and_o conspiracy_n against_o my_o life_n and_o credit_n of_o all_o which_o i_o find_v a_o plentiful_a store_n as_o i_o expect_v and_o you_o tell_v i_o that_o my_o change_n be_v a_o work_n of_o nature_n not_o of_o grace_n one_o of_o your_o very_a ill_a ground_a assertion_n i_o pray_v consult_v the_o case_n with_o your_o own_o natural_a inclination_n and_o be_v ingenuous_a do_v but_o imagine_v yourself_o a_o little_a while_n make_v such_o a_o change_n as_o i_o do_v and_o undergo_n for_o it_o the_o like_a danger_n and_o damage_n as_o probable_o you_o shall_v if_o the_o case_n do_v possible_o happen_v certain_o i_o be_o that_o your_o nature_n will_v represent_v to_o you_o such_o horror_n in_o the_o case_n that_o if_o all_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n do_v come_v down_o furnish_v with_o the_o most_o divine_a reason_n to_o persuade_v you_o to_o it_o you_o will_v take_v they_o all_o for_o so_o many_o devil_n and_o their_o reason_n for_o absolute_a madness_n thus_o much_o i_o can_v tell_v you_o of_o your_o own_o nature_n but_o what_o grace_n may_v work_v upon_o you_o god_n the_o author_n of_o it_o only_o can_v tell_v and_o whilst_o you_o do_v not_o feel_v this_o motion_n upon_o you_o so_o strong_a as_o to_o forsake_v error_n though_o know_v upon_o the_o hard_a term_n now_o mention_v i_o pray_v spare_v your_o ill_a ground_a severe_a censure_n against_o other_o that_o god_n move_v to_o undergo_v those_o difficulty_n for_o the_o truth_n sake_n moderate_a your_o inconsiderate_a zeal_n and_o if_o you_o will_v govern_v it_o well_o read_v unpassionate_o what_o be_v write_v here_o and_o be_v to_o follow_v in_o this_o book_n whereby_o you_o shall_v perceive_v how_o far_o mistake_v you_o be_v in_o many_o thing_n about_o yourself_o and_o other_o and_o whereas_o you_o acknowledge_v yourself_o to_o be_v near_o the_o end_n of_o this_o mortal_a life_n as_o a_o man_n of_o your_o age_n must_v needs_o be_v leave_v to_o your_o friend_n and_o brethren_n that_o legacy_n which_o your_o good_a saviour_n jesus_n leave_v and_o with_o repeat_v earnestness_n commend_v to_o his_o disciple_n say_v 14.27_o say_v joh._n 14.27_o peace_n i_o leave_v with_o you_o my_o peace_n i_o give_v unto_o you_o endeavour_n first_o to_o make_v peace_n with_o god_n by_o due_a acknowledgement_n and_o repentance_n of_o your_o sin_n and_o error_n and_o then_o endeavour_v to_o sow_v peace_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o your_o hearer_n make_v it_o your_o business_n to_o quench_v rather_o than_o to_o blow_v up_o the_o fire_n of_o dissension_n and_o animosity_n have_v a_o real_a pity_n for_o your_o poor_a country_n bleed_v and_o groan_v under_o wound_n receive_v in_o barbarous_a war_n and_o broil_n stir_v up_o by_o blind_a fiery_a zelots_n pour_v into_o those_o wound_n the_o sweet_a oil_n of_o peace_n breed_v in_o the_o people_n by_o all_o the_o mean_v you_o may_v charity_n with_o their_o neighbour_n and_o loialty_n to_o their_o sovereign_n thus_o will_v they_o recover_v those_o blessing_n which_o the_o bitter_a spirit_n of_o hatred_n envy_n revenge_n and_o ambition_n have_v rob_v they_o off_o in_o former_a time_n and_o thus_o will_v you_o and_o other_o inspire_v of_o peace_n and_o charity_n compass_n that_o great_a blessing_n reserve_v for_o peace_n maker_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o child_n of_o god_n 5.9_o god_n math._n 5.9_o and_o now_o the_o god_n of_o peace_n be_v with_o you_o 15.33_o you_o rom._n 15.33_o whilst_o i_o turn_v my_o face_n to_o a_o scold_n and_o after_o to_o a_o sophister_n to_o vindicate_v truth_n from_o the_o assault_n of_o both_o chap._n xxii_o a_o check_n to_o i._o e._n his_o scandalous_a libel_n and_o a_o vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o his_o false_a and_o slanderous_a report_n of_o it_o all_z that_o see_v i._o e._n his_o scold_a libel_n agree_v in_o say_v it_o deserve_v no_o answer_n but_o none_o will_v deny_v it_o deserve_v a_o check_n and_o what_o check_n can_v be_v so_o sensible_a to_o the_o author_n if_o he_o have_v any_o sense_n in_o he_o as_o to_o lay_v before_o his_o eye_n a_o piece_n of_o his_o own_o work_n st._n jerom_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o book_n against_o jovinian_a to_o render_v the_o man_n ridiculous_a produce_v a_o parcel_n of_o his_o franne_n phrase_n and_o cry_v at_o they_o with_o his_o wont_a sharp_a eloquence_n initio_fw-la eloquence_n s._n jer._n l._n 1._o adversus_fw-la joviniamum_fw-la initio_fw-la rogo_fw-la quae_fw-la surt_z haec_fw-la portenta_fw-la verborum_fw-la quod_fw-la descripti●nis_fw-la dedecus_fw-la nun_n vel_fw-la per_fw-la febrem_fw-la somniare_fw-la eum_fw-la pute_fw-la vel_fw-la arreptum_fw-la morbo_fw-la phrenetico_fw-la hippocratis_fw-la vinculis_fw-la alligandum_fw-la tell_v i_o i_o pray_v you_o what_o monstrous_a word_n be_v those_o what_o shameful_a contexture_n of_o speech_n will_v not_o you_o think_v the_o man_n to_o be_v dream_v in_o a_o fever_n or_o rave_v in_o a_o frenzy_n fit_a to_o be_v put_v into_o the_o shackle_n of_o hypocrates_n the_o word_n of_o jovinian_a relate_v by_o st._n jerom_n be_v indeed_o ridiculous_a and_o absurd_a but_o if_o we_o compare_v they_o with_o those_o of_o our_o libeler_n i._n e._n we_o shall_v find_v this_o latter_a to_o have_v outdon_n jovinian_a by_o very_o great_a odds_o he_o say_v he_o will_v vindicate_v the_o roman_a church_n from_o the_o most_o mysterious_a and_o foul_a aspersion_n and_o rail_n of_o the_o ignorant_a overween_n and_o overbiass_v sciolist_n sectary_n not_o to_o mention_v some_o word_n thereabouts_o worse_o than_o ridiculous_a he_o will_v seasonable_o control_v and_o give_v a_o check_n to_o the_o disingenuity_n spiteful_a malice_n veneme_v and_o brawny-faced_a impudence_n of_o that_o renown_a wight_n vile_a apostate_n and_o profess_a enemy_n to_o christ_n andrew_n sall_n to_o dash_v back_o all_o his_o shameless_a affront_n and_o thunder_a bawl_a strain_n of_o profound_a and_o wonderful_a non_fw-la sense_n etc._n etc._n he_o will_v not_o have_v man_n to_o trust_v the_o conduct_n of_o such_o mountebank_n and_o runagate_n vagrant_a apostate_n if_o st._n jerome_n do_v see_v this_o rich_a piece_n of_o rhetoric_n will_v he_o not_o cry_v out_o rogo_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la haec_fw-la portenta_fw-la verborum_fw-la quod_fw-la descriptionis_fw-la dedecus_fw-la certain_o when_o the_o man_n speak_v of_o shallow_a mountebank_n impostor_n and_o runagate_n vagrant_a apostate_n that_o can_v bear_v no_o fruit_n whilst_o unite_v to_o the_o stock_n he_o have_v his_o imagination_n place_v upon_o some_o of_o those_o his_o run_a friar_n that_o in_o their_o travel_n of_o a_o year_n or_o two_o will_v view_v london_n brussels_n prague_n cracovia_n stockolme_n paris_n maarid_n rome_n florence_n jerusalem_n grand_a cair_n and_o more_o court_n or_o place_n of_o fame_n if_o to_o be_v find_v and_o will_v return_v as_o wise_a as_o they_o go_v but_o common_o worse_a load_v with_o fable_n and_o furnish_v with_o the_o most_o corrupt_a custom_n of_o all_o the_o place_n they_o run_v over_o to_o man_n of_o this_o kind_n his_o description_n of_o runagate_n vagrant_a shallow_a mountebank_n etc._n etc._n may_v seem_v more_o suitable_a then_o to_o one_o who_o in_o 26_o year_n for_o his_o residency_n in_o spain_n never_o go_v out_o of_o the_o province_n of_o castille_n where_o he_o enter_v first_o nor_o take_v so_o much_o liberty_n as_o to_o view_v madrid_n or_o the_o famous_a escurial_n not_o far_o from_o he_o when_o other_o make_v long_o voyage_n to_o see_v they_o have_v spend_v the_o aforesaid_a twenty_o six_o year_n thus_o as_o be_v know_v to_o many_o two_o year_n retire_v to_o exercise_n of_o devotion_n seven_o year_n in_o learning_n philosophy_n and_o divinity_n and_o the_o 17_o remnant_n in_o public_a teach_n without_o intermission_n first_o humanity_n poetry_n oratory_n history_n cosmography_n in_o the_o college_n of_o numacia_n and_o villagarcia_n then_o philosophy_n logic_n physic_n metaphysic_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o
the_o erroneous_a principle_n they_o profess_v have_v suck_v they_o in_o their_o tender_a year_n as_o divine_a verity_n proceed_v from_o a_o live_v repute_v infallible_a authority_n they_o never_o hear_v they_o control_v or_o examine_v no_o book_n write_v against_o they_o be_v permit_v to_o come_v in_o their_o sight_n they_o be_v teach_v it_o be_v a_o sin_n to_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o tenet_n ergo_fw-la those_o man_n want_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o instruction_n and_o consequent_o may_v have_v the_o refuge_n of_o invincible_a ignorance_n all_o this_o i_o know_v to_o be_v so_o by_o my_o own_o experience_n have_v live_v in_o spain_n many_o year_n and_o have_v have_v for_o several_a of_o they_o licence_n from_o the_o inquisitor_n general_a to_o read_v all_o manner_n of_o prohibit_v book_n the_o prohibition_n be_v so_o severe_a that_o i_o can_v never_o find_v one_o book_n of_o a_o protestant_n to_o read_v and_o even_o in_o ireland_n where_o more_o liberty_n may_v be_v expect_v there_o be_v a_o severe_a prohibition_n of_o read_v book_n oppose_v the_o romish_a tenet_n which_o appear_v particular_o touch_v that_o small_a book_n i_o publish_v for_o offer_v it_o to_o be_v read_v by_o a_o romish_a priest_n vicar_n general_n of_o a_o famous_a church_n in_o that_o kingdom_n that_o he_o may_v see_v i_o do_v not_o without_o consideration_n and_o reason_n what_o i_o do_v he_o desire_v to_o be_v excuse_v from_o read_v it_o fear_v it_o will_v raise_v in_o he_o doubt_n which_o he_o can_v not_o solve_v and_o this_o injunction_n be_v so_o severe_a upon_o person_n of_o that_o degree_n must_v be_v more_o indispensable_a upon_o the_o vulgar_a mean_n of_o instruction_n for_o know_v their_o error_n be_v thus_o careful_o prohibit_v to_o they_o of_o the_o romish_a communion_n in_o all_o time_n and_o place_n we_o may_v favourable_o conceive_v that_o many_o of_o they_o both_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a may_v have_v the_o excuse_n of_o invincible_a ignorance_n the_o sin_n lie_v upon_o the_o statist_n that_o for_o temporal_a end_n do_v debar_v they_o from_o the_o mean_n of_o healthful_a knowledge_n one_o touch_n more_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o learned_a very_o many_o of_o they_o have_v bestow_v the_o flower_n of_o their_o age_n in_o study_n of_o humanity_n philosophy_n and_o divinity_n speculative_a be_v take_v up_o and_o often_o keep_v all_o their_o life_n time_n teach_v those_o faculty_n without_o ever_o reflect_v upon_o or_o have_v mean_n to_o know_v the_o error_n of_o their_o church_n in_o the_o point_v controvert_v they_o take_v they_o upon_o the_o credit_n of_o their_o instructor_n for_o infallible_a verity_n be_v continual_o beat_v into_o their_o ear_n with_o horror_n and_o execration_n against_o the_o opposite_a doctrine_n and_o how_o great_a the_o power_n of_o education_n and_o prejudice_n be_v let_v the_o dominican_n and_o jesuit_n testify_v how_o fierce_a and_o eager_o do_v each_o one_o act_n and_o opine_n for_o the_o school_n he_o be_v educate_v in_o and_o against_o the_o opposite_a by_o this_o it_o appear_v how_o vain_a the_o triumph_n of_o i._n s._n be_v as_o if_o in_o my_o opinion_n all_o learned_a man_n die_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v damn_v to_o hell_n we_o have_v see_v that_o impious_a sentence_n to_o be_v a_o product_n of_o his_o fancy_n no_o consequence_n of_o any_o doctrine_n of_o i_o more_o rash_a and_o wicked_a be_v his_o attemt_a in_o cast_v the_o like_a sentence_n of_o damnation_n upon_o those_o glorious_a saint_n and_o great_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n st._n augustin_n st._n jerome_n st_o chrysostom_n what_o have_v they_o to_o do_v with_o his_o error_n to_o be_v damn_v for_o they_o strong_a opposer_n no_o patron_n of_o they_o be_v they_o as_o partly_o i_o have_v already_o and_o after_o will_v more_o full_o declare_v it_o appear_v likewise_o by_o this_o discourse_n how_o ridiculous_a his_o charge_n upon_o i_o be_v of_o contradiction_n and_o speak_v against_o my_o conscience_n in_o calling_n thomas_n aquinas_n a_o saint_n i_o have_v declare_v how_o that_o do_v consist_v with_o and_o contradict_v not_o what_o i_o have_v deliver_v touch_v the_o unsecurity_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o pretend_v to_o render_v i_o guilty_a in_o the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o english_a inquisition_n for_o calling_n aquinas_n a_o saint_n but_o the_o inquisition_n of_o england_n be_v not_o so_o rude_a as_o that_o of_o rome_n in_o deny_v common_a civility_n to_o man_n and_o the_o honorary_a title_n custom_n do_v allow_v they_o he_o may_v as_o well_o accuse_v the_o compiler_n of_o the_o london_n gazette_n for_o give_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o title_n of_o holiness_n and_o will_v have_v as_o much_o thanks_o for_o it_o as_o for_o his_o present_a impeachment_n of_o i_o for_o calling_n aquinas_n a_o saint_n we_o do_v not_o take_v it_o for_o a_o certain_a proof_n of_o holiness_n to_o be_v canonize_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n many_o of_o their_o own_o more_o learned_a writer_n deny_v it_o to_o be_v unerreable_a therein_o it_o be_v not_o merit_v only_o get_v that_o honour_n there_o and_o though_o we_o know_v all_o this_o to_o be_v so_o we_o do_v not_o grudge_n to_o call_v those_o saint_n we_o find_v by_o custom_n to_o be_v call_v so_o and_o by_o all_o that_o be_v say_v hitherto_o we_o may_v see_v and_o wonder_v how_o rare_a the_o boldness_n of_o this_o man_n be_v to_o term_v it_o blasphemy_n in_o i_o to_o relate_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o all_o learned_a protestant_n or_o to_o consent_v to_o it_o and_o to_o propose_v to_o have_v we_o all_o burn_v for_o it_o by_o sentence_n of_o our_o own_o chief_a governor_n to_o pretend_v for_o this_o wicked_a attemt_fw-mi the_o authority_n of_o our_o sovereign_a king_n james_n of_o glorious_a memory_n who_o decree_n and_o sentiment_n herein_o i_o do_v most_o willing_o obey_v and_o consent_n unto_o to_o impose_v upon_o i_o a_o opinion_n i_o never_o utter_v by_o word_n or_o write_v nor_o ever_o harbour_v in_o my_o thought_n that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o her_o error_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o salvation_n to_o clip_v my_o word_n and_o force_v they_o against_o my_o will_n and_o well_o declare_v meaning_n to_o his_o malicious_a purpose_n and_o notwithstanding_o these_o enormous_a excess_n and_o absurdity_n of_o his_o speech_n his_o presumption_n be_v so_o blind_a that_o he_o conclude_v his_o dedicatory_a epistle_n say_v that_o though_o his_o treatise_n contain_v nothing_o else_o but_o this_o check_n he_o give_v to_o i_o it_o must_v be_v grateful_a to_o his_o excellency_n if_o this_o address_n be_v make_v to_o a_o weak_a or_o dull_a person_n it_o be_v yet_o criminal_a enough_o but_o present_v to_o so_o deep_a a_o judgement_n and_o well_o know_v wisdom_n as_o that_o of_o my_o lord_n lieutenant_n pardon_v i_o sacred_a law_n of_o modesty_n if_o i_o say_v its_o a_o very_a insolent_a boldness_n but_o now_o to_o our_o chief_a case_n in_o debate_n chap._n iii_o mr._n s._n his_o cold_a defence_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o his_o church_n examine_v both_o in_o my_o declaration_n and_o in_o my_o print_a sermon_n or_o discourse_n against_o the_o error_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n i_o signify_v that_o the_o only_a anchor_n leave_v to_o keep_v i_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o it_o after_o a_o strong_a apprehension_n of_o its_o erroneous_a tenet_n be_v the_o opinion_n of_o infallibility_n grant_v to_o that_o church_n and_o the_o head_n of_o it_o but_o that_o anchor_n be_v cut_v off_o and_o a_o clear_a discovery_n make_v of_o the_o fallacy_n of_o their_o pretend_a infallibility_n i_o set_v open_a my_o eye_n and_o heart_n to_o receive_v the_o light_n which_o god_n send_v i_o in_o his_o holy_a writ_n to_o discover_v their_o pernicious_a error_n and_o declare_v for_o his_o truth_n against_o they_o my_o adversary_n preceive_v this_o to_o be_v the_o hinge_n all_o the_o fabric_n go_v on_o and_o that_o if_o i_o be_v persuade_v to_o that_o infallibility_n i_o will_v blind_v my_o eye_n and_o follow_v without_o any_o further_a dispute_n the_o conduct_n of_o such_o a_o guide_n go_v about_o to_o set_v up_o the_o say_a infallibility_n with_o all_o his_o power_n and_o so_o entitle_v his_o book_n the_o unerring_a unerreable_a church_n but_o his_o way_n to_o compass_v his_o design_n be_v very_o odd_a which_o be_v yield_v to_o my_o first_o and_o main_z attack_z upon_o it_o that_o be_v the_o uncertainty_n of_o such_o a_o infallibility_n to_o assist_v they_o which_o i_o provee_v by_o the_o disconformity_n of_o their_o author_n in_o assert_v it_o and_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o ground_n they_o produce_v for_o it_o but_o mr._n i._n s._n in_o the_o page_n 167._o give_v i_o leave_v to_o believe_v what_o i_o please_v therein_o it_o be_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n
meaning_n of_o it_o he_o muster_v up_o a_o store_n of_o argument_n object_v by_o pagan_n arian_n and_o sabellian_o against_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o will_v have_v we_o leave_v the_o point_n present_a for_o answer_v they_o let_v he_o go_v to_o the_o father_n that_o propose_v the_o argument_n they_o will_v deliver_v the_o anwier_n the_o council_n true_o ecumenical_a of_o the_o prmitive_a church_n and_o universal_a tradition_n do_v secure_v we_o of_o the_o right_a meaning_n of_o scripture_n touch_v those_o point_n where_o come_v here_o a_o need_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o faction_n to_o ascertain_v we_o he_o find_v a_o special_a mystery_n in_o the_o point_n of_o purgatory_n that_o either_o we_o for_o diminish_v or_o they_o for_o add_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v in_o a_o damnable_a error_n deserve_v to_o be_v blot_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n apoc._n xx_o 9_o the_o danger_n be_v clear_o on_o their_o side_n no_o mention_n of_o purgatory_n be_v in_o he_o write_v word_n of_o god_n as_o shall_v after_o appear_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n he_o be_v very_o prolix_a in_o tell_v we_o the_o church_n be_v a_o body_n and_o must_v have_v according_o a_o head_n and_o member_n subject_n to_o it_o we_o allow_v all_o provide_v christ_n be_v the_o head_n and_o all_o other_o both_o pastor_n and_o flock_n member_n subject_a to_o he_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n each_o one_o of_o they_o preach_v christ_n none_o himself_o for_o head_n there_o be_v no_o memory_n of_o any_o pretence_n in_o st._n peter_n over_o st._n andrew_n in_o achaia_n or_o over_o st._n thomas_n in_o the_o indies_n or_o over_o any_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o respective_a province_n no_o dependence_n of_o they_o upon_o he_o what_o he_o add_v of_o obedience_n due_a from_o the_o flock_n to_o the_o pastor_n be_v right_a speak_v of_o each_o flock_n in_o regard_n of_o their_o ordinary_a lawful_a pastor_n right_o also_o that_o in_o difficulty_n emergent_a of_o great_a moment_n a_o national_a synod_n shall_v be_v congregat_v as_o that_o he_o mention_n in_o the_o unite_a province_n in_o dordrecht_n right_o likewise_o what_o the_o synod_n of_o delpht_n resolve_v that_o though_o the_o former_a synod_n be_v fallible_a there_o be_v no_o obligation_n of_o conscience_n in_o obey_v the_o decree_n of_o it_o as_o there_o be_v in_o all_o subject_n to_o obey_v the_o order_n of_o a_o lawful_a superior_n receive_v for_o such_o and_o the_o arminian_o have_v submit_v to_o that_o synod_n and_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v lawful_o congregat_v may_v well_o be_v declare_v oblige_v to_o submit_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o it_o so_o far_o as_o not_o to_o disturb_v the_o public_a peace_n by_o illegal_a opposition_n but_o all_o this_o come_v very_o short_a of_o mr._n s._n his_o purpose_n since_o the_o reform_a church_n never_o submit_v to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n nor_o do_v acknowledge_v it_o for_o a_o lawful_a free_a ecumenical_a council_n and_o how_o can_v they_o think_v it_o to_o be_v such_o when_o the_o party_n accuse_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o court_n be_v to_o be_v the_o judge_n and_o supreme_a arbiter_n of_o the_o cause_n his_o resistance_n to_o a_o true_a lawful_a free_a council_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o combustion_n and_o confusion_n we_o have_v in_o christendom_n he_o take_v for_o a_o advantage_n against_o scripture_n that_o i_o say_v the_o reading_z of_o it_o make_v i_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o those_o article_n the_o roman_a church_n press_v upon_o my_o belief_n as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o able_a to_o ascertain_v i_o but_o i_o thank_v god_n and_o the_o light_n of_o his_o holy_a word_n which_o make_v i_o doubt_v of_o what_o your_o party_n will_v have_v i_o swallow_v without_o doubt_n or_o examen_fw-la and_o from_o the_o doubt_n bring_v i_o to_o a_o certainty_n of_o your_o corruption_n and_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o primitive_a true_o catholic_n and_o of_o apostolical_a faith_n profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n such_o a_o certainty_n as_o render_v my_o mind_n quiet_a and_o satisfy_v that_o i_o have_v the_o guidance_n of_o god_n word_n for_o the_o belief_n propose_v to_o i_o and_o consequent_o a_o sufficient_a and_o full_a assurance_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o chap._n vi_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o defence_n of_o the_o pope_n pretend_a infallibility_n from_o the_o censure_n of_o blasphemy_n declare_v to_o be_v weak_a and_o impertinent_a his_o particular_a opinion_n censure_v for_o heretical_a by_o his_o own_o party_n love_fw-mi go_v the_o cause_n with_o our_o adversary_n when_o he_o pretend_v to_o a_o mild_a sentence_n against_o their_o error_n in_o attribute_v infallibility_n to_o the_o pope_n he_o will_v not_o have_v it_o call_v blasphemy_n we_o may_v rest_v content_v with_o find_v it_o a_o error_n of_o any_o degree_n by_o that_o alone_o the_o whole_a structure_n of_o their_o tenet_n against_o we_o fall_v down_o but_o be_v mention_n be_v make_v of_o blasphemy_n in_o their_o assertion_n we_o will_v show_v how_o faint_a a_o defence_n mr._n i._o s._n prepare_v against_o that_o censure_n it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o one_o so_o prodigal_a of_o the_o like_a censure_n as_o we_o have_v see_v he_o to_o be_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o this_o treatise_n term_v it_o a_o blasphemy_n in_o i_o to_o say_v that_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n deny_v the_o roman_a church_n as_o now_o it_o stand_v to_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n and_o in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n say_v that_o protestant_n may_v not_o without_o blasphemy_n allege_v scripture_n for_o their_o tenet_n shall_v take_v so_o great_a a_o scandal_n at_o say_v it_o be_v a_o blasphemy_n to_o make_v the_o pope_n infallible_a especial_o when_o the_o say_n be_v ground_v upon_o principle_n of_o their_o own_o author_n but_o it_o be_v no_o great_a wonder_n that_o mr._n i._o s._n oppose_v this_o censure_n shall_v not_o go_v the_o right_a way_n to_o it_o nor_o heed_n the_o form_n or_o force_v of_o my_o argument_n for_o that_o be_v his_o constant_a custom_n the_o argument_n be_v ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la ground_v upon_o premise_n take_v out_o of_o author_n of_o his_o own_o party_n the_o first_o be_v that_o it_o be_v a_o blasphemy_n to_o attribute_v to_o a_o creature_n any_o of_o god_n property_n so_o aquinas_n 1._o p._n q._n 16._o art_n 3._o ad_fw-la tertiam_fw-la the_o second_o premise_v be_v that_o infallibility_n be_v a_o property_n of_o god_n not_o communicable_a to_o any_o man_n so_o the_o the_o same_o aquinas_n 2a._o 2a._o q._n 13._o art_n 1._o these_o two_o premise_n be_v grant_v the_o conclusion_n be_v evident_a that_o it_o be_v a_o blasphemy_n to_o attribute_v infallibility_n to_o the_o pope_n which_o conclusion_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o two_o premise_n the_o truth_n of_o it_o be_v to_o stand_v or_o fall_v with_o aquinas_n his_o authority_n if_o mr._n i._o s._n be_v formal_a in_o argue_v his_o way_n to_o answer_v this_o argument_n be_v to_o examine_v whether_o aquinas_n deliver_v the_o say_v premise_n ascribe_v to_o he_o and_o so_o come_v direct_o to_o my_o conclusion_n that_o in_o principle_n of_o their_o own_o divine_n it_o be_v a_o blasphemy_n to_o make_v the_o pope_n infallible_a but_o what_o do_v we_o mention_v aquinas_n and_o formal_a dispute_v to_o mr._n i._n s_o he_o do_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o that_o kind_n of_o read_v or_o deal_n he_o will_v not_o be_v tie_v to_o their_o strict_a rule_n of_o reason_v now_o let_v we_o follow_v he_o in_o his_o own_o way_n and_o see_v how_o he_o argue_v be_v set_v at_o liberty_n he_o tax_v i_o with_o ignorance_n for_o not_o know_v that_o god_n may_v lend_v his_o attribute_n to_o man_n and_o the_o attribute_n of_o infallibility_n be_v but_o pass_v over_o in_o a_o grace_n and_o lend_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n it_o must_v not_o be_v a_o blasphemy_n to_o ascribe_v it_o to_o he_o first_o i_o inquire_v of_o this_o magisterial_a man_n whether_o infallibility_n be_v a_o attribute_n of_o god_n incommunicable_a to_o a_o mutable_a man_n as_o aquinas_n seem_v to_o say_v and_o be_v so_o whether_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a it_o may_v not_o be_v lend_v to_o another_o as_o his_o omnipotency_n can_v both_o represent_v a_o unlimited_a perfection_n for_o as_o omnipotency_n include_v a_o relation_n to_o infinite_a effect_n produceable_a so_o the_o infallibility_n ascribe_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o determine_v without_o error_n all_o question_n possible_a to_o occur_v about_o religion_n seem_v to_o argue_v a_o unlimited_a perfection_n the_o say_a question_n be_v endless_a the_o heavenly_a preacher_n declare_v that_o god_n have_v make_v man_n upright_o he_o have_v entangle_v himself_o in_o infinite_a question_n which_o the_o latin_a vulgar_a translation_n deliver_v
perpetual_a assistance_n this_o assistance_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o own_o true_a church_n follow_v the_o step_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o believe_v with_o joy_n but_o can_v approve_v the_o arrogancy_n of_o mr._n i._n s._n and_o his_o brethren_n in_o appropriate_v all_o such_o promise_n to_o their_o own_o faction_n and_o perpetual_o take_v for_o grant_v in_o his_o debate_n with_o we_o that_o to_o be_v the_o only_a church_n favour_v by_o such_o gracious_a promise_n be_v indeed_o but_o a_o very_a corrupt_a member_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a to_o who_o these_o promise_n be_v make_v a_o thing_n which_o we_o do_v not_o say_v bare_o but_o prove_v evident_o another_o example_n of_o their_o skill_n in_o clip_v and_o corrupt_a scripture_n he_o fetch_v out_o of_o the_o same_o storehouse_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o john_n fourteen_o 16._o i_o will_v pray_v the_o father_n and_o he_o will_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n that_o will_v abide_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o who_o will_v lead_v you_o unto_o all_o truth_n i_o discover_v their_o abuse_n of_o this_o text_n by_o restore_v it_o to_o its_o integrity_n which_o according_a to_o their_o own_o bible_n go_v in_o these_o word_n if_o you_o love_v i_o keep_v my_o commandment_n and_o i_o will_v ask_v my_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v give_v you_o another_o paraclete_n that_o he_o may_v abide_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n who_o the_o world_n can_v receive_v by_o the_o first_o word_n we_o see_v this_o to_o be_v a_o conditional_a promise_n limit_v to_o such_o as_o love_n god_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n by_o the_o latter_a word_n worldly_a and_o sinful_a man_n be_v express_o exclude_v from_o receive_v that_o gracious_a assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n for_o which_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n i_o relate_v the_o gloss_n interlineal_a and_o ordinary_a this_o discourse_n our_o adversary_n oppose_v thus_o that_o after_o the_o former_a clause_n if_o you_o love_v i_o keep_v my_o commandment_n there_o be_v a_o punctum_fw-la and_o then_o follow_v a_o distinct_a verse_n and_o i_o will_v ask_v my_o father_n and_o he_o will_v give_v you_o another_o paraclete_n etc._n etc._n which_o make_v a_o absolute_a sense_n independent_a from_o the_o former_a this_o be_v indeed_o a_o subtlety_n well_o become_v a_o sophister_n as_o if_o a_o punctum_fw-la may_v not_o be_v interpose_v betwixt_o several_a clause_n of_o one_o discourse_n tend_v to_o the_o same_o end_n or_o betwixt_o premise_n and_o a_o conclusion_n deduce_v from_o they_o as_o if_o the_o copulative_a particle_n and_o do_v not_o signify_v a_o conjunction_n of_o both_o clause_n and_o a_o influence_n of_o the_o one_o upon_o the_o other_o as_o if_o all_o that_o be_v not_o clear_v by_o the_o word_n i_o quote_v in_o the_o margin_n of_o the_o gloss_n interlineal_a mundus_n i._n e._n remanens_fw-la amator_fw-la mundi_fw-la cum_fw-la quo_fw-la nunquam_fw-la est_fw-la amor_fw-la dei_fw-la and_o of_o the_o gloss_n ordinary_a non_fw-la habent_fw-la spirituales_fw-la oculos_fw-la quibus_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la videant_fw-la mundi_fw-la amatores_fw-la here_o we_o see_v both_o gloss_n deny_v the_o effect_n of_o that_o glorious_a promise_n to_o profane_a worldling_n and_o consequent_o the_o promise_n make_v only_o to_o lover_n of_o god_n and_o keeper_n of_o his_o holy_a commandment_n if_o our_o adversary_n be_v ingenuous_a he_o will_v spare_v his_o silly_a subtlety_n see_v they_o obstruct_v by_o this_o state_v of_o the_o case_n chap._n viii_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o horrible_a impiety_n against_o the_o sacred_a apostle_n and_o malicious_a impose_v on_o the_o church_n of_o england_n reprehend_v another_o grand_a argument_n he_o have_v which_o he_o say_v resolute_o i_o can_v never_o answer_v be_v this_o that_o if_o the_o foresay_a promise_n john_n fourteen_o 16._o be_v conditional_a as_o abovementioned_a it_o follow_v we_o can_v be_v sure_o the_o gospel_n be_v infallible_a whereas_o no_o text_n of_o scripture_n say_v he_o pag._n 89._o tell_v we_o that_o the_o evangelist_n be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n when_o they_o write_v the_o gospel_n nor_o nothing_o else_o give_v we_o assurance_n of_o it_o my_o first_o answer_n to_o this_o so_o unanswerable_a argument_n be_v that_o if_o this_o man_n have_v deliver_v this_o expression_n in_o spain_n and_o be_v accuse_v to_o the_o inquisition_n his_o body_n will_v suffer_v for_o it_o if_o his_o intellect_n be_v not_o reduce_v to_o acknowledge_v and_o repent_v the_o horrid_a impiety_n of_o it_o and_o i_o be_o certain_o persuade_v that_o there_o be_v no_o christian_n that_o have_v any_o sense_n of_o piety_n in_o he_o whether_o protestant_n or_o papist_n but_o will_v cry_v out_o with_o horror_n against_o the_o insolent_a impiety_n of_o this_o man_n in_o speak_v so_o irreverent_o of_o those_o sacred_a organ_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o bless_a disciple_n of_o christ_n confirm_v by_o he_o in_o grace_n as_o be_v the_o common_a apprehension_n and_o expression_n of_o christian_n and_o replenish_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n act._n 2.4_o for_o who_o perseverance_n in_o grace_n our_o saviour_n pray_v so_o fervent_o to_o his_o heavenly_a father_n as_o we_o see_v in_o john_n the_o xvii_o 11._o holy_a father_n keep_v through_o thy_o own_o name_n those_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o upon_o which_o word_n maldonate_fw-it deliver_v this_o gloss_n non_fw-la rogat_fw-la christus_fw-la ut_fw-la nunc_fw-la à_fw-la peccatis_fw-la liberentur_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la jam_fw-la liberati_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la statu_fw-la quo_fw-la erant_fw-la conserventur_fw-la ne_fw-la quis_fw-la ab_fw-la eâ_fw-la decedat_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la quam_fw-la consecutus_fw-la svo_fw-la erat_fw-la beneficio_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la judae_fw-la contigerat_fw-la that_o our_o saviour_n pray_v for_o their_o perseverance_n in_o grace_n that_o none_o of_o they_o shall_v fall_v from_o it_o as_o judas_n do_v and_o will_v this_o rash_a man_n say_v that_o the_o prayer_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v not_o hear_v nor_o his_o request_n grant_v by_o his_o heavenly_a father_n in_o favour_n of_o his_o belove_a disciple_n if_o he_o will_v not_o be_v so_o profligate_o impious_a how_o dare_v he_o say_v that_o no_o text_n of_o scripture_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o evangelist_n be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n when_o they_o write_v the_o gospel_n nor_o nothing_o else_o give_v we_o assurance_n of_o it_o if_o his_o book_n do_v contain_v no_o other_o crime_n than_o this_o unchristian_a expression_n any_o true_a disciple_n of_o christ_n and_o believer_n of_o his_o gospel_n aught_o to_o judge_n the_o say_a book_n more_o worth_a the_o burn_a then_o the_o read_n he_o be_v not_o yet_o content_v with_o the_o damnable_a expression_n forementioned_a but_o must_v raise_v his_o censure_n against_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n to_o a_o high_a degree_n p._n 89._o saying_n that_o not_o only_o we_o be_v not_o sure_a of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o that_o we_o be_v assure_v it_o be_v not_o infallible_a and_o this_o horrible_a blasphemy_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o gospel_n dictate_v by_o he_o he_o must_v father_n upon_o the_o protestant_a church_n but_o upon_o a_o ground_n so_o much_o of_o his_o own_o make_n that_o any_o dispassionate_a man_n and_o not_o blind_a may_v see_v the_o whole_a assertion_n to_o be_v his_o own_o and_o a_o product_n of_o his_o inclination_n which_o appear_v here_o and_o in_o many_o other_o place_n of_o destroy_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o christian_a belief_n the_o ground_n he_o give_v for_o this_o latter_o most_o damnable_a blasphemy_n be_v that_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o keep_v god_n commandment_n therefore_o say_v he_o the_o evangelist_n when_o they_o write_v do_v not_o keep_v god_n commandment_n and_o consequent_o they_o can_v not_o have_v the_o paraclete_n to_o lead_v they_o into_o truth_n i_o never_o yet_o hear_v any_o protestant_n deliver_v such_o a_o desperate_a proposition_n as_o this_o he_o father_n upon_o they_o which_o thus_o deliver_v categorical_o without_o further_a declaration_n or_o limitation_n be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o man_n to_o be_v save_v our_o saviour_n often_o declare_v that_o the_o only_a way_n to_o life_n everlasting_a be_v to_o keep_v god_n command_n it_o be_v also_o to_o give_v the_o lie_n to_o our_o redeemer_n say_v that_o his_o yoke_n be_v easy_a and_o his_o burden_n light_n mat._n xi_o 30._o and_o that_o his_o commandment_n be_v not_o grievous_a 1_o joh._n v._o 3._o if_o he_o know_v any_o protestant_a writer_n to_o have_v deliver_v that_o position_n in_o that_o latitude_n why_o do_v not_o he_o tell_v i_o who_o he_o be_v and_o where_o he_o say_v it_o that_o i_o may_v judge_v according_o of_o the_o author_n and_o of_o the_o doctrine_n must_v i_o take_v it_o upon_o his_o credit_n have_v so_o many_o experience_n of_o
the_o untruth_n of_o his_o relation_n that_o he_o must_v not_o expect_v from_o i_o i_o suppose_v he_o find_v this_o doctrine_n which_o he_o say_v to_o be_v common_a in_o the_o protestant_a church_n where_o he_o find_v i_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o he_o do_v most_o impudent_o impose_v upon_o i_o in_o his_o dedicatory_a epistle_n to_o my_o lord_n lieutenant_n this_o be_v their_o ordinary_a way_n of_o beget_v in_o their_o proselyte_n a_o abhorrence_n to_o their_o opposer_n viz._n imposture_n and_o calumny_n of_o their_o calumny_n in_o this_o particular_a learned_a le_fw-fr blane_n complain_v &_o declare_v thus_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o protestant_n cum_fw-la scriptura_fw-la dicimus_fw-la &_o docemus_fw-la fideles_fw-la dei_fw-la mandata_fw-la per_fw-la christi_fw-la gratiam_fw-la seruare_fw-la etc._n etc._n thesi●6_n ●6_z &_o 27._o the_o observant_a leg._n we_o say_v and_o teach_v with_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o faithful_a do_v keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n let_v not_o our_o sophister_n think_v to_o appease_v my_o just_a indignation_n against_o he_o or_o to_o escape_v the_o censure_n i_o pass_v upon_o he_o of_o a_o blasphemous_a contemner_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o sacred_a writer_n of_o it_o the_o bless_a evangelist_n by_o say_v he_o do_v not_o assert_v himself_o the_o foresay_a affront_n he_o put_v on_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o evangelist_n but_o that_o he_o infer_v they_o from_o position_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n the_o whole_a doctrine_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o in_o the_o thirty_o nine_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n we_o be_v not_o in_o that_o confusion_n and_o uncertainty_n touch_v the_o object_n of_o our_o belief_n as_o he_o and_o his_o party_n be_v betwixt_o so_o many_o article_n daily_o coin_v one_o overthrow_v the_o other_o in_o what_o place_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n or_o of_o the_o foresay_a thirty_o nine_o article_n do_v he_o find_v this_o proposition_n which_o he_o say_v be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o keep_v god_n commandment_n which_o be_v all_o the_o ground_n he_o show_v for_o this_o blasphemous_a assertion_n that_o we_o be_v assure_v the_o evangelist_n when_o they_o write_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o observance_n of_o his_o commandment_n and_o by_o that_o assure_a the_o gospel_n be_v not_o infallible_a the_o say_a ground_n i_o say_v not_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o place_n of_o the_o forementioned_a rule_n and_o canon_n of_o our_o belief_n i_o conclude_v the_o assertion_n pretend_v to_o flow_v from_o it_o to_o be_v of_o his_o own_o invention_n and_o his_o own_o sentiment_n let_v this_o therefore_o be_v know_v to_o be_v his_o tenet_n and_o assertion_n to_o his_o eternal_a infamy_n that_o we_o be_v sure_o the_o evangelist_n when_o they_o write_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n that_o we_o be_v sure_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o infallible_a one_o that_o be_v find_v with_o a_o steal_a horse_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o the_o thief_n till_o he_o prove_v that_o he_o have_v receive_v it_o lawful_o from_o another_o we_o find_v that_o execrable_a blasphemy_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o i._o s._n let_v he_o be_v take_v and_o punish_v for_o author_n of_o it_o if_o any_o just_a inquisition_n find_v he_o since_o he_o can_v find_v no_o other_o author_n for_o it_o but_o all_o his_o sophistry_n will_v not_o afford_v he_o even_o the_o least_o colour_n of_o excuse_n for_o the_o former_a part_n of_o his_o assertion_n for_o which_o he_o will_v not_o be_v behold_v to_o any_o other_o but_o deliver_v it_o for_o a_o document_n of_o his_o own_o that_o no_o text_n of_o scripture_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o evangelist_n be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n when_o they_o write_v the_o gospel_n nor_o any_o thing_n else_o give_v we_o assurance_n of_o it_o ask_v of_o any_o boy_n in_o spain_n or_o flanders_n but_o mean_o catechize_v whether_o he_o be_v not_o teach_v by_o his_o curate_n and_o parent_n that_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o descent_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o they_o be_v confirm_v in_o grace_n wherewith_o we_o be_v assure_v they_o never_o lose_v it_o after_o and_o in_o case_n our_o adversary_n shall_v gain_v by_o some_o picture_n or_o medal_n the_o vote_n of_o the_o boy_n in_o his_o favour_n other_o doctor_n we_o have_v which_o he_o shall_v not_o so_o easy_o gain_v to_o his_o side_n who_o affirm_v that_o the_o sacred_a apostle_n after_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v so_o confirm_v and_o strengthen_v in_o grace_n that_o no_o humane_a power_n or_o temptation_n can_v make_v they_o fail_v in_o their_o fidelity_n to_o god_n s._n augustin_n for_o one_o thus_o deliver_v his_o opinion_n homil._n 9_o the_o missione_n spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la ante_fw-la adventum_fw-la vero_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la sub_fw-la ipso_fw-la crucis_fw-la dominicae_fw-la tempore_fw-la alii_fw-la ex_fw-la discipulis_fw-la effugantur_fw-la alii_fw-la unius_fw-la ancillae_fw-la voce_fw-la terrentur_fw-la &_o metu_fw-la corda_fw-la trepida_fw-la penetrante_fw-la dominum_fw-la suum_fw-la negare_fw-la coguntur_fw-la post_fw-la illustrationem_fw-la vero_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la &_o confirmationem_fw-la custodiis_fw-la excruciati_fw-la verberibus_fw-la afflicti_fw-la ibant_fw-la gaudentes_fw-la quia_fw-la digni_fw-la essent_fw-la pro_fw-la christi_fw-la nomine_fw-la contumeliam_fw-la pati_fw-la that_o the_o apostle_n so_o frail_a before_o as_o to_o run_v from_o their_o master_n and_o deny_v he_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o a_o girl_n after_o be_v confirm_v in_o grace_n by_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v so_o constant_a in_o suffer_v prison_n and_o scourge_n that_o they_o rejoice_v for_o be_v worthy_a of_o suffer_v for_o christ_n the_o same_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v confirm_v in_o grace_n by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o they_o so_o as_o they_o be_v by_o god_n special_a protection_n preserve_v from_o fall_v from_o it_o all_o their_o life_n though_o otherwise_o peccable_a be_v deliver_v by_o other_o actor_n other_o tertullian_n contra_fw-la prax_v c._n 34._o leo_fw-la magnus_n ser._n 2._o de_fw-fr pentecost_n gregor_n papa_n homil._n 30._o in_o evang._n chrysostom_n homil._n 4._o in_o acta_fw-la apost_n bernard_n ser._n in_o fest_n pentecostes_fw-la aquinas_n qu._n 24._o de_fw-la veritate_fw-la art_n 9_o ad_fw-la 2._o justinianus_n disput_fw-la 1._o ex_fw-la praeviis_fw-la in_o paulum_fw-la c._n 5._o nu_fw-la 7._o corn._n à_fw-fr lap._n ad_fw-la versum_fw-la 3._o c._n 2._o actor_n father_n and_o schoolman_n all_o this_o force_n of_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n father_n and_o divine_n be_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o sacred_a apostle_n to_o have_v be_v confirm_v in_o grace_n and_o preserve_v in_o it_o all_o their_o life_n how_o come_v our_o adversary_n to_o say_v we_o have_v no_o assurance_n of_o their_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n when_o they_o write_v the_o gospel_n do_v they_o not_o write_v it_o after_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v upon_o they_o which_o shall_v we_o admire_v most_o his_o ignorance_n or_o impiety_n true_o he_o have_v give_v such_o testimony_n of_o both_o in_o this_o his_o undertake_n rebuke_v in_o this_o chapter_n that_o we_o may_v very_o well_o bid_v he_o farewell_n here_o and_o leave_v he_o as_o unworthy_a of_o any_o further_a reply_n but_o whereas_o he_o may_v meet_v with_o reader_n so_o short_a sight_v as_o not_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o absurdity_n and_o guilt_n even_o of_o this_o size_n we_o will_v continue_v yet_o help_v ●hem_n to_o find_v out_o gross_a error_n and_o crime_n in_o his_o writing_n chap._n ix_o our_o adversary_n pretention_n to_o prescription_n and_o miracle_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o their_o church_n reject_v his_o impose_v on_o i_o and_o on_o the_o church_n of_o england_n discover_v further_o our_o sophister_n find_v but_o little_a right_n by_o scripture_n or_o reason_n for_o the_o pretend_a infallibility_n of_o his_o church_n appeal_v to_o the_o title_n of_o prescription_n that_o they_o have_v be_v long_a time_n in_o possession_n of_o this_o prerogative_n and_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v disturb_v now_o in_o the_o use_n of_o it_o here_o he_o prepare_v a_o defence_n for_o thief_n and_o robber_n if_o they_o have_v our_o good_n long_o time_n in_o their_o possession_n we_o must_v leave_v they_o to_o such_o possessor_n and_o not_o disturb_v they_o in_o the_o use_n of_o they_o the_o turk_n be_v hereby_o justify_v in_o his_o possession_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n and_o other_o dominion_n of_o christian_a prince_n he_o have_v rob_v the_o attempt_n of_o the_o say_a prince_n in_o dispossess_v this_o robber_n be_v unjust_a according_a to_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o logic._n in_o it_o he_o can_v not_o find_v this_o rule_n of_o law_n
quae_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la sunt_fw-la male_a constituta_fw-la tempore_fw-la non_fw-la convalescunt_fw-la that_o what_o be_v unlawful_a in_o the_o beginning_n grow_v not_o by_o continuance_n lawful_a nor_o this_o other_o non_fw-la debet_fw-la quis_fw-la commodum_fw-la reportare_fw-la ex_fw-la crimine_fw-la none_o ought_v to_o find_v a_o advantage_n in_o a_o guilt_n for_o his_o defence_n a_o unjust_a usurper_n by_o a_o continuance_n of_o his_o usurpation_n be_v render_v rather_o more_o guilty_a than_o excusable_a we_o have_v show_v by_o evident_a proof_n that_o the_o pretention_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o infallibility_n be_v and_o be_v still_o a_o unjust_a usurpation_n a_o robbery_n of_o a_o privilege_n belong_v unto_o god_n and_o his_o holy_a scripture_n communicate_v to_o the_o apostle_n founder_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o to_o the_o church_n true_o catholic_n and_o universal_a stick_v to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o belief_n which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n leave_v to_o we_o not_o to_o that_o factious_a party_n devote_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n which_o mr._n i._o s._n will_v have_v we_o take_v for_o the_o only_a church_n commit_v in_o all_o his_o discourse_n a_o perpetual_a solecism_n against_o the_o law_n of_o a_o disputant_n which_o be_v to_o take_v for_o grant_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o debate_n which_o be_v constant_o deny_v to_o they_o but_o his_o logic_n will_v not_o take_v notice_n of_o these_o nicety_n now_o therefore_o to_o accuse_v we_o that_o we_o disturb_v they_o in_o the_o possession_n of_o their_o infallibility_n be_v like_o the_o complaint_n of_o a_o certain_a gentleman_n against_o a_o merchant_n call_v on_o he_o for_o a_o old_a debt_n he_o rant_v and_o swear_v he_o be_v a_o troublesome_a companion_n for_o importune_v for_o the_o payment_n of_o a_o debt_n of_o so_o many_o year_n as_o if_o it_o be_v but_o of_o yesterday_o his_o delay_n in_o pay_v be_v a_o increase_n of_o his_o guilt_n the_o retain_v of_o another_o man_n good_n as_o well_o as_o the_o take_v they_o away_o against_o his_o will_n be_v robbery_n thus_o it_o be_v in_o our_o case_n the_o pretention_n of_o the_o roman_a faction_n to_o infallibility_n be_v a_o robbery_n from_o the_o beginning_n a_o impose_v upon_o man_n kind_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v and_o the_o continuance_n of_o it_o be_v a_o increase_n of_o their_o guilt_n why_o will_v mr._n i._o s._n make_v this_o increase_n of_o their_o guilt_n a_o excuse_n of_o it_o beside_o to_o say_v that_o his_o church_n be_v in_o all_o age_n in_o peaceable_a possession_n of_o this_o prerogative_n of_o infallibility_n as_o he_o do_v pag._n 76._o be_v a_o wide_a mistake_n and_o as_o he_o assert_v it_o without_o proof_n he_o must_v be_v content_v with_o a_o bare_a denial_n for_o a_o answer_n while_o we_o leave_v he_o to_o look_v after_o any_o pertinent_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o three_o hundred_o nay_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n for_o his_o purpose_n which_o he_o shall_v never_o find_v in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n p._n 102._o he_o fall_v abrupt_o upon_o the_o old_a armoury_n of_o miracle_n in_o favour_n of_o his_o church_n of_o this_o i_o can_v not_o but_o wonder_n have_v see_v he_o p._n 81._o engage_v his_o whole_a logic_n against_o the_o power_n of_o miracle_n for_o breed_v in_o man_n a_o save_v divine_a faith_n for_o say_v he_o either_o they_o be_v only_o probable_a or_o evident_a if_o probable_a only_a they_o be_v not_o proportionable_a to_o give_v we_o that_o certainty_n require_v for_o divine_a faith_n if_o evident_a absolute_o they_o can_v be_v no_o motive_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v of_o its_o own_o nature_n obscure_a in_o which_o piece_n of_o logic_n he_o give_v a_o clear_a testimony_n of_o his_o impiety_n and_o ignorance_n impiety_n in_o pretend_v to_o weaken_v that_o strong_a foundation_n of_o christian_a belief_n take_v from_o the_o glory_n of_o miracle_n for_o which_o i_o remit_v he_o to_o what_o he_o allege_v himself_o from_o the_o foresay_a p._n 102._o ignorance_n in_o pretend_v that_o a_o obscure_a conclusion_n may_v not_o be_v deduce_v from_o a_o evident_a premise_v to_o prove_v notum_fw-la per_fw-la ignotius_fw-la a_o conclusion_n clear_a by_o a_o premise_v or_o medium_fw-la more_o obscure_a be_v a_o know_a fault_n in_o argue_v but_o to_o prove_v by_o a_o evident_a medium_fw-la a_o conclusion_n obscure_a be_v a_o fault_n of_o argue_v never_o hear_v of_o yet_o before_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o logic._n by_o this_o canon_n he_o make_v the_o belief_n of_o martha_n to_o be_v indiscreet_a who_o see_v the_o resurrection_n of_o her_o brother_n and_o other_o miracle_n our_o saviour_n wrought_v conclude_v i_o believe_v that_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o miracle_n be_v evident_a but_o the_o generation_n of_o christ_n from_o his_o heavenly_a father_n obscure_a and_o who_o shall_v declare_v his_o generation_n esa_n iii_o 8._o have_v thus_o help_v he_o against_o himself_o for_o render_v miracle_n a_o congruous_a way_n to_o find_v out_o true_a religion_n i_o glad_o accept_v the_o challenge_n to_o a_o trial_n of_o our_o religion_n by_o they_o our_o religion_n or_o the_o object_n of_o our_o necessary_a belief_n be_v only_o what_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o canonical_a scripture_n in_o favour_n of_o this_o belief_n we_o have_v all_o the_o miracle_n write_v in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n their_o religion_n as_o opposite_a to_o we_o and_o differ_v from_o we_o be_v those_o article_n in_o debate_n introduce_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n transubstantiation_n purgatory_n worship_n of_o image_n etc._n etc._n will_v he_o for_o shame_n pretend_v the_o stock_n of_o romany_n produce_v by_o they_o for_o these_o innovation_n fit_a to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o store_n of_o glorious_a miracle_n which_o we_o have_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o our_o divine_a true_o infallible_a belief_n contain_v in_o holy_a scripture_n while_o we_o show_v his_o new_a belief_n to_o be_v contrary_a to_o this_o divine_a faith_n confirm_v with_o miracle_n of_o infallible_a truth_n as_o we_o do_v let_v he_o keep_v to_o himself_o his_o new-coined_a wonder_n and_o remember_v that_o god_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o himself_o in_o put_v his_o seal_n to_o contrary_a law_n and_o if_o he_o must_v believe_v some_o of_o the_o wonder_n he_o propose_v let_v lessius_fw-la and_o other_o help_v he_o to_o understand_v what_o to_o make_v of_o those_o miracle_n or_o wonder_n which_o valerius_n maximus_n titus_n livius_n and_o other_o roman_a historian_n do_v relate_v to_o have_v be_v wrought_v in_o favour_n of_o their_o temple_n and_o heathenish_a superstition_n and_o let_v he_o not_o expect_v from_o i_o that_o i_o shall_v bestow_v time_n in_o examine_v the_o truth_n or_o falsehood_n of_o all_o his_o impertinent_a allegation_n in_o the_o same_o seven_o chapter_n from_o p._n 126._o he_o fasten_v on_o i_o two_o notorious_a calumny_n first_o that_o have_v leave_v the_o roman_a church_n i_o fix_v upon_o no_o other_o to_o be_v of_o the_o second_o that_o i_o say_v none_o may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o first_o be_v see_v by_o my_o public_a declaration_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o untruth_n of_o the_o other_o i_o declare_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o this_o treatise_n whereby_o all_o his_o verbosity_n upon_o this_o subject_n appear_v a_o fret_n of_o his_o malice_n without_o any_o real_a ground_n without_o shame_n to_o tax_v i_o often_o with_o and_o repete_fw-la with_o his_o frivolous_a exclamation_n without_o show_v where_o or_o when_o i_o do_v say_v what_o indeed_o i_o never_o say_v or_o write_v that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n in_o the_o roman_a catholic_a religion_n with_o the_o same_o confidence_n and_o the_o like_a untruth_n he_o repete_v that_o it_o be_v the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o the_o romish_a religion_n be_v a_o save_a religion_n or_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n which_o be_v what_o we_o deny_v they_o let_v the_o reader_n reflect_v upon_o what_o i_o say_v in_o the_o foresay_a second_o chapter_n of_o this_o treatise_n and_o see_v the_o confusion_n of_o this_o man_n brain_n in_o not_o understand_v or_o deliver_v distinct_o our_o sentiment_n according_a to_o our_o own_o expression_n or_o the_o corruption_n of_o his_o mind_n in_o deceive_v wilful_o his_o reader_n especial_o that_o he_o himself_o p._n 133._o allege_v doctor_n stillingfleet_n compare_v both_o church_n the_o romish_a to_o a_o leaky_a ship_n wherein_o a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v but_o with_o great_a danger_n and_o difficulty_n and_o the_o protestant_n to_o a_o sound_a ship_n wherein_o one_o may_v be_v save_v without_o hazard_n this_o be_v the_o utmost_a of_o courtesy_n or_o charity_n that_o may_v be_v and_o be_v extend_v to_o they_o be_v this_o to_o say_v the_o romish_a church_n be_v a_o
safe_a way_n to_o salsation_n be_v it_o safe_a to_o venture_v in_o a_o leaky_a ship_n upon_o a_o stormy_a sea_n but_o what_o say_v he_o to_o the_o stream_n of_o learned_a author_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n which_o dr._n stillingfleet_n relate_v and_o of_o the_o very_a learned_a book_n he_o write_v himself_o prove_v with_o irresistible_a argument_n that_o the_o romish_a church_n in_o several_a of_o her_o present_a tenet_n and_o practice_n be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n be_v idolatry_n of_o those_o pious_a opinion_n which_o matter_n not_o for_o salvation_n and_o let_v mr._n i.s._n know_v that_o i_o consider_v long_o and_o examine_v thorough_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n before_o i_o declare_v for_o it_o and_o he_o may_v spare_v his_o labour_n of_o catechise_n i_o in_o the_o tenet_n of_o it_o chap._n x._o a_o check_n to_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o insolent_a thesis_n prefix_v for_o title_n to_o the_o eight_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n that_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n nor_o any_o part_n of_o it_o that_o they_o can_v without_o blasphemy_n allege_v scripture_n for_o their_o tenet_n and_o his_o own_o argument_n retort_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n under_o so_o pregnant_a and_o big_a promise_v a_o title_n as_o this_o that_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n nor_o any_o part_n of_o it_o that_o they_o can_v without_o blasphemy_n allege_v scripture_n for_o their_o tenet_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o in_o a_o book_n present_v to_o the_o lord_n lieutenant_n of_o ireland_n the_o earl_n of_o essex_n under_o so_o magnificent_a a_o title_n i_o say_v expose_v to_o the_o view_n of_o so_o great_a and_o judicious_a a_o person_n who_o will_v not_o expect_v a_o very_a exquisite_a discourse_n to_o go_v through_o so_o stout_a a_o undertake_n and_o behold_v reader_n what_o mr._n i._o s._n present_v to_o his_o excellency_n for_o that_o purpose_n for_o a_o foundation_n of_o his_o discourse_n he_o will_v have_v we_o premise_v that_o protestant_n do_v allow_v papist_n not_o to_o err_v in_o point_n fundamental_a to_o salvation_n that_o our_o difference_n with_o they_o be_v about_o point_v not_o fundamental_a he_o do_v not_o seem_v to_o regard_v or_o know_v which_o be_v these_o point_n call_v fundamental_a or_o not_o fundamental_a which_o be_v a_o bad_a beginning_n to_o be_v clear_a and_o exact_a in_o the_o present_a engagement_n but_o he_o be_v to_o suppose_v with_o dr._n stillingfleet_n dr._n potter_n and_o other_o learned_a writer_n of_o both_o church_n 42._o church_n see_v chillingworth_n his_o answer_n to_o the_o book_n entitle_v charity_n maintain_v etc._n etc._n c._n 4._o and_o dr._n hammond_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o fundamental_o c._n 2._o stillingfleet_n in_o his_o rational_a account_n part._n 1._o cap._n 2._o b._n laud_n p._n 42._o follow_v therein_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o father_n and_o schoolman_n that_o the_o point_n fundamental_a or_o of_o necessary_a belief_n to_o salvation_n and_o to_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a church_n be_v those_o contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n which_o be_v a_o system_fw-la or_o summary_n of_o article_n which_o those_o sacred_a founder_n of_o christianity_n think_v fit_a and_o sufficient_a to_o be_v propose_v to_o all_o man_n where_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v and_o necessary_a to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v so_o as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n call_v it_o fundamentum_fw-la firmum_fw-la &_o unicum_fw-la sess_n 3._o not_o the_o firm_a alone_a but_o the_o only_a foundation_n point_v not_o fundamental_a or_o inferior_a truth_n be_v all_o other_o divine_a verity_n contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whether_o write_v in_o canonical_a scripture_n or_o deliver_v to_o we_o by_o apostolical_a universal_a tradition_n implicit_o contain_v in_o the_o creed_n where_o we_o profess_v to_o believe_v in_o god_n and_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o explicit_o to_o be_v believe_v when_o we_o shall_v be_v ascertain_v that_o they_o be_v contain_v in_o those_o oracle_n of_o god_n call_v inferior_a truth_n not_o that_o they_o be_v of_o less_o certainty_n and_o objective_a infallibility_n in_o themselves_o than_o the_o other_o call_v fundamental_a but_o because_o the_o explicit_a knowledge_n of_o they_o be_v not_o so_o necessary_a or_o obvious_a to_o all_o man_n and_o consequent_o be_v more_o capable_a of_o inculpable_a ignorance_n of_o they_o and_o error_n about_o they_o in_o many_o man_n and_o because_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v agree_v with_o we_o in_o the_o explicit_a confession_n of_o this_o creed_n it_o be_v say_v not_o to_o err_v in_o fundamental_a point_n though_o find_v guilty_a of_o pernicious_a error_n touch_v other_o point_n not_o fundamental_a and_o with_o this_o supposition_n i_o be_o confident_a my_o antagonist_n will_v not_o quarrel_v if_o you_o take_v he_o here_o before_o he_o see_v my_o reflection_n upon_o his_o unwary_a argument_n upon_o the_o foresay_a foundation_n mr._n i._o s._n build_v this_o thesis_n that_o the_o protestant_a church_n as_o it_o be_v condistinct_a from_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n because_o say_v he_o it_o do_v not_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o no_o church_n can_v be_v call_v of_o christ_n further_a than_o it_o teach_v his_o doctrine_n that_o protestancy_n or_o the_o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n as_o opposite_a to_o the_o popish_a be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n he_o undertake_v to_o prove_v with_o this_o syllogism_n no_o fallible_a doctrine_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n but_o protestancy_n be_v altogether_o fallible_a doctrine_n therefore_o protestancy_n as_o it_o be_v proper_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n this_o syllogism_n he_o chalk_v out_o to_o we_o in_o a_o different_a character_n for_o remarkable_a as_o indeed_o it_o be_v and_o for_o unanswerable_a for_o it_o be_v in_o ferio_n say_v he_o pag._n 142._o the_o major_a proposition_n we_o allow_v willing_o the_o minor_a to_o wit_n that_o protestancy_n be_v altogether_o fallible_a doctrine_n he_o say_v be_v manifest_a by_o virtue_n of_o this_o other_o no_o less_o remarkable_a syllogism_n protestancy_n or_o the_o doctrine_n wherein_o protestant_n do_v differ_v from_o papist_n be_v altogether_o of_o point_n not_o fundamental_a but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o point_n not_o fundamental_a or_o inferior_a truth_n be_v fallible_a doctrine_n therefore_o protestancy_n be_v but_o fallible_a doctrine_n and_o therefore_o no_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n he_o conclude_v with_o these_o word_n i_o confess_v ingenuous_o i_o think_v this_o argument_n can_v be_v solid_o answer_v if_o his_o confession_n herein_o be_v ingenuous_a indeed_o let_v he_o take_v in_o return_v this_o other_o ingenuous_a confession_n from_o i_o that_o i_o think_v serious_o he_o be_v a_o very_a weak_a man_n if_o he_o be_v sensible_a himself_o of_o the_o fallacy_n and_o falsehood_n of_o his_o argument_n he_o be_v unworthy_a in_o beguile_v his_o reader_n and_o unwise_a in_o expose_v it_o to_o a_o polemical_a strict_a debate_n and_o think_v we_o shall_v want_v a_o solid_a answer_n to_o so_o silly_a a_o sophism_n not_o to_o give_v it_o yet_o a_o more_o severe_a check_n haply_o he_o have_v that_o poor_a excuse_n in_o his_o favour_n that_o he_o know_v not_o what_o he_o say_v to_o see_v whether_o my_o answer_n be_v solid_a let_v we_o examine_v how_o solid_a his_o argument_n be_v the_o stress_n of_o it_o lie_v in_o his_o latter_a syllogism_n who_o major_a proposition_n be_v that_o protestancy_n or_o the_o doctrine_n wherein_o protestant_n do_v differ_v from_o papist_n be_v altogether_o of_o point_n not_o fundamental_a this_o we_o allow_v he_o to_o take_v for_o grant_v let_v we_o proceed_v to_o the_o minor_a but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o point_n not_o fundamental_a or_o inferior_a truth_n say_v he_o be_v fallible_a doctrine_n stop_v here_o sir_n and_o if_o justice_n be_v do_v to_o you_o a_o perpetual_a stop_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o your_o tongue_n for_o blasphemon_n from_o speak_v any_o more_o it_o be_v a_o formal_a blasphemy_n and_o a_o horrid_a one_o to_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o point_n not_o fundamental_a or_o inferior_a truth_n in_o general_n be_v fallible_a doctrine_n it_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v fallible_a remember_v what_o be_v premise_v a_o little_a before_o and_o suppose_v by_o yourself_o in_o many_o place_n of_o your_o present_a discourse_n that_o the_o point_n call_v not_o fundamental_a be_v all_o those_o other_o divine_a verity_n contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whether_o write_v in_o canonical_a scripture_n or_o deliver_v to_o we_o by_o apostolical_a tradition_n beside_o the_o point_n contain_v in_o the_o creed_n of_o equal_a objective_n certainty_n and_o truth_n with_o the_o other_o point_n they_o be_v of_o a_o size_n as_o
ireland_n whither_o i_o be_v send_v to_o convert_v protestant_n the_o case_n be_v with_o papist_n who_o concern_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o relation_n and_o friend_n of_o the_o protestant_a communion_n inquire_v whether_o such_o believe_v sincere_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n never_o convince_v of_o the_o contrary_a and_o live_v religious_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o observation_n of_o his_o commandment_n may_v be_v save_v i_o answer_v they_o may_v and_o be_v not_o heretic_n but_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n a_o dignity_n receive_v in_o their_o baptism_n and_o not_o to_o be_v lose_v otherwise_o then_o by_o formal_a heresy_n or_o infidelity_n whereof_o they_o be_v not_o guilty_a by_o the_o foresay_a supposition_n you_o say_v all_o be_v true_a but_o it_o be_v not_o discretion_n to_o declare_v truth_n itself_o when_o there_o be_v no_o obligation_n of_o declare_v it_o well_o but_o be_v there_o not_o a_o obligation_n upon_o i_o when_o question_v to_o answer_v according_a to_o truth_n no_o say_v you_o for_o if_o the_o inquirer_n be_v papist_n they_o need_v not_o to_o be_v instruct_v in_o that_o truth_n it_o be_v no_o fundamental_a truth_n if_o protestant_n they_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o know_v it_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n and_o that_o the_o answer_n be_v a_o encouragement_n to_o they_o to_o remain_v as_o they_o be_v a_o pretty_a subtlety_n we_o have_v declare_v before_o how_o touch_v point_v not_o fundamental_a there_o may_v be_v pernicious_a error_n such_o be_v that_o opposite_a to_o the_o truth_n we_o now_o speak_v of_o a_o error_n subversive_a of_o christian_a charity_n and_o public_a peace_n a_o seed_n of_o those_o animosity_n rebellion_n and_o combustion_n which_o make_v this_o land_n unhappy_a and_o ought_v not_o a_o sincere_a instructor_n and_o faithful_a minister_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o oppose_v this_o error_n no_o say_v you_o because_o it_o be_v to_o encourage_v protestant_n to_o remain_v as_o they_o be_v and_o not_o to_o come_v under_o the_o pope_n obedience_n there_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o your_o dislike_n of_o i_o thus_o indeed_o stand_v the_o case_n and_o this_o be_v one_o of_o my_o chief_a reason_n to_o be_v dissatisfy_v of_o your_o way_n that_o the_o rule_n of_o my_o doctrine_n among_o you_o must_v not_o be_v truth_n but_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o increase_n of_o his_o dominion_n whether_o by_o right_n or_o wrong_n this_o point_n of_o policy_n or_o discretion_n as_o you_o call_v it_o i_o refuse_v open_o to_o learn_v from_o you_o choose_v rather_o to_o be_v of_o the_o child_n of_o light_n though_o with_o less_o prudence_n in_o your_o opinion_n then_o of_o the_o child_n of_o this_o world_n by_o that_o elevate_a point_n of_o prudence_n you_o will_v teach_v i_o of_o prostitute_a truth_n and_o honesty_n to_o the_o pope_n pleasure_n and_o interest_n chap._n vii_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o answer_n to_o my_o objection_n against_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n refute_v his_o defence_n of_o bellarmin_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o of_o costerus_n declare_v to_o be_v weak_a and_o vain_a our_o adversary_n foreseeing_a what_o small_a assistance_n he_o can_v have_v from_o scripture_n and_o reason_n to_o maintain_v his_o tenet_n employ_n his_o main_a force_n in_o set_v up_o their_o ordinary_a great_a engine_n of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n and_o have_v bestow_v the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o his_o book_n upon_o that_o subject_n turn_v to_o it_o again_o begin_v the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o say_a book_n with_o reflection_n upon_o some_o of_o my_o argument_n against_o their_o pretention_n and_o want_v it_o seem_v material_n to_o bring_v his_o book_n to_o the_o intend_a bulk_n repotes_fw-la much_o of_o what_o he_o say_v before_o wherein_o i_o will_v not_o imitate_v he_o by_o repete_v my_o reply_n my_o desire_n be_v to_o abbreviate_v as_o far_o as_o may_v consist_v with_o a_o full_a satisfaction_n to_o all_o his_o objection_n he_o pretend_v to_o cast_v a_o mist_n over_o the_o case_n turn_v the_o usual_a term_n of_o pope_n infallibility_n to_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o church_n he_o mean_v fraudulent_o not_o the_o church_n universal_a true_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a to_o which_o i_o allow_v all_o the_o privilege_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n promise_v to_o it_o in_o scripture_n though_o he_o signify_v that_o he_o doubt_v of_o my_o meaning_n herein_o but_o his_o own_o particular_a church_n i_o do_v not_o mean_v the_o diocese_n of_o rome_n as_o he_o do_v wilful_o impose_v upon_o i_o happy_o to_o gain_v time_n or_o draw_v we_o from_o the_o point_n but_o the_o congregation_n subject_n to_o the_o pope_n wheresoever_o extant_a defender_n of_o a_o bad_a cause_n do_v love_v such_o confusion_n and_o obscurity_n as_o fox_n hole_n and_o thicket_n but_o we_o must_v keep_v he_o to_o the_o light_n and_o to_o the_o ordinary_a use_n of_o term_n take_v for_o pope_n infallibility_n the_o same_o which_o he_o or_o any_o of_o his_o communion_n attribute_n to_o their_o church_n depend_v upon_o the_o pope_n as_o be_v declare_v above_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o five_o chapter_n i_o say_v i_o admire_v that_o bellarmin_n shall_v make_v it_o a_o argument_n of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n that_o the_o high_a priest_n do_v bear_v in_o his_o breastplate_n two_o hebrew_n word_n signify_v doctrine_n and_o truth_n i_o question_v whether_o he_o believe_v all_o those_o high_a priest_n even_o caiphas_n condemn_v christ_n to_o be_v infallible_a in_o their_o judgement_n mr._n i._o s._n to_o relieve_v bellarmin_n endeavour_v to_o autorize_v the_o affirmative_a and_o to_o that_o of_o caiphas_n sa●es_v nothing_o and_o so_o give_v we_o leave_v to_o think_v that_o he_o hold_v he_o also_o infallible_a according_a to_o that_o rule_n qui_fw-la tacet_fw-la consentire_fw-la videtur_fw-la by_o which_o we_o have_v this_o further_a notice_n of_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o singular_a doctrine_n that_o he_o find_v caiphas_n infallible_a in_o his_o judgement_n pass_v against_o the_o life_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o tax_v i_o with_o ignorance_n for_o not_o know_v so_o much_o i_o accuse_v they_o of_o make_v the_o pope_n arbiter_n and_o supreme_a judge_n over_o god_n law_n so_o bellarmin_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n c._n 5._o stick_v not_o to_o say_v that_o if_o the_o pope_n do_v command_v vice_n and_o prohibit_v virtue_n the_o church_n will_v be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v vice_n to_o be_v good_a and_o virtue_n bad_a and_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n command_v the_o decree_n of_o pope_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n since_o have_v confess_v that_o our_o saviour_n do_v ordain_v the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n to_o the_o laity_n and_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v practise_v it_o they_o command_v it_o shall_v be_v give_v for_o the_o future_a but_o in_o one_o kind_n allege_v for_o reason_n that_o the_o precedent_a pope_n and_o church_n do_v practise_v it_o so_o which_o be_v to_o extol_v the_o decree_n of_o pope_n above_o they_o of_o christ_n as_o if_o the_o law_n of_o england_n be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v or_o practise_v in_o ireland_n but_o according_a to_o the_o will_n and_o declaration_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n certain_o the_o king_n of_o france_n will_v be_v deem_v of_o more_o power_n in_o ireland_n than_o the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o the_o people_n more_o his_o subject_n to_o that_o of_o bellarmin_n you_o say_v he_o speak_v of_o vice_n and_o virtue_n when_o there_o be_v a_o doubt_n of_o their_o be_v such_o for_o example_n if_o there_o shall_v arise_v a_o doubt_n of_o usury_n be_v be_v a_o vice_n and_o in_o that_o case_n the_o pope_n shall_v command_v usury_n to_o be_v practise_v we_o shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o practice_n usury_n herein_o sir_n you_o allow_v we_o all_o that_o we_o pretend_v and_o you_o confess_v what_o we_o condemn_v in_o bellarmin_n i_o can_v allege_v many_o text_n of_o scripture_n suppose_v and_o affirm_v usury_n to_o be_v a_o vice_n but_o you_o spare_v i_o that_o labour_n presuppose_v that_o usury_n of_o itself_o be_v a_o vice_n of_o its_o nature_n bad_a per_fw-la se_fw-la malum_fw-la and_o that_o you_o all_o know_v it_o to_o be_v such_o and_o notwithstanding_o that_o knowledge_n and_o god_n declaration_n in_o scripture_n you_o say_v if_o the_o pope_n shall_v command_v usury_n to_o be_v practise_v we_o shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o practise_v it_o and_o so_o it_o be_v indeed_o with_o you_o both_o in_o usury_n and_o other_o vice_n we_o know_v all_o that_o rebellion_n be_v a_o sin_n and_o soodious_a to_o god_n that_o in_o scripture_n it_o be_v compare_v to_o witchcraft_n and_o idolatry_n 1_o sam._n xv_o 23._o but_o if_o the_o pope_n shall_v command_v you_o to_o rebel_v against_o your_o king_n for_o religion_n
to_o establish_v as_o the_o chief_a of_o his_o concern_n be_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o absolute_a power_n over_o all_o christian_n direct_o forsooth_o spiritual_n but_o effective_o in_o their_o temporal_a concern_v as_o many_o powerful_a prince_n kingdom_n and_o province_n have_v experience_v to_o their_o woe_n these_o two_o great_a prerogative_n of_o absolute_a power_n over_o all_o christian_n and_o of_o infallibility_n in_o his_o decree_n such_o as_o none_o may_v oppose_v or_o mutter_v against_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o pope_n what_o security_n can_v people_n or_o prince_n have_v of_o their_o liberty_n or_o possession_n if_o liable_a to_o be_v censure_v heretic_n if_o they_o do_v not_o receive_v and_o submit_v to_o any_o thing_n the_o pope_n will_v be_v please_v to_o decree_v and_o declare_v for_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o be_v thus_o censure_v to_o have_v their_o liberty_n and_o land_n seize_v upon_o and_o take_v from_o they_o by_o any_o that_o will_v have_v force_n to_o do_v it_o next_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v the_o dangerous_a consequence_n of_o this_o doctrine_n in_o the_o daily_a extent_n of_o the_o pope_n power_n and_o authority_n by_o his_o emissary_n and_o flatterer_n hitherto_o they_o be_v content_v to_o assert_v his_o infallibility_n in_o matter_n of_o right_a now_o of_o late_o they_o extend_v it_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o famous_a thesis_n of_o the_o parisian_a jesuit_n declare_v above_o in_o the_o nine_o chapter_n and_o though_o another_o party_n oppose_v that_o assertion_n of_o they_o as_o mention_v in_o the_o place_n aforesaid_a all_o man_n know_v how_o little_a success_n any_o may_v expect_v to_o have_v in_o the_o roman_a judicature_n against_o such_o as_o will_v engage_v in_o exalt_v and_o extend_v the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o so_o the_o jesuit_n have_v not_o only_o obtain_v a_o censure_n of_o heresy_n and_o blasphemy_n etc._n etc._n agha_v the_o doctrine_n of_o cornelius_n jansenius_n where_o the_o debate_n be_v in_o matter_n of_o right_n but_o another_o arise_v touch_v the_o fact_n whether_o jansenius_n do_v indeed_o deliver_v such_o a_o doctrine_n they_o obtain_v wise_a from_o the_o succeed_a pope_n alexander_n the_o 7_o a_o bull_n and_o decree_n no_o less_o peremptory_a touch_v the_o fact_n declare_v the_o say_a proposition_n censure_v by_o his_o predecessor_n to_o be_v real_o contain_v in_o jansenius_n his_o book_n and_o which_o be_v more_o wonderful_a he_o shall_v know_v in_o the_o sense_n intend_v by_o jansenius_n the_o foresay_a swear_v defender_n and_o exalter_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n have_v defend_v public_o that_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v with_o divine_a faith_n the_o say_a declaration_n of_o the_o pope_n against_o jansenius_n as_o well_o in_o matter_n of_o right_a as_o fact_n to_o be_v infallible_a by_o these_o notable_a word_n fide_fw-la divinâ_fw-la credi_fw-la potest_fw-la librum_fw-la cvi_fw-la titulus_fw-la augustinus_n jansenii_n esse_fw-la haereticum_fw-la &_o quinque_fw-la propositiones_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la decerptas_fw-la esse_fw-la jansenii_n &_o in_o sensu_fw-la jansenii_n damnatas_fw-la that_o the_o book_n entitle_v the_o augustin_n of_o jansenius_n be_v heretical_a and_o the_o five_o proposition_n which_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o it_o be_v jansenius_n and_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o jansenius_n condemn_v and_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n but_o we_o may_v expect_v a_o command_n of_o believe_v the_o pope_n infallibility_n in_o this_o latter_a kind_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n as_o former_o intimate_v in_o matter_n of_o right_a and_o if_o this_o be_v establish_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a also_o in_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o if_o he_o be_v please_v to_o declare_v that_o any_o of_o we_o in_o particular_a be_v a_o heretic_n or_o have_v deliver_v a_o heretical_a proposition_n woe_n be_v to_o he_o so_o declare_v a_o heretic_n by_o the_o pope_n all_o christian_n subject_n to_o the_o pope_n must_v take_v he_o for_o a_o heretic_n and_o proceed_v against_o he_o according_o with_o all_o those_o severity_n inflict_v by_o canon_n against_o heretic_n mr._n i._o s._n accuse_v i_o to_o the_o lord_n licutenant_n of_o ireland_n that_o i_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n in_o the_o catholic_a hurch_n a_o proposition_n in_o my_o own_o opinion_n heretical_a and_o blasphemous_a take_v in_o its_o proper_a literal_a and_o right_a sense_n not_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o some_o crooked_a improper_a sense_n which_o mr._n i._o s._n may_v pretend_v and_o may_v render_v my_o discourse_n obscure_a this_o testimony_n so_o evident_o false_a he_o impose_v upon_o i_o my_o book_n be_v extant_a in_o the_o hand_n of_o many_o hundred_o man_n and_o myself_o live_v to_o declare_v the_o falsehood_n of_o it_o yet_o his_o confidence_n be_v such_o that_o have_v no_o evidence_n nor_o as_o much_o as_o attemt_v to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o accusation_n he_o will_v have_v my_o lord_n lieutenant_n to_o proceed_v to_o the_o utmost_a severity_n against_o i_o command_v i_o to_o be_v burn_v for_o blasphemous_a ill_o may_v he_o expect_v from_o his_o excellency_n so_o unjust_a and_o rash_a a_o judgement_n but_o how_o far_o he_o may_v speed_v in_o rome_n with_o the_o same_o accusation_n though_o false_a i_o may_v not_o know_v of_o their_o integrity_n proceed_v to_o judgement_n without_o hear_v the_o party_n i_o can_v have_v no_o assurance_n if_o they_o declare_v i_o for_o author_n of_o the_o proposition_n impose_v upon_o i_o by_o mr._n i._o s._n that_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n and_o consequent_o guilty_a of_o heresy_n and_o blasphemy_n and_o all_o must_v take_v their_o declaration_n therein_o for_o infallible_a according_a to_o that_o increase_n of_o infallibility_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n ascribe_v of_o late_a to_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o prime_a favourite_n what_o mischief_n may_v not_o i_o expect_v from_o all_o those_o who_o think_v it_o a_o special_a service_n of_o god_n to_o destroy_v herety_n but_o my_o particular_a concern_n be_v not_o of_o so_o great_a a_o force_n to_o declare_v the_o enormity_n or_o danger_n of_o this_o consequence_n he_o accuse_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o protestant_n of_o heresy_n and_o blasphemy_n in_o a_o high_a degree_n say_v it_o be_v their_o common_a doctrine_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o keep_v god_n commandment_n which_o proposition_n in_o its_o literal_a full_a sense_n be_v certain_o heretical_a and_o blasphemous_a for_o derogatory_n of_o god_n justice_n and_o goodness_n and_o diametrical_o opposite_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n as_o i_o have_v declare_v in_o the_o 8_o chapter_n where_o also_o i_o have_v show_v how_o false_o such_o a_o doctrine_n be_v impose_v upon_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o england_n but_o if_o our_o adversary_n get_v a_o definition_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o we_o be_v in_o effect_n guilty_a of_o that_o error_n in_o what_o condition_n shall_v we_o stand_v with_o our_o neighbour_n our_o innocency_n in_o the_o case_n will_v not_o avail_v what_o if_o mr._n i._o s._n or_o other_o like_o he_o will_v accuse_v some_o great_a christian_a prince_n of_o heresy_n though_o with_o as_o little_a truth_n as_o we_o have_v see_v his_o accusation_n of_o i_o and_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n now_o mention_v to_o have_v proceed_v but_o if_o the_o malice_n of_o neighbour_n hunt_v after_o the_o land_n of_o such_o a_o prince_n and_o of_o his_o subject_n dispose_v to_o rebel_n against_o he_o shall_v join_v to_o accuse_v he_o of_o heretical_a pravity_n and_o the_o pope_n thereby_o shall_v proceed_v to_o deliver_v his_o infallible_a judgement_n touch_v such_o a_o prince_n to_o be_v a_o heretic_n in_o effect_n in_o what_o miserable_a condition_n must_v that_o prince_n be_v for_o credit_n and_o interest_n to_o be_v take_v by_o all_o man_n for_o a_o undoubted_a heretic_n his_o subject_n absolve_v from_o their_o allegiance_n to_o he_o and_o his_o land_n expose_v to_o the_o prey_n of_o any_o strong_a hand_n autorize_v by_o the_o pope_n according_a to_o the_o procedure_n of_o that_o court_n whereof_o many_o dismal_a tragedy_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o chronicle_n of_o england_n germany_n navarre_n and_o other_o kingdom_n of_o europe_n to_o establish_v this_o power_n in_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n so_o destructive_a to_o the_o peace_n and_o safety_n of_o christian_a people_n and_o prince_n be_v the_o aim_n of_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o tedious_a and_o intricate_a discourse_n in_o favour_n of_o his_o pretend_a unerring_a unerrable_a church_n and_o that_o declare_v by_o himself_o he_o may_v expect_v the_o time_n when_o all_o christian_a people_n be_v perfect_o blind_a and_o mad_a to_o have_v his_o doctrine_n receive_v and_o now_o have_v see_v how_o unsuccessful_a he_o have_v be_v in_o set_v up_o the_o grand_a engine_n of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n or_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n govern_v by_o the_o pope_n by_o
the_o queen_n acknowledge_v his_o primacy_n and_o the_o reformation_n from_o he_o it_o be_v not_o the_o loss_n of_o soul_n but_o the_o loss_n of_o peter-pence_n and_o command_n do_v trouble_v he_o and_o make_v he_o and_o his_o successor_n bring_v so_o much_o trouble_v on_o we_o all_o his_o successor_n pius_fw-la iu._n continue_v the_o same_o proffer_n to_o the_o queen_n by_o letter_n write_v the_o five_o of_o may_v 1560._o and_o send_v by_o vincentius_n parpalia_n and_o give_v assurance_n of_o it_o to_o a_o noble_a man_n of_o england_n that_o he_o will_v comply_v with_o her_o request_n to_o the_o utmost_a of_o his_o power_n provide_v she_o will_v allow_v his_o primacy_n in_o ejus_fw-la gratiam_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la possim_fw-la praeterea_fw-la facturus_fw-la dum_fw-la illa_fw-la ad_fw-la nostram_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la se_fw-la recipiat_fw-la &_o debitum_fw-la mihi_fw-la primatus_fw-la titulum_fw-la mihireddat_fw-la and_o sure_o he_o that_o can_v dispense_v with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o alter_v they_o as_o we_o see_v the_o pope_n do_v may_v better_o dispense_v with_o and_o alter_v what_o other_o pope_n do_v decree_n against_o the_o reformation_n priest_n may_v marry_v the_o people_n may_v drink_v consecrate_v wine_n at_o communion_n they_o may_v pray_v in_o english_a etc._n etc._n if_o they_o do_v but_o allow_v his_o primacy_n and_o with_o it_o his_o penny_n to_o the_o pope_n here_o lie_v petra_n scandali_fw-la the_o stumble_a block_n and_o lapis_fw-la offensionis_fw-la ambition_n and_o avarice_n cloak_v with_o religion_n do_v profane_v the_o church_n and_o put_v the_o world_n in_o confusion_n see_v the_o fact_n here_o allege_v and_o proof_n of_o it_o in_o 177._o in_o twisd_v c._n 19_o p._n 177._o sir_n roger_n twisden_n his_o historical_a vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n chap._n ix_o where_o he_o add_v that_o himself_o relate_v this_o passage_n to_o a_o italian_a gentleman_n verse_v in_o public_a affair_n have_v this_o reply_n from_o he_o if_o this_o be_v hear_v in_o rome_n among_o religious_a man_n it_o will_v never_o gain_v credit_n but_o with_o such_o as_o have_v in_o their_o hand_n the_o maneggi_fw-la della_fw-it corte_n the_o management_n of_o affair_n it_o may_v be_v hold_v true_a such_o as_o understand_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n do_v know_v that_o ambition_n and_o interest_n be_v the_o primum_fw-la mobile_a and_o soul_n that_o animate_v all_o their_o motion_n so_o true_a we_o find_v gregory_n his_o prediction_n to_o be_v that_o the_o usurpation_n of_o this_o supremacy_n will_v be_v a_o calamity_n to_o the_o church_n i_o be_o to_o take_v notice_n here_o of_o another_o reason_n st._n gregory_n give_v why_o the_o former_a good_a bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o predecessor_n will_v not_o accept_v of_o this_o proud_a call_n 60.76_o call_n st._n greg._n lib._n 4._o ep._n 60.76_o nullus_fw-la eorum_fw-la unquam_fw-la hoc_fw-la singularitatis_fw-la vocabulum_fw-la assumpsit_fw-la nec_fw-la uti_fw-la consensit_fw-la ne_fw-la dum_fw-la privatum_fw-la aliquid_fw-la daretur_fw-la uni_fw-la honore_fw-la debito_fw-la sacer_n dote_v privarentur_fw-la vniversi_fw-la no_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o six_o hundred_o year_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o call_n of_o supreme_a or_o universal_a bishop_n nor_o permit_v it_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o they_o lest_o the_o singularity_n give_v to_o one_o shall_v deprive_v the_o clergy_n of_o due_a honour_n and_o this_o indeed_o be_v the_o consequence_n of_o the_o pope_n immoderate_a ambition_n in_o this_o kind_n to_o it_o we_o may_v attribute_v the_o too_o much_o contemt_fw-mi fall_v upon_o the_o clergy_n in_o general_n in_o this_o corrupt_a age._n the_o extravagant_a boundless_a ambition_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n make_v man_n fearful_a to_o allow_v even_o decent_a and_o due_a authority_n to_o the_o clergy_n lest_o they_o shall_v improve_v it_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o christian_a people_n and_o prince_n as_o now_o we_o shall_v see_v some_o pope_n do_v this_o proud_a call_n which_o st._n gregory_n call_v blasphemous_a and_o anti-christian_n his_o successor_n boniface_n the_o three_o take_v upon_o himself_o b●_n the_o assistance_n of_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n who_o be_v offend_v with_o ciriac_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n for_o shelter_v from_o his_o fury_n the_o empress_n corstantina_n relict_n of_o maurice_n and_o the_o immunit_fw-la of_o his_o church_n which_o they_o make_v their_o sa●ctuar_n transfer_v upon_o boniface_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n baron_n a_o 606._o which_o dignity_n and_o cal●ing_v the_o follow_a pope_n do_v advance_v so_o far_o that_o innocent_a the_o three_o compare_v the_o papal_a dignity_n and_o regal_a to_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n so_o that_o the_o papal_a dignity_n do_v exceed_v the_o regal_a on_o earth_n as_o much_o as_o the_o sun_n exceed_v the_o moon_n in_o the_o heaven_n solit_fw-la heaven_n ad_fw-la firmamentum_fw-la coeli_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la vniversalis_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la secit_fw-la deus_fw-la duo_fw-la luminaria_fw-la magna_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la dvas_fw-la instituit_fw-la potestates_fw-la pontificalem_fw-la &_o regalem_fw-la etc._n etc._n ut_fw-la quanta_fw-la inter_fw-la solemn_a &_o lunam_fw-la tanta_fw-la inter_fw-la pontifices_fw-la &_o peges_fw-la differentia_fw-la cognoscatur_fw-la innocent_n ter._n ep._n ad_fw-la imp._n constantin_n decret_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la majoritate_fw-la &_o obedientia_fw-la do_fw-mi 33._o cap._n solit_fw-la and_o lest_o you_o may_v not_o understand_v how_o much_o the_o pope_n be_v make_v great_a than_o king_n by_o this_o comparison_n the_o gloss_n furnish_v you_o with_o this_o singular_a declaration_n of_o it_o say_v praed_fw-we say_v igitur_fw-la cum_fw-la serra_fw-mi sit_fw-la septies_fw-la major_a luna_fw-la sol_fw-la autem_fw-la octy_n major_a terra_fw-la restat_fw-la ergo_fw-la ut_fw-la pentificalis_fw-la dignitas_fw-la quadragesy_n septies_fw-la sit_fw-la major_a regali_fw-la dignitate_fw-la gloss_n in_o decret_a praed_fw-we that_o since_o the_o earth_n be_v seven_o time_n great_a than_o the_o moon_n and_o the_o sun_n eight_o time_n great_a than_o the_o earth_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o the_o pope_n power_n be_v forty_o seven_o time_n great_a than_o that_o of_o king_n i_o leave_v the_o ingenious_a reader_n to_o consider_v the_o heap_n of_o absurdity_n contain_v in_o this_o gloss_n as_o suitable_a to_o that_o text_n of_o it_o the_o trespass_n against_o latin_a arithmetic_n and_o astronony_n contain_v in_o it_o and_o much_o more_o against_o truth_n for_o the_o regal_a dignity_n be_v solo_n deo_fw-la minor_fw-la as_o scap._n as_o tertul._n ad_fw-la scap._n tertullian_n say_v it_o can_v be_v a_o moon_n to_o any_o other_o sun_n but_o all_o this_o say_v mr._n i._n s._n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o spiritual_a power_n that_o be_v the_o pretext_n but_o that_o spiritual_a power_n must_v be_v assist_v by_o the_o temporal_a and_o where_o the_o word_n will_v not_o do_v the_o sword_n must_v follow_v so_o the_o same_o innocent_a the_o three_o declare_v in_o the_o three_o lateran_n council_n and_o act_v according_o with_o king_n john_n of_o england_n as_o other_o pope_n do_v with_o several_a emperor_n and_o king_n mention_v in_o the_o 45._o page_n of_o my_o discourse_n divest_v they_o of_o their_o kingdom_n and_o dominion_n and_o absolve_v their_o subject_n from_o their_o allegiance_n to_o they_o mr._n i._o s._n say_v the_o lateran_n council_n do_v not_o assume_v the_o power_n of_o depose_v prince_n but_o find_v it_o a_o probable_a opinion_n among_o divine_n ground_v their_o fact_n upon_o that_o opinion_n and_o issue_v their_o decree_n of_o that_o punishment_n against_o such_o prince_n in_o a_o good_a condition_n the_o world_n stand_v if_o it_o be_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o such_o council_n if_o any_o opinion_n find_v probable_a among_o divine_n may_v be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o a_o conciliary_a definition_n or_o decree_n what_o desperate_a definition_n and_o decree_n may_v we_o not_o expect_v from_o their_o council_n when_o we_o see_v so_o many_o desperate_a opinion_n come_v forth_o daily_o among_o their_o divine_n and_o all_o take_v for_o probable_a if_o countenance_v by_o one_o author_n or_o two_o repute_v to_o be_v learned_a chap._n xvi_o how_o false_o mr._n i._o s._n affirm_v that_o the_o irish_a do_v not_o suffer_v by_o the_o pope_n prohibit_v to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o remonstrance_n of_o fidelity_n propose_v to_o they_o i_o bemoan_v the_o misery_n of_o the_o irish_a prohibit_v severe_o by_o the_o pope_n to_o subscribe_v a_o remonstrance_n of_o fidelity_n propose_v to_o they_o wherein_o they_o be_v to_o disclaim_v the_o pope_n power_n of_o depose_v king_n though_o they_o shall_v suffer_v never_o so_o many_o penalty_n and_o suspicion_n for_o it_o this_o mr._n i._o s._n call_v a_o fiction_n with_o his_o ordinary_a confidence_n not_o regard_v to_o be_v open_o convict_v of_o untruth_n whether_o the_o irish_a do_v not_o undergo_v suspicion_n and_o disfavor_n for_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o say_a remonstrance_n let_v themselves_o tell_v whether_o such_o as_o subscribe_v be_v not_o persecute_v by_o
the_o pope_n and_o his_o emissary_n with_o censure_n and_o manifold_a vexation_n let_v two_o copious_a volume_n publish_v upon_o the_o subject_n declare_v the_o one_o in_o latin_a by_o richard_n charon_n the_o other_o in_o english_a by_o peter_n walsh_n large_o relate_v and_o learned_o refute_v the_o unjust_a procedure_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o emissary_n upon_o this_o subject_n i_o receive_v myself_o from_o cardinal_n rospigliosi_fw-it then_o internuncius_fw-la in_o brussels_n a_o copy_n of_o cardinal_n francis_n barberini_n his_o letter_n to_o he_o intimate_v the_o pope_n will_n and_o command_v that_o the_o irish_a shall_v not_o subscribe_v to_o the_o say_a remonstrance_n and_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o theological_a faculty_n of_o louvain_n declare_v the_o say_a remonstrance_n to_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o catholic_a religion_n and_o therefore_o unlawful_a and_o abominable_a such_o as_o no_o man_n may_v subscribe_v to_o without_o sacrilege_n and_o be_v question_v what_o part_n of_o the_o remonstrance_n merit_v so_o grave_a a_o censure_n they_o answer_v it_o be_v 19_o be_v vid._n charon_n in_o rem_fw-la hibern_n contra_fw-la lovaniens_fw-la part_n 1._o cap._n 5._o p._n 19_o the_o denial_n of_o a_o power_n in_o the_o pope_n of_o make_v war_n by_o himself_o or_o by_o other_o against_o our_o king_n for_o usurp_a the_o primacy_n due_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o retain_v unjust_o the_o land_n of_o the_o british_a church_n in_o which_o case_n say_v they_o it_o may_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o catholic_n to_o oppose_v the_o pope_n make_v war_n or_o favour_v the_o king_n usurp_v the_o pope_n right_n thus_o the_o warlike_a theologian_n of_o flanders_n do_v beat_v to_o arm_n and_o denounce_v war_n against_o opposer_n of_o their_o church_n which_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o mahomet_n must_v be_v defend_v with_o the_o sword_n when_o word_n will_v not_o do_v and_o must_v not_o all_o this_o administer_v a_o occasion_n of_o jealousy_n to_o our_o king_n all_o will_v not_o make_v mr._n i.s._n believe_v that_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o emissary_n herein_o do_v occasion_n any_o suffering_n to_o the_o irish_a it_o be_v remarkable_a what_o the_o foresay_a 15._o foresay_a charon_n supra_fw-la cap._n 4._o p._n 15._o author_n relate_v that_o cardinal_n francis_n barbarini_n be_v question_v by_o one_o of_o his_o acquaintance_n why_o the_o english_a and_o irish_a papist_n may_v not_o disclaim_v that_o doctrine_n of_o king_n depose_v power_n in_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o french_a do_v he_o answer_v it_o be_v not_o the_o fashion_n with_o the_o french_a to_o consult_v they_o of_o rome_n in_o such_o case_n but_o the_o irish_a and_o english_a consult_v they_o be_v to_o expect_v they_o will_v resolve_v in_o rome_n what_o be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o their_o pretend_a right_n i_o like_v of_o the_o cardinal_n noble_a deal_n in_o deliver_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n but_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o noble_a proceed_n of_o they_o in_o rome_n to_o aggravate_v the_o misery_n of_o the_o english_a and_o irish_a suffering_n for_o their_o sake_n let_v ovid_n tell_v at_o lupus_n &_o turpes_fw-la instant_a morientibus_fw-la vrsae_fw-la et_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la minor_fw-la nobilitate_fw-la for_o a_o est_fw-fr that_o it_o be_v for_o bear_n and_o wolf_n and_o such_o like_a ignoble_a brute_n to_o insult_v over_o those_o that_o be_v down_o and_o kill_v the_o die_a it_o behoove_v man_n to_o be_v stiff_a with_o the_o pope_n for_o if_o they_o stoop_v he_o will_v throw_v they_o quite_o down_o chap._n xvii_o the_o complaint_n of_o papist_n against_o our_o king_n for_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n he_o demand_v from_o his_o subject_n declare_v to_o be_v unjust_a mr._n i._o s._n slight_v that_o of_o the_o remonstrance_n will_v have_v i_o condole_v the_o sufferance_n of_o the_o irish_a for_o not_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n to_o the_o king_n of_o england_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o say_v to_o be_v a_o cruelty_n against_o soul_n to_o demand_v from_o they_o i_o do_v condole_v hearty_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o irish_a for_o that_o i_o mean_v their_o folly_n and_o blindness_n in_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v delude_v by_o the_o art_n of_o rome_n believe_v rebellion_n to_o be_v religion_n and_o catholic_a piety_n to_o pass_v the_o obedience_n due_a to_o their_o natural_a prince_n by_o god_n command_n to_o a_o foreigner_n that_o have_v no_o other_o right_n over_o they_o than_o what_o by_o craft_n and_o cruelty_n he_o have_v usurp_v as_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o chapter_n precede_v all_o this_o will_v be_v make_v clear_a to_o such_o as_o will_v consider_v that_o our_o prince_n pretend_v not_o to_o any_o other_o supremacy_n or_o power_n over_o their_o subject_n than_o such_o as_o the_o godly_a king_n of_o israel_n have_v in_o their_o time_n over_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o christian_a emperor_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n over_o their_o respective_a subject_n as_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o thirty_o seven_o article_n and_o seven_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o as_o indeed_o our_o prince_n do_v execute_v practise_v even_o less_o power_n in_o church_n affair_n than_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n and_o christian_a emperor_n do_v do_v but_o read_v the_o second_o of_o king_n common_o call_v the_o four_o in_o the_o 23._o chapter_n and_o see_v how_o forward_o the_o godly_a king_n josiah_n be_v in_o reform_v the_o church_n both_o clergy_n and_o laity_n read_v himself_o to_o they_o the_o book_n of_o the_o covenant_n depose_v unworthy_a priest_n and_o substitute_v lawful_a one_o the_o same_o you_o may_v see_v practise_v by_o hezekias_n in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o chronicle_n chap._n xxix_o and_o the_o text_n approve_v his_o proceed_n in_o all_o this_o particular_a say_v he_o do_v that_o which_o be_v right_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n according_a to_o all_o his_o father_n have_v do_v if_o you_o do_v but_o confer_v the_o proceed_n of_o these_o two_o good_a king_n relate_v in_o the_o forementioned_a place_n with_o the_o behaviour_n of_o our_o prince_n in_o the_o several_a convocation_n of_o their_o clergy_n and_o people_n for_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o these_o kingdom_n you_o shall_v find_v they_o not_o to_o have_v take_v so_o much_o of_o the_o work_n upon_o they_o in_o their_o own_o person_n as_o those_o king_n of_o israel_n do_v but_o commend_v to_o prelate_n and_o divine_n the_o examination_n of_o point_n belong_v to_o religion_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n hold_v themselves_o the_o sword_n and_o stern_a of_o government_n to_o keep_v peace_n at_o home_n and_o defend_v they_o from_o foreign_a enemy_n neither_o do_v our_o saviour_n diminish_v but_o rather_o confirm_v this_o supreme_a power_n of_o prince_n over_o their_o subject_n we_o have_v his_o will_n herein_o intimate_v to_o we_o by_o st._n paul_n rom._n xiii_o 1._o let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o high_a power_n where_o by_o high_a power_n st._n augustin_n and_o the_o other_o ancient_a father_n do_v understand_v the_o secular_a power_n of_o prince_n and_o the_o context_n itself_o be_v clear_a enough_o for_o that_o interpretation_n as_o salmeron_n confess_v 13._o confess_v salmer_n disp_n 4._o in_o rom._n 13._o patres_fw-la veteres_n &_o praecipuè_fw-la augustinus_n ep._n 54._o apostolum_n interpretantur_fw-la de_fw-la potestate_fw-la seculari_fw-la tantum_fw-la loqui_fw-la quod_fw-la &_o ipse_fw-la textus_fw-la subindicat_fw-la and_o that_o to_o this_o power_n not_o only_o secular_o but_o all_o sort_n of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n be_v subject_a s._n chrysostom_n fueris_fw-la chrysostom_n chrysost_n hom._n 23._o in_o rom._n etiamsi_fw-la apostolus_fw-la sis_fw-la si_fw-la evangelista_n si_fw-la propheta_fw-la sive_fw-la quis_fw-la tandem_fw-la fueris_fw-la declare_v omnibus_fw-la ista_fw-la imperantur_fw-la &_o sacerdotibus_fw-la &_o monachis_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o be_v a_o command_n say_v upon_o all_o man_n whether_o they_o be_v priest_n or_o monk_n whether_o apostle_n evangelist_n or_o prophet_n or_o whoever_o they_o be_v and_o s._n bernard_n etc._n bernard_n bernard_n ep._n 42._o ad_fw-la henric._n archiep._n senonens_fw-la siomnis_fw-la anima_fw-la &_o vestra_fw-la quis_fw-la vos_fw-la excepit_fw-la ab_fw-la vniversitate_fw-la etc._n etc._n consider_v well_o that_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o text_n do_v declare_v so_o much_o if_o every_o soul_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o high_a power_n say_v he_o write_v to_o a_o archbishop_n your_o also_o must_v be_v likewise_o subject_a who_o have_v exempt_v you_o from_o the_o general_a rule_n etc._n etc._n neither_o be_v it_o less_o certain_a by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n both_o old_a and_o christian_n and_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o father_n that_o it_o belong_v to_o prince_n to_o protect_v and_o have_v a_o eye_n over_o their_o people_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n to_o procure_v the_o integrity_n and_o reformation_n of_o it_o when_o decay_a as_o for_o the_o
old_a law_n the_o case_n propose_v above_o of_o hezekiah_n and_o josiah_n do_v assure_v we_o that_o this_o have_v be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o best_a king_n of_o those_o time_n and_o if_o you_o consult_v the_o act_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a of_o arcadius_n and_o honorius_n of_o theodosius_n the_o elder_a justinian_n charles_n the_o great_a and_o other_o the_o best_a of_o christian_a emperor_n and_o great_a supporter_n of_o the_o church_n honour_n you_o shall_v find_v they_o intervening_a frequent_o and_o moderate_v the_o great_a consultation_n touch_v religion_n and_o the_o good_a conduct_n of_o church_n affair_n it_o be_v a_o wonder_n to_o s._n augustin_n that_o any_o shall_v doubt_v it_o shall_v be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o emperor_n or_o prince_n to_o do_v so_o 9_o so_o aug._n l._n 1._o in_o epist_n contra_fw-la ep._n parm_n c._n 9_o an_fw-mi forte_fw-fr de_fw-fr religione_fw-la fas_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la dicat_fw-la imperator_fw-la vel_fw-la quos_fw-la miserit_fw-la imperator_fw-la what_o do_v it_o not_o belong_v to_o the_o emperor_n or_o to_o he_o he_o employ_v to_o deliver_v his_o opinion_n touch_v religion_n and_o elsewhere_o he_o say_v that_o to_o be_v the_o chief_a care_n and_o charge_n of_o the_o emperor_n of_o which_o he_o be_v to_o give_v account_n to_o god_n 50.162_o god_n aug._n ep._n 50.162_o ad_fw-la imperatoris_fw-la curam_fw-la de_fw-la quâ_fw-la rationem_fw-la deo_fw-la redditurus_fw-la est_fw-la res_fw-la illa_fw-la maximè_fw-la pertinebat_fw-la all_o this_o be_v so_o that_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o our_o prince_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o state_n and_o affair_n of_o this_o kingdom_n and_o the_o dut●_n of_o subject_n to_o obey_v they_o in_o all_o and_o that_o for_o conscience_n as_o s._n paul_n declare_v rom._n 13.5_o that_o you_o must_v needs_o be_v subject_a not_o only_o for_o wrath_n but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n how_o can_v i_o omit_v to_o condole_v the_o misery_n of_o my_o countryman_n and_o other_o so_o delude_v by_o the_o art_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o take_v it_o for_o a_o breach_n of_o conscience_n what_o s._n paul_n declare_v to_o be_v a_o duty_n of_o conscience_n i_o mean_v a_o acknowledgement_n of_o their_o prince_n supreme_a authority_n over_o all_o his_o subject_n and_o their_o obligation_n of_o obey_v he_o according_o especial_o when_o i_o see_v what_o s._n bernard_n see_v and_o lament_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o welfare_n of_o soul_n nor_o the_o zeal_n of_o their_o salvation_n make_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n to_o put_v this_o horror_n into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n against_o their_o dutyful_a obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o their_o prince_n non_fw-la quod_fw-la valdè_fw-la romani_fw-la curant_fw-la quo_fw-la sine_fw-la res_fw-la terminetur_fw-la sed_fw-la quia_fw-la valdè_fw-la diligunt_fw-la munera_fw-la sequuntur_fw-la retributiones_fw-la not_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o rome_n do_v regard_n much_o the_o end_n or_o purpose_n of_o controversy_n raise_v so_o they_o obtain_v their_o own_o end_n of_o increase_a their_o own_o interest_n and_o power_n i_o wish_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n with_o s._n bernard_n that_o these_o corruption_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o so_o public_a and_o know_v to_o all_o the_o world_n senonens_fw-la world_n bernard_n ep._n 42._o ad_fw-la archiep._n senonens_fw-la utinam_fw-la nobis_fw-la relinquerent_fw-la moderni_fw-la noae_n unde_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la possint_fw-la aliquatenus_fw-la operiri_fw-la nunc_fw-la vero_fw-la cernente_fw-la orb_n mundi_fw-la fabulam_fw-la soli_fw-la tacebimus_fw-la i_o wish_v these_o modern_a noah_n do_v leave_v unto_o we_o some_o possibility_n of_o cover_v their_o shame_n but_o all_o the_o world_n behold_v it_o shall_v we_o alone_o conceal_v it_o this_o be_v so_o consider_v mr._n i._n s._n how_o blind_a be_v your_o zeal_n or_o great_a your_o malice_n in_o say_v it_o shall_v be_v a_o cruelty_n in_o our_o prince_n to_o demand_v from_o their_o subject_n a_o acknowledgement_n of_o his_o supreme_a power_n over_o they_o and_o in_o they_o a_o blasphemy_n to_o acknowledge_v it_o and_o to_o make_v we_o believe_v it_o be_v so_o you_o produce_v the_o authority_n of_o calvin_n when_o i_o allege_v vasquez_n or_o suarez_n his_o doctrine_n to_o you_o if_o it_o be_v not_o to_o your_o like_n you_o tell_v i_o they_o have_v be_v mistake_v as_o well_o as_o i_o so_o much_o i_o say_v to_o you_o at_o present_a of_o calvin_n that_o if_o he_o be_v of_o your_o mind_n in_o this_o particular_a he_o be_v mistake_v and_o in_o a_o foul_a error_n as_o well_o as_o you_o calvin_n and_o luther_n have_v no_o more_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n than_o suarez_n and_o vasquez_n among_o you_o and_o i_o observe_v you_o be_v as_o singular_o impertinent_a as_o unreasonable_a wheresoever_o you_o speak_v to_o i_o of_o luther_n and_o calvin_n it_o be_v not_o their_o writing_n which_o i_o never_o see_v bring_v i_o to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n nor_o conserves_n i_o in_o it_o the_o scripture_n father_n and_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n do_v work_n both_o upon_o i_o of_o they_o you_o be_v to_o speak_v to_o i_o as_o i_o do_v to_o you_o many_o a_o thousand_o poor_a simple_a soul_n in_o these_o kingdom_n mislead_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o busy_a emissary_n do_v cry_n against_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n without_o know_v or_o examine_v what_o it_o mean_v or_o what_o be_v their_o prince_n meaning_n in_o demand_v it_o cry_v up_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n much_o like_o those_o 200._o seduce_v by_o absalon_n to_o follow_v he_o out_o of_o jerusalem_n to_o rebel_v against_o the_o king_n his_o father_n when_o they_o think_v they_o do_v service_n to_o the_o king_n and_o with_o absalon_n go_v two_o hundred_o man_n out_o of_o jerusalem_n that_o be_v call_v and_o they_o go_v in_o their_o simplicity_n and_o they_o know_v not_o any_o thing_n 2._o sam._n 15.11_o so_o it_o be_v with_o many_o seduce_v by_o the_o art_n and_o activity_n of_o rome_n to_o den●_n due_a submission_n to_o their_o lawful_a prince_n and_o give_v it_o to_o a_o foreign_a usurper_n under_o pretext_n of_o follow_v a_o pretend_a vicar_n of_o god_n to_o rebel_v against_o god_n s._n paul_n declare_v that_o whosoever_o resist_v the_o power_n resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o resist_v shall_v receive_v to_o themselves_o damnation_n a_o conclusion_n he_o do_v very_o legal_o infer_v from_o a_o verity_n he_o have_v immediate_o before_o premise_v that_o the_o power_n that_o be_v be_v ordain_v of_o god_n rom._n 13.1.2_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v in_o charity_n that_o many_o have_v the_o excuse_n of_o those_o 200._o seduce_v by_o absalon_n that_o they_o go_v in_o their_o simplicity_n and_o they_o know_v not_o any_o thing_n but_o the_o corruption_n and_o imposture_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o universal_o know_v even_o in_o s._n bernard_n time_n as_o declare_v above_o and_o much_o more_o now_o we_o may_v fear_v just_o that_o too_o many_o do_v err_v with_o knowledge_n or_o for_o want_n of_o due_a inquiry_n and_o so_o resist_v lawful_a power_n they_o may_v receive_v to_o themselves_o damnation_n of_o which_o latter_a sort_n mr._n i._n s._n may_v serious_o fear_v himself_o to_o be_v one_o if_o he_o be_v so_o conversant_a in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o both_o church_n protestant_n and_o popish_a and_o in_o that_o of_o primitive_a christianity_n as_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v this_o i_o commend_v to_o his_o mature_a consideration_n while_o i_o pursue_v he_o in_o his_o engagement_n about_o transubstantiation_n chap._n xviii_o our_o adversary_n essay_n in_o favour_n of_o transubstantiation_n examine_v his_o challenge_n for_o solve_v two_o syllogism_n answer_v mr._n i._o s._n i_o do_v general_o find_v you_o unexact_v and_o much_o unlike_o a_o scholar_n in_o your_o argument_n but_o more_o when_o you_o boast_v most_o and_o stand_v in_o defiance_n now_o you_o defy_v all_o my_o divinity_n to_o answer_v two_o syllogism_n you_o will_v have_v we_o believe_v to_o be_v of_o your_o own_o invention_n but_o a_o piece_n of_o my_o logic_n will_v make_v both_o appear_v paralogism_n unworthy_a of_o any_o answer_n no_o formal_a syllogism_n the_o first_o ground_v upon_o luke_n 22.19_o eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o run_v thus_o he_o give_v to_o they_o what_o he_o give_v for_o they_o but_o what_o he_o give_v for_o they_o be_v not_o a_o sigure_n but_o his_o real_a and_o true_a body_n therefore_o what_o he_o give_v to_o they_o be_v not_o a_o figure_n but_o his_o real_a and_o true_a body_n in_o this_o syllogism_n nothing_o be_v new_a but_o the_o form_n you_o give_v it_o and_o that_o guilty_a of_o several_a vice_n against_o the_o rule_n of_o logic._n i_o say_v nothing_o be_v new_a in_o your_o argument_n nor_o any_o sense_n or_o force_v add_v to_o it_o by_o pass_v the_o case_n from_o christ_n give_v the_o last_o supper_n to_o christ_n suffer_v upon_o the_o cross_n all_o your_o syllogism_n may_v be_v
its_o notorious_a vice_n that_o which_o take_v place_n of_o a_o minor_a have_v two_o proposition_n in_o it_o the_o jew_n in_o this_o occasion_n be_v damnable_a vnbeleiver_n and_o what_o they_o deny_v be_v a_o fleshly_a eat_n of_o his_o real_a body_n as_o papist_n do_v believe_v it_o where_o we_o see_v two_o distinct_a proposition_n the_o second_o abrupt_o intrude_v without_o any_o connexion_n or_o affinity_n with_o the_o medium_n place_v in_o the_o major_a and_o thence_o you_o pass_v to_o your_o three_o or_o rather_o four_o proposition_n bear_v by_o ergo_fw-la or_o therefore_o the_o mark_n of_o a_o conclusion_n but_o no_o more_o for_o a_o conclusion_n indeed_o aught_o to_o be_v a_o verity_n contain_v in_o the_o premise_n in_o neither_o of_o your_o premise_n be_v your_o conclusion_n contain_v nor_o in_o both_o what_o only_o seem_v to_o have_v some_o affinity_n with_o the_o conclusion_n be_v that_o second_o part_n of_o your_o minor_n that_o what_o the_o jew_n deny_v be_v a_o fleshly_a eat_n of_o his_o real_a body_n as_o the_o papist_n do_v believe_v but_o though_o this_o be_v so_o it_o be_v far_o from_o fetch_v in_o the_o conclusion_n that_o christ_n do_v sufficient_o propose_v unto_o they_o a_o fleshly_a eat_n of_o his_o real_a body_n as_o papist_n do_v believe_v it_o for_o though_o they_o deny_v a_o fleshly_a eat_n it_o be_v not_o that_o only_a what_o they_o deny_v they_o deny_v also_o a_o spiritual_a eat_n they_o deny_v a_o fleshly_a eat_n but_o impertinent_o to_o the_o proposal_n of_o christ_n they_o deny_v what_o be_v not_o demand_v of_o they_o by_o a_o mistake_n of_o his_o meaning_n which_o our_o saviour_n correct_v immediate_o by_o say_v joh._n vi_o 63._o the_o word_n he_o speak_v to_o they_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n you_o allege_v that_o i_o acknowledge_v the_o jew_n to_o have_v understand_v christ_n of_o a_o corporal_n and_o fleshly_a eat_n as_o papist_n do_v but_o you_o conceal_v fraudulent_o how_o i_o say_v and_o prove_v that_o they_o misunderstand_v he_o and_o christ_n do_v tax_v they_o with_o a_o misunderstanding_n as_o now_o mention_v where_o be_v now_o in_o all_o this_o any_o even_o probable_a ground_n for_o your_o conclusion_n which_o you_o pretend_v to_o have_v find_v out_o clear_o in_o the_o foresay_a place_n of_o st._n john_n that_o christ_n in_o that_o occasion_n do_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o they_o a_o fleshly_a eat_n of_o his_o real_a body_n as_o papist_n do_v believe_v it_o that_o only_o in_o deny_v such_o eat_n they_o be_v damnable_a unbeliever_n you_o affirm_v decretorial_o without_o give_v any_o reason_n for_o it_o that_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o quicken_v etc._n etc._n be_v not_o a_o check_n to_o the_o jew_n for_o understand_v he_o of_o a_o fleshly_a eat_n but_o to_o we_o for_o judge_v of_o this_o mystery_n by_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o by_o natural_a reason_n sir_n we_o be_v ready_a by_o the_o help_n of_o divine_a grace_n to_o captivate_v our_o seize_v and_o reason_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o faith_n in_o god_n wheresoever_o we_o find_v he_o declare_v his_o will_n to_o we_o without_o any_o further_a examen_fw-la but_o such_o captivity_n of_o our_o understanding_n we_o do_v upon_o good_a ground_n deny_v to_o your_o decree_n as_o undue_a to_o they_o in_o what_o the_o church_n of_o england_n believe_v touch_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n there_o be_v a_o large_a compass_n for_o divine_a faith_n to_o be_v exercise_v it_o be_v no_o work_n of_o nature_n by_o sense_n or_o reason_n to_o understand_v or_o believe_v so_o strange_a a_o union_n though_o spiritual_a as_o the_o gospel_n tell_v we_o and_o we_o believe_v betwixt_o christ_n and_o the_o faithful_a receiver_n of_o this_o sacrament_n such_o stream_n of_o divine_a grace_n such_o feed_n of_o soul_n to_o life_n everlasting_a to_o this_o we_o willing_o pay_v a_o captivity_n of_o our_o understanding_n because_o we_o find_v it_o clear_o declare_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n though_o never_o surpass_a so_o much_o the_o reach_n of_o our_o natural_a understanding_n from_o nicety_n touch_v the_o mode_n we_o do_v religious_o abstain_v be_v god_n be_v not_o please_v to_o declare_v it_o according_a to_o that_o grave_n and_o religious_a expression_n of_o king_n james_n quod_fw-la legit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la anglicana_n pie_n credit_n quod_fw-la non_fw-la legit_fw-la pari_fw-la pielate_fw-la non_fw-la inquirit_fw-la what_o the_o church_n of_o england_n read_v that_o it_o do_v pious_o believe_v what_o it_o do_v not_o read_v with_o equal_a piety_n omit_v to_o pry_v into_o chap._n xix_o several_a answer_n to_o my_o argument_n against_o transubstantiation_n refute_v to_o all_o my_o reason_n touch_v the_o absurdity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o repugnance_n of_o it_o with_o all_o humane_a reason_n mr._n i._o s._n give_v a_o easy_a answer_n that_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n we_o must_v renounce_v reason_n he_o shall_v first_o prove_v that_o this_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n a_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n his_o endeavour_n for_o it_o we_o have_v see_v and_o declare_v to_o be_v vain_a in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n than_o it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o their_o make_n he_o may_v not_o expect_v from_o we_o more_o subjection_n of_o our_o intellect_n than_o his_o re●son_n will_v gain_v and_o he_o confess_v reason_n do_v not_o assist_v he_o i_o take_v it_o for_o a_o confession_n that_o he_o be_v cast_v in_o the_o suit_n i_o urge_v that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o force_v man_n to_o believe_v so_o hard_a a_o doctrine_n neither_o for_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o for_o the_o verification_n of_o our_o saviour_n word_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o it_o mr._n i._o s._n confess_v the_o first_o but_o deny_v the_o second_o upon_o a_o very_a trivial_a and_o no_o less_o weak_a argument_n which_o i_o will_v show_v rather_o prove_v against_o he_o then_o for_o he_o he_o say_v that_o allow_v the_o word_n body_n be_v equivocal_a and_o indifferent_a to_o be_v take_v for_o a_o real_a or_o figurative_a body_n yet_o put_v in_o a_o proposition_n it_o be_v determine_v to_o signify_v that_o of_o which_o only_o the_o predicate_a can_v be_v verify_v but_o only_o of_o christ_n real_a body_n can_v it_o be_v verify_v that_o it_o be_v give_v for_o we_o therefore_o this_o proposition_n this_n be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o christ_n real_a body_n here_o we_o have_v one_o proposition_n make_v of_o two_o and_o the_o predicate_v of_o the_o former_a make_v the_o subject_a of_o the_o latter_a to_o frame_v a_o design_a fallacy_n the_o former_a proposition_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a subject_n of_o our_o debate_n be_v this_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la this_o be_v my_o bod._n the_o subject_a of_o this_o proposition_n be_v the_o bread_n christ_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n and_o give_v his_o disciple_n to_o eat_v the_o predicate_v be_v our_o saviour_n body_n and_o the_o question_n be_v how_o to_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o the_o predicate_v so_o as_o they_o may_v be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o subject_a the_o word_n of_o the_o predicate_v be_v indifferent_a to_o be_v take_v for_o a_o real_a or_o figurative_a body_n and_o to_o be_v determine_v according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o subject_a that_o so_o the_o identity_n of_o both_o requisite_a for_o a_o true_a proposition_n may_v be_v see_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n above_o mention_v by_o mr._n i.s._n all_o which_o prove_v that_o the_o word_n body_n be_v to_o be_v take_v rather_o in_o a_o figurative_a sense_n then_o in_o a_o real_a otherwise_o it_o can_v not_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o subject_a which_o be_v bread_n real_a and_o visible_a and_o call_v such_o before_o and_o after_o consecration_n both_o by_o christ_n and_o st._n paul_n now_o take_v notice_n reader_n of_o the_o egregious_a fallacy_n of_o our_o adversary_n the_o foresay_a complex_fw-la proposition_n he_o assume_v to_o work_v upon_o this_n be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o be_v compose_v of_o two_o proposition_n the_o one_o be_v hat_n now_o declare_v relate_v to_o what_o christ_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n this_n be_v my_o body_n the_o other_o relate_v to_o christ_n body_n of_o which_o as_o subject_a of_o the_o second_o proposition_n another_o predicate_a be_v affirm_v that_o it_o be_v give_v for_o we_o upon_o the_o cross_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o mr._n i._o s._n to_o do_v his_o own_o work_n confound_v these_o two_o proposition_n and_o make_v the_o predicate_a of_o the_o former_a proposition_n a_o subject_a to_o the_o latter_a and_o instead_o of_o fit_v the_o say_v predicate_v of_o the_o former_a proposition_n to_o the_o subject_a of_o it_o as_o he_o shall_v do_v be_v to_o speak_v to_o
the_o word_n substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v mean_v the_o accident_n or_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o do_v remain_v and_o be_v to_o we_o the_o mean_n of_o know_v the_o substance_n and_o may_v not_o be_v call_v proper_o accident_n in_o this_o case_n because_o there_o be_v no_o substance_n leave_v for_o they_o to_o rest_v upon_o as_o the_o nature_n and_o common_a notion_n of_o a_o accident_n do_v require_v and_o have_v deliver_v this_o most_o strange_a and_o never_o hear_v of_o complication_n of_o contradictory_n expression_n to_o make_v of_o accident_n a_o substance_n and_o with_o all_o no_o substance_n of_o bread_n to_o remain_v he_o sound_v loud_o a_o triumph_n over_o his_o adversary_n that_o he_o have_v whip_v they_o like_o boy_n with_o their_o own_o arm_n and_o although_o it_o be_v allow_v gratis_o that_o the_o foresay_a testimony_n shall_v be_v of_o pope_n gelasius_n yet_o it_o serve_v nothing_o to_o their_o purpose_n i_o can_v enlarge_v more_o upon_o the_o absurdity_n of_o baronius_n his_o discourse_n upon_o that_o subject_n and_o the_o injury_n he_o do_v to_o gelasius_n in_o father_v upon_o he_o so_o ridiculous_a a_o paradox_n but_o i_o think_v sufficient_a for_o the_o present_a to_o let_v the_o reader_n see_v how_o solid_a and_o serious_a i_o shall_v say_v how_o childish_a and_o ridiculous_a even_o great_a man_n appear_v when_o engage_v in_o a_o bad_a cause_n i_o be_o apt_a to_o think_v that_o some_o will_v hardly_o believe_v so_o great_a a_o man_n as_o cardinal_n baronius_n shall_v deliver_v so_o eminent_a nonsense_n as_o we_o have_v now_o relate_v read_v he_o in_o his_o five_o tome_n of_o his_o annal_n an._n dom._n 406._o gelasii_fw-la papae_fw-la a_o 5._o from_o the_o first_o number_n to_o the_o twenty_o and_o conclude_v reader_n from_o this_o passage_n what_o little_a hope_n we_o may_v have_v of_o peace_n and_o end_n of_o controversy_n among_o christian_n by_o allow_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v infallible_a when_o the_o most_o clear_a and_o plain_a word_n of_o a_o pope_n be_v subject_a to_o a_o interpretation_n of_o they_o so_o cross_v and_o diametrical_o opposite_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o they_o according_a to_o common_a use_n as_o to_o understand_v scripture_n a_o pope_n declaration_n be_v pretend_v to_o be_v necessary_a so_o to_o understand_v each_o pope_n his_o declaration_n another_o infallible_a judge_n be_v to_o be_v look_v after_o without_o end_n chap._n xx._n ancient_a schoolman_n declare_v transubstantiation_n can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n before_o the_o lateran_n council_n mr._n i._o s._n his_o great_a boast_n of_o find_v in_o my_o check_n to_o their_o worship_n of_o the_o host_n a_o prejudice_n to_o the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n declare_v to_o be_v void_a of_o sense_n and_o ground_n mr._n i._o s._n with_o his_o usual_a confidence_n say_v it_o be_v most_o false_a what_o i_o impute_v to_o scotus_n ocham_n cajetan_n and_o other_o schoolman_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n nor_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n before_o the_o lateran_n council_n he_o allow_v cajetan_n be_v of_o that_o opinion_n and_o be_v censored_a for_o it_o he_o err_v therein_o say_v he_o and_o what_o then_o but_o he_o deny_v resolute_o that_o scotus_n shall_v be_v of_o such_o a_o opinion_n then_o bellarmin_n do_v he_o a_o injur_n in_o relate_v the_o contrary_a of_o he_o in_o these_o word_n one_o thing_n say_v he_o scotus_n add_v which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v approve_v that_o before_o the_o lateran_n council_n transustantiation_n be_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o a_o little_a before_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o scotus_n say_v there_o be_v no_o place_n in_o scripture_n that_o prove_v clear_o transubstantiation_n to_o be_v admit_v if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o intervene_v where_o bellarmin_n add_v scotus_n his_o say_n not_o to_o be_v improbable_a for_o though_o the_o scripture_n himself_o allege_v may_v seem_v clear_a to_o the_o purpose_n yet_o even_o that_o transidistantia●●enem_fw-la that_o vnum_fw-la taeman_n addit_fw-la scotus_n qu●d_fw-la minimè_fw-la probandum_fw-la est_fw-la ante●ateranense_fw-fr ●ateranense_z consilium_fw-la non_fw-la fuisse_fw-la dogina_fw-la fides_n transidistantia●●enem_fw-la may_v be_v doubt_v whereas_o most_o learned_a and_o acute_a man_n such_o as_o scotus_n chief_o be_v do_v hold_v the_o contrary_n these_o be_v the_o express_a word_n of_o bellarmin_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-fr euchar._n c._n 23._o here_o you_o have_v bellarmin_n declare_v clear_o against_o mr._n i._n s._n that_o scotus_n say_v that_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n before_o the_o lateran_n council_n and_o that_o both_o scotus_n and_o other_o most_o learned_a and_o acute_a man_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o clear_o contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o true_o though_o i_o have_v not_o see_v scotus_n his_o writing_n upon_o the_o point_n i_o be_o apt_a to_o believe_v that_o mr._n i._o s._n shall_v be_v mistake_v rather_o than_o bellarmin_n but_o i_o have_v read_v over_o scotus_n his_o discourse_n upon_o this_o subject_n not_o only_o in_o the_o print_a edition_n but_o in_o the_o ancient_a ms._n keep_v in_o merton_n coll._n in_o oxon._n whereof_o he_o be_v a_o fellow_n with_o no_o small_a admiration_n and_o compassion_n to_o see_v so_o noble_a and_o excellent_a a_o wit_n force_v to_o opine_n or_o seem_v to_o opine_n against_o his_o proper_a sentiment_n as_o he_o do_v protest_v himself_o to_o do_v to_o comply_v with_o pope_n innocent_a and_o the_o lateran_n council_n have_v state_v the_o question_n of_o transubstantiation_n relate_v the_o opinion_n of_o aquinas_n and_o other_o for_o it_o and_o confute_v most_o vigorous_o their_o argument_n out_o of_o scripture_n and_o reason_n for_o it_o as_o not_o convince_a at_o last_o yield_v to_o the_o opinion_n of_o innocent_a in_o these_o word_n teneo_fw-la igitur_fw-la istam_fw-la opinionem_fw-la ibi_fw-la positam_fw-la ab_fw-la innocentio_n quod_fw-la substantia_fw-la panis_fw-la non_fw-la maneat_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la transubstantiatur_fw-la in_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la non_fw-la propter_fw-la rationes_fw-la praedictas_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la cogunt_fw-la for_o which_o opinion_n to_o say_v something_o be_v force_v to_o follow_v it_o he_o allege_v two_o convenience_n the_o first_o that_o if_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n do_v remain_v under_o the_o accident_n of_o it_o a_o man_n take_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n under_o such_o accident_n will_v not_o be_v fast_v and_o so_o may_v not_o celebrate_v twice_o in_o one_o day_n which_o be_v against_o that_o canon_n de_fw-mi consecrat_fw-mi distinct_a primâ_fw-la in_o nocte_fw-la the_o second_o conveniency_n be_v that_o the_o church_n pray_v as_o appear_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n may_v be_v make_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n but_o pray_v not_o for_o a_o thing_n impossible_a therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v say_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n cease_v to_o be_v there_o and_o be_v convert_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n whoever_o know_v the_o subtlety_n and_o exactness_n of_o scotus_n his_o reason_n may_v easy_o perceive_v that_o he_o speak_v against_o his_o own_o sentiment_n when_o he_o allege_v such_o weak_a argument_n as_o those_o two_o now_o mention_v and_o so_o not_o to_o forfeit_v the_o credit_n of_o his_o subtlety_n turn_v to_o protest_v with_o his_o accustom_a ingenuity_n that_o he_o follow_v this_o opinion_n only_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n conclude_v thus_o &_o hoc_fw-la principaliter_fw-la teneo_fw-la propter_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o the_o same_o his_o scholiast_n declare_v of_o he_o upon_o the_o foresay_a word_n say_v tenet_n doctor_n tertiam_fw-la sententiam_fw-la nempè_fw-la panem_fw-la converti_fw-la in_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la quia_fw-la sic_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la tenet_fw-la 1639._o tenet_fw-la edit_fw-la lugdun_fw-la a_o 1639._o vid._n scot._n in_o 4._o do_v 10._o q._n 3._o scotus_n hold_v the_o bread_n to_o be_v convert_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o the_o church_n declare_v it_o so_o in_o the_o lateran_n council_n not_o for_o any_o authority_n of_o scripture_n or_o reason_n which_o can_v move_v he_o to_o it_o the_o same_o i_o may_v easy_o prove_v of_o other_o learned_a schoolman_n by_o this_o you_o may_v see_v mr._n i._n s._n his_o rashness_n in_o say_v i_o do_v most_o false_o impose_v upon_o scotus_n what_o both_o bellarmin_n and_o himself_o declare_v to_o be_v his_o proper_a opinion_n of_o the_o same_o opinion_n with_o scotus_n be_v durandus_fw-la in_o 4._o sent._n do_v 11._o q._n 1._o sect_n propter_fw-la 3._o where_o he_o declare_v that_o the_o opinion_n affirm_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n to_o remain_v after_o consecration_n be_v more_o convenient_a to_o obviate_v
difficulty_n render_v the_o mystery_n more_o hard_a to_o be_v believe_v but_o that_o the_o contrary_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v for_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n cajetan_n say_v that_o only_o the_o say_a declaration_n can_v make_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n allege_v for_o transubstantiation_n appear_v convince_a to_o that_o purpose_n and_o suarez_n tell_v we_o his_o say_n be_v command_v by_o pope_n pius_n the_o v._o to_o be_v expunge_v a_o old_a copy_n of_o ocham_n i_o find_v in_o dublin_n library_n be_v more_o fortunate_a in_o escape_v their_o blur_n in_o his_o 5_o quodlibet_fw-la q._n 30._o he_o relate_v three_o opinion_n touch_v the_o bread_n in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o first_o say_n that_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v before_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n after_o consecration_n of_o which_o opinion_n he_o deliver_v this_o censure_n prima_fw-la est_fw-la irrationalis_fw-la that_o it_o be_v a_o unreasonable_a opinion_n the_o second_o opinion_n say_v he_o be_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n cease_v to_o be_v and_o only_o the_o accident_n do_v remain_v and_o under_o they_o begin_v to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n of_o this_o opinion_n he_o say_v est_fw-la communis_fw-la opinio_fw-la quam_fw-la ten●o_fw-la propter_fw-la determinationem_fw-la ecclcsiae_fw-la &_o non_fw-fr prope_a aliam_fw-la rationem_fw-la that_o to_o this_o opinion_n he_o consem_v for_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n in_o favour_n of_o it_o and_o not_o for_o any_o reason_n assist_v it_o the_o three_o opinion_n relate_v by_o he_o be_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v after_o consecration_n and_o of_o this_o he_o say_v tertia_fw-la opinio_fw-la esset_fw-la multum_fw-la rationabilis_fw-la nisi_fw-la esset_fw-la determinatio_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la in_o contrarium_fw-la that_o this_o opinion_n be_v very_o rational_a if_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o it_o so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o any_o reason_n nor_o any_o ground_n they_o see_v for_o it_o in_o scripture_n make_v these_o and_o many_o other_o very_o learned_a man_n consent_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n but_o only_o a_o blind_a obedience_n to_o innocent_n decree_v in_o the_o lateran_n council_n bellarmin_n wish_v we_o shall_v all_o have_v this_o submission_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o i_o wish_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n that_o both_o we_o and_o he_o and_o his_o party_n and_o all_o christian_n shall_v have_v due_a submission_n to_o the_o church_n true_o catholic_n primitive_a and_o apostolic_a declare_v to_o we_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o universal_a tradition_n in_o which_o fountain_n of_o truth_n neither_o transubstantiation_n will_v be_v find_v nor_o any_o of_o their_o error_n which_o i_o point_v out_o for_o motive_n of_o my_o forsake_v their_o communion_n neither_o be_v i_o s._n more_o fortunate_a in_o his_o attemt_fw-mi of_o put_v a_o terror_n upon_o i_o as_o if_o i_o have_v shock_a the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o say_v its_o rashness_n to_o give_v divine_a adoration_n to_o a_o wafer_n wherein_o they_o can_v be_v sure_a christ_n to_o be_v present_a this_o depend_v according_a to_o their_o own_o principle_n upon_o the_o priest_n intention_n to_o consecrate_v his_o due_a ordination_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n that_o give_v he_o order_n his_o intention_n and_o due_a ordination_n and_o so_o upward_o of_o endless_a requisite_n impossible_a to_o be_v certain_o know_v and_o what_o have_v all_o this_o to_o do_v with_o shock_v the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o the_o church_n of_o england_n when_o i_o see_v the_o man_n begin_v with_o so_o great_a a_o clap_n and_o sound_v already_o a_o triumph_n i_o expect_v the_o story_n of_o the_o nagshead_n or_o some_o other_o of_o their_o old_a engine_n against_o the_o legality_n of_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n shall_v come_v down_o but_o all_o he_o bring_v be_v that_o we_o do_v also_o allow_v some_o thing_n to_o be_v essential_o requisite_a for_o the_o validity_n of_o a_o sacrament_n the_o defect_n of_o which_o nullify_v the_o sacrament_n as_o for_o baptism_n water_n be_v requisite_a and_o the_o form_n of_o word_n i_o baptize_v you_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o minister_n may_v vitiate_v this_o form_n and_o utter_v somewhat_o in_o lieu_n of_o it_o or_o omit_v some_o word_n of_o it_o or_o add_v some_o other_o that_o will_v destroy_v the_o form_n the_o same_o may_v happen_v in_o the_o ordination_n of_o a_o minister_n or_o bishop_n and_o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n that_o no_o error_n of_o these_o shall_v have_v happen_v in_o any_o one_o of_o the_o whole_a train_n of_o our_o ordainer_n and_o if_o it_o be_v want_v in_o any_o all_o the_o ordination_n derive_v from_o he_o be_v null_a therefore_o we_o can_v have_v no_o assurance_n of_o our_o hierarchy_n i_o leave_v the_o judicious_a reader_n to_o see_v what_o singular_a exploit_n this_o man_n have_v do_v herein_o against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n his_o reason_n allege_v of_o doubt_v the_o legality_n of_o its_o minister_n do_v prove_v so_o much_o for_o render_v doubtful_a the_o legality_n of_o the_o roman_a clergy_n by_o his_o own_o confession_n but_o much_o more_o for_o what_o i_o be_o to_o add_v first_o that_o we_o do_v not_o make_v the_o effect_n of_o sacrament_n to_o depend_v so_o much_o upon_o the_o intention_n and_o quality_n of_o the_o minister_n as_o papist_n do_v we_o entertain_v a_o better_a opinion_n of_o god_n goodness_n that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v pious_a soul_n lose_v the_o fruit_n of_o their_o sincere_a endeavour_n and_o will_v supply_v to_o that_o effect_n the_o defect_n of_o the_o minister_n second_o that_o their_o practice_n of_o mutter_v the_o word_n in_o a_o language_n unknown_a to_o the_o people_n and_o in_o a_o voice_n not_o audible_a especial_o in_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v more_o subject_a to_o error_n and_o fraud_n than_o the_o way_n of_o our_o church_n where_o the_o minister_n be_v to_o pronounce_v loud_o and_o intelligible_o the_o word_n of_o the_o form_n but_o chief_o touch_v the_o subject_n of_o our_o present_a discourse_n from_o which_o our_o adversary_n seem_v willing_a to_o divert_v i_o mean_v the_o use_n and_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n who_o run_v more_o hazard_v the_o papist_n or_o we_o in_o case_n a_o defect_n shall_v happen_v touch_v the_o consecration_n we_o enjoy_v the_o fruit_n of_o a_o spiritual_a communion_n and_o be_v not_o at_o the_o loss_n that_o papist_n be_v in_o the_o like_a case_n who_o make_v the_o main_a fruit_n depend_v upon_o the_o real_a and_o corporal_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o host_n we_o run_v no_o danger_n of_o idolatry_n material_a or_o formal_a give_v the_o worship_n of_o divinity_n to_o a_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o god_n as_o papist_n do_v give_v that_o kind_n of_o worship_n to_o any_o host_n repute_v to_o be_v due_o consecrate_v which_o if_o it_o happen_v not_o to_o be_v so_o indeed_o their_o act_n of_o worship_n be_v at_o least_o a_o material_a idolatry_n in_o their_o own_o confession_n and_o to_o expose_v themselves_o to_o a_o know_a danger_n of_o commit_v such_o kind_n of_o idolatry_n can_v choose_v but_o be_v criminal_a as_o it_o be_v general_o repute_v to_o be_v a_o sin_n for_o one_o to_o expose_v himself_o to_o a_o danger_n of_o commit_v a_o sin_n the_o parity_n of_o one_o honour_v his_o father_n not_o know_v certain_o he_o to_o be_v his_o true_a father_n be_v impertinent_a and_o undecent_a a_o bad_a opinion_n he_o must_v have_v of_o his_o mother_n who_o doubt_v his_o repute_a father_n to_o be_v such_o in_o truth_n but_o what_o if_o he_o be_v in_o a_o material_a error_n it_o be_v not_o a_o sin_n but_o a_o duty_n to_o pay_v respect_n unto_o he_o that_o adopt_v or_o own_v he_o for_o a_o son_n i_o will_v conclude_v this_o matter_n with_o let_v mr._n i._o s._n see_v his_o rashness_n in_o pretend_v i_o be_v rash_a in_o say_v its_o intolerable_a boldness_n in_o some_o of_o his_o fellow_n to_o say_v there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n for_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n as_o for_o adore_v christ_n divinity_n and_o he_o pretend_v i_o shall_v seem_v thereby_o not_o to_o understand_v their_o doctrine_n sir_n i_o be_o not_o to_o enter_v with_o you_o in_o comparison_n which_o of_o we_o understand_v better_a the_o doctrine_n of_o both_o church_n what_o i_o see_v evident_o be_v that_o either_o you_o do_v ignorant_o misunderstand_v or_o malicious_o misrepresent_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n that_o want_v a_o answer_n to_o my_o argument_n in_o their_o proper_a term_n you_o may_v fashion_v they_o so_o as_o your_o impertinent_a discourse_n may_v seem_v to_o strike_v at_o something_o which_o be_v proper_o hostem_fw-la tibi_fw-la
earth_n but_o as_o you_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v will_v you_o lay_v aside_o prejudices_fw-la and_o subtlety_n a_o while_n and_o speak_v once_o sincere_o what_o it_o it_o that_o make_v you_o so_o eager_a for_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n be_v it_o any_o divine_a precept_n that_o move_v or_o force_n to_o it_o we_o never_o hear_v you_o talk_v of_o any_o such_o precept_n and_o there_o be_v at_o least_o a_o very_a probable_a assurance_n of_o a_o precept_n of_o god_n extant_a prohibit_v under_o terrible_a penalty_n such_o a_o worship_n there_o be_v moreover_o a_o certain_a danger_n of_o occasion_v in_o the_o rude_a sort_n a_o downright_a gross_a idolatry_n by_o a_o absolute_a direct_a worship_n of_o the_o image_n you_o set_v up_o to_o be_v worship_v without_o those_o distinction_n and_o precision_n wherewith_o you_o pretend_v to_o justify_v your_o practice_n of_o which_o ludovicus_n vives_z give_v this_o testimony_n ultimo_fw-la testimony_n vives_z in_o comm._n ad_fw-la august_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la i._n 8._o c._n ultimo_fw-la divos_fw-la divasque_fw-la non_fw-la alitèr_fw-la venerantur_fw-la quam_fw-la deum_fw-la ipsum_fw-la nec_fw-la video_fw-la in_o multis_fw-la quod_fw-la discrimen_fw-la sit_fw-la inter_fw-la eorum_fw-la opinionem_fw-la de_fw-la sanctis_fw-la &_o id_fw-la quod_fw-la gentiles_n pu_fw-fr tabant_fw-la de_fw-fr diis_fw-la suis_fw-la they_o worship_v holy_a man_n and_o woman_n not_o otherwise_o than_o god_n himself_o neither_o do_v i_o see_v in_o many_o thing_n wherein_o their_o opinion_n touch_v saint_n differ_v from_o that_o of_o pagan_n concern_v their_o go_n polydore_n virgil_n speak_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o these_o word_n multi_fw-la su●t_z saltem_fw-la rudiores_fw-la qui_fw-la ligneas_fw-la saxeas_fw-la marmoreas_fw-la aeneas_fw-la item_n in_o parietibus_fw-la pictas_fw-la imagine_v colunt_fw-la non_fw-la ut_fw-la figuras_fw-la sed_fw-la perinde_n quasi_fw-la ipsae_fw-la sensum_fw-la aliquem_fw-la habeant_fw-la quique_fw-la eye_n magis_fw-la fidunt_fw-la quam_fw-la christo_fw-la ipsi_fw-la aut_fw-la aliis_fw-la divis_n quibus_fw-la dicati_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v many_o who_o worship_v image_n of_o stock_n stone_n brass_n or_o paint_v on_o wall_n not_o as_o figure_n but_o even_o as_o if_o they_o have_v some_o sense_n in_o they_o and_o who_o put_v more_o trust_n in_o they_o then_o in_o christ_n himself_o or_o in_o the_o saint_n to_o who_o they_o be_v dedicate_v this_o be_v so_o what_o prudence_n can_v it_o be_v to_o expose_v your_o own_o salvation_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o other_o unto_o a_o certain_a danger_n by_o practise_v a_o worship_n at_o least_o very_o probable_o prohibit_v by_o god_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n this_o be_v the_o unhappy_a condition_n you_o be_v in_o and_o our_o great_a advantage_n of_o you_o in_o our_o debate_n that_o if_o you_o be_v in_o a_o error_n as_o very_o probable_o you_o seem_v to_o be_v you_o be_v liable_a to_o damnation_n not_o so_o we_o though_o you_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o right_n for_o on_o our_o part_n there_o be_v no_o transgression_n of_o any_o divine_a precept_n &_o consequent_o no_o fear_n of_o damnation_n in_o not_o worship_v a_o image_n in_o the_o same_o case_n you_o be_v in_o your_o worship_n of_o the_o eucharist_n if_o christ_n be_v not_o there_o after_o the_o manner_n you_o pretend_v you_o be_v damnable_a idolater_n as_o many_o of_o your_o own_o author_n do_v and_o any_o that_o be_v rational_a must_v needs_o confess_v but_o on_o whatsoever_o side_n the_o truth_n be_v in_o that_o controversy_n our_o practice_n be_v free_a from_o danger_n of_o sin_v by_o not_o pay_v the_o worship_n of_o latria_n to_o the_o eucharist_n whereas_o no_o precept_n of_o god_n force_v we_o to_o give_v it_o such_o worship_n this_o with_o the_o like_a advantage_n which_o we_o have_v of_o you_o in_o all_o other_o point_v controvert_v make_v i_o choose_v the_o way_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o sure_a to_o salvation_n than_o you_o what_o profit_n do_v you_o expect_v by_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n i_o understand_v what_o profit_n may_v be_v in_o the_o use_n of_o devout_a image_n if_o separate_v from_o the_o worship_n that_o they_o may_v be_v a_o book_n to_o the_o rude_a sort_n for_o raise_v their_o mind_n unto_o heavenly_a thing_n but_o this_o benefit_n be_v not_o so_o great_a nor_o the_o hope_n of_o get_v heaven_n this_o way_n so_o warrantable_a as_o the_o danger_n of_o lose_v it_o by_o unlawful_a worship_n as_o imminent_a while_o the_o use_n of_o image_n be_v harmless_a and_o beneficial_a it_o be_v just_o retain_v it_o be_v insolence_n in_o a_o member_n of_o any_o church_n or_o congregation_n to_o oppose_v a_o custom_n or_o use_v introduce_v in_o it_o while_o indifferent_a and_o not_o opposite_a to_o a_o high_a law_n but_o if_o that_o use_n do_v run_v to_o a_o abuse_n and_o transgression_n of_o god_n commandment_n than_o it_o be_v to_o be_v reform_v or_o reject_v this_o be_v what_o happen_v in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n as_o before_o relate_v and_o this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n with_o image_n while_n and_o where_o pious_a and_o innocent_a use_n be_v make_v of_o they_o they_o permit_v they_o and_o so_o they_o do_v yet_o but_o when_o they_o see_v the_o abuse_n of_o unlawful_a worship_n give_v to_o they_o they_o remove_v they_o from_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o vulgar_a apt_a to_o commit_v those_o abuse_n in_o place_n of_o worship_n now_o we_o have_v see_v how_o far_o this_o kind_n of_o abuse_n have_v grow_v with_o your_o people_n both_o learned_a and_o vulgar_a as_o for_o the_o latter_a reflect_v upon_o what_o we_o have_v relate_v out_o of_o vives_z and_o polydor._n add_v to_o it_o the_o testimony_n of_o george_n cassander_n a_o man_n renown_v for_o his_o calm_a and_o even_a temper_n as_o well_o as_o for_o his_o learning_n and_o who_o by_o both_o may_v have_v contribute_v to_o the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o christian_a church_n if_o the_o unflexible_a pride_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n will_v suffer_v any_o limit_n to_o be_v put_v to_o its_o ambition_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n he_o speak_v thus_o manifestius_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la ut_fw-la multis_fw-la verbis_fw-la explicari_fw-la d●be●t_fw-la imaginum_fw-la &_o simulachrorum_fw-la cultum_fw-la multum_fw-la invaluisse_fw-la &_o affectioni_fw-la seu_fw-la potius_fw-la superstitioni_fw-la populi_fw-la plus_fw-la satis_fw-la indultum_fw-la esse_fw-la ita_fw-la ut_fw-la ad_fw-la summam_fw-la adorationem_fw-la quae_fw-la vel_fw-la à_fw-la paganis_fw-la suis_fw-la simulachris_n exhiberi_fw-la consuevit_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v more_o clear_a than_o need_v imagine_v need_v cassander_n consult_v art_n 21._o cap._n de_fw-fr imagine_v many_o word_n to_o declare_v it_o that_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o statue_n be_v go_v too_o far_o and_o too_o much_o liberty_n give_v to_o the_o devotion_n or_o rather_o superstition_n of_o the_o people_n so_o as_o it_o come_v to_o the_o very_a height_n of_o worship_n which_o even_o pagan_n do_v give_v to_o their_o idol_n and_o true_o it_o be_v a_o deplorable_a thing_n what_o hierom_n l_o lamas_n etc._n lamas_n hierom._n i._n lam._n sum._n p._n 3._o c._n 3._o et_fw-la adeo_fw-la gens_fw-la affecta_fw-la est_fw-la truneis_fw-la 〈…〉_o desa_fw-es 〈◊〉_d imaginibu●_n ut_fw-la i_o testae_fw-la quoties_fw-la episcopi_fw-la decenti_fw-la res_fw-la pon●●●_n jubent_fw-la vereres_fw-la saa_v petent_fw-la ●●rantes_n etc._n etc._n as_o a_o eye-witness_n of_o it_o relate_v to_o have_v happen_v among_o the_o people_n of_o asturias_n cantabria_n and_o gallicia_n no_o small_a province_n of_o spain_n viz._n that_o they_o be_v so_o addict_v to_o their_o worm_n ea●en_o and_o deform_a image_n that_o when_o the_o bishop_n command_v new_a and_o handsome_a image_n to_o be_v set_v up_o in_o their_o room_n the_o poor_a people_n cry_v for_o their_o old_a will_v not_o look_v up_o to_o their_o new_a as_o if_o they_o do_v not_o represent_v the_o same_o thing_n or_o real_o as_o we_o may_v probable_o guess_v of_o their_o blindness_n that_o they_o do_v conceive_v some_o peculiar_a numen_fw-la or_o divine_a virtue_n to_o dwell_v in_o those_o old_a stump_n of_o their_o former_a acquaintance_n which_o the_o do_v not_o expect_v to_o find_v in_o those_o new_a and_o neat_a image_n and_o thus_o go_v the_o matter_n with_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n of_o the_o people_n but_o in_o my_o opinion_n it_o go_v even_o far_o worse_o with_o the_o more_o learned_a of_o you_o and_o certain_o such_o be_v aquinas_n alexander_n alensis_n bonaventure_n albertus_n ●●agaus_fw-la c●jetan_n capreolus_n and_o other_o quote_v by_o recepta_fw-la by_o azor._fw-la tom_n 1._o inst_z moral_a c._n 6._o sect._n 2._o hac_fw-la sententia_fw-la est_fw-la communi_fw-la theologorum_fw-la censensu_fw-la recepta_fw-la a●orius_n where_o he_o say_v it_o to_o be_v the_o opinion_n receive_v by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o divine_n tha●_n the_o image_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v with_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_n even_o the_o very_a same_o
have_v we_o say_v that_o your_o church_n make_v choice_n of_o that_o text_n beyond_o other_o to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o anniversary_n mass_n of_o soul_n because_o in_o it_o be_v make_v mention_n of_o a_o weighty_a sum_n of_o money_n to_o be_v give_v for_o the_o dead_a and_o with_o offering_n of_o this_o kind_a your_o clergy_n be_v much_o please_v and_o so_o do_v strike_v on_o that_o string_n too_o much_o in_o their_o funeral_n sermon_n exhort_v to_o money_n offering_n for_o the_o dead_a to_z the_o no_o small_a offence_n and_o heavy_a censure_n of_o such_o of_o your_o people_n as_o dare_v speak_v their_o sense_n by_o what_o i_o see_v of_o your_o temper_n i_o be_o sure_a you_o will_v say_v so_o if_o you_o be_v in_o my_o place_n and_o case_n and_o while_o you_o make_v your_o atonement_n with_o your_o church_n for_o undervalue_v her_o judgement_n in_o the_o preference_n of_o that_o text_n forbear_v at_o last_o tergiversation_n and_o stand_v to_o a_o trial_n of_o the_o pertinency_n of_o the_o say_a text_n repute_v for_o chief_a to_o prove_v the_o existence_n of_o purgatory_n i_o say_v that_o though_o the_o book_n relate_v the_o foresay_a case_n be_v canonical_a and_o of_o certain_a authority_n which_o be_v not_o allow_v yet_o it_o be_v no_o conclude_a argument_n to_o prove_v the_o existence_n of_o purgatory_n since_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a may_v be_v make_v and_o be_v make_v to_o different_a purpose_n then_o that_o of_o draw_v they_o out_o of_o purgatory_n and_o if_o that_o be_v so_o it_o be_v not_o a_o good_a consequence_n judas_n maccabeus_n order_v prayer_n to_o be_v make_v for_o his_o soldier_n defunct_a therefore_o it_o be_v to_o draw_v they_o out_o of_o purgatory_n that_o prayer_n may_v be_v make_v for_o the_o dead_a to_o a_o different_a purpose_n then_o to_o draw_v they_o out_o of_o purgatory_n i_o prove_v first_o out_o of_o a_o doctrine_n receive_v among_o romish_a doctor_n that_o god_n be_v present_a to_o all_o the_o space_n of_o eternity_n may_v see_v now_o and_o listen_v to_o prayer_n that_o will_v be_v make_v in_o any_o age_n after_o and_o foreseeing_a that_o godly_a person_n shall_v pray_v in_o the_o future_a for_o the_o assistance_n of_o his_o grace_n to_o one_o die_v now_o may_v yield_v it_o according_o if_o this_o go_v well_o say_v i_o prayer_n may_v be_v commendable_a and_o very_a important_a for_o the_o dead_a though_o no_o purgatory_n be_v in_o nature_n be_v conducent_a to_o a_o great_a emolument_fw-fr of_o die_v penitent_o and_o thereby_o escape_v the_o everlasting_a fire_n of_o hell_n i_o have_v add_v that_o if_o the_o case_n relate_v of_o maccabeus_n be_v true_a it_o be_v more_o likely_a the_o prayer_n make_v for_o the_o slay_v shall_v have_v proceed_v in_o the_o manner_n aforesaid_a then_o for_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o purgatory_n since_o in_o the_o same_o place_n be_v relate_v that_o those_o man_n be_v find_v to_o have_v commit_v a_o mortal_a sin_n which_o be_v not_o pretend_v to_o be_v pardon_v in_o purgatory_n under_o the_o coat_n of_o every_o one_o that_o be_v slay_v say_v the_o text_n maccab._n xii_o 42._o they_o find_v thing_n consecrate_v to_o the_o idol_n of_o the_o jamnite_n which_o be_v forbid_v to_o the_o jew_n by_o the_o law_n and_o the_o follow_v context_n declare_v that_o sin_n to_o have_v be_v heinous_a for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o draw_v upon_o they_o god_n vengeance_n say_v that_o every_o man_n see_v that_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n wherefore_o they_o be_v slay_v mr._n i._o s._n be_v please_v to_o approve_v of_o that_o subtlety_n of_o schoolman_n allege_v for_o ground_n of_o this_o reply_n that_o prayer_n in_o the_o future_a may_v avail_v soul_n die_v before_o to_o obtain_v a_o good_a death_n the_o only_a thing_n i_o do_v suspect_v may_v not_o meet_v with_o general_a applause_n and_o which_o indeed_o if_o certain_a and_o according_o apprehend_v and_o believe_v by_o man_n will_v make_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a to_o appear_v more_o useful_a and_o important_a then_o ever_o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n can_v make_v they_o yet_o appear_v to_o serious_a judgement_n but_o my_o good_a antagonist_n allow_v the_o same_o doctrine_n to_o be_v very_o good_a tell_v i_o it_o be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n none_o be_v more_o apt_a to_o call_v one_o a_o thief_n than_o he_o that_o be_v a_o thief_n himself_o and_o none_o so_o ready_a to_o say_v his_o opponent_n speak_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n as_o one_o that_o never_o speak_v to_o the_o purpose_n himself_o of_o this_o latter_a sort_n i_o dare_v make_v good_a mr._n i._o s._n to_o be_v in_o all_o his_o encounter_n upon_o my_o discourse_n if_o it_o be_v worth_a my_o while_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o appeal_v to_o the_o reader_n of_o common_a sense_n to_o judge_n betwixt_o he_o and_o i_o at_o present_a which_o of_o we_o both_o do_v speak_v to_o the_o purpose_n he_o in_o say_v that_o my_o discourse_n now_o relate_v be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n of_o prove_v the_o case_n of_o judas_n maccabeus_n do_v not_o evince_v the_o existence_n of_o purgatory_n or_o i_o in_o order_v thus_o my_o argument_n to_o that_o purpose_n the_o prayer_n suppose_v to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o maccabee_n may_v have_v be_v and_o probable_o be_v make_v to_o a_o different_a purpose_n then_o that_o of_o draw_v the_o soul_n of_o their_o defunct_a from_o purgatory_n therefore_o the_o case_n of_o such_o prayer_n to_o have_v be_v make_v do_v not_o evince_v the_o existence_n of_o purgatory_n the_o antecedent_n of_o this_o argument_n as_o also_o the_o proof_n and_o declaration_n of_o it_o be_v allow_v and_o commend_v by_o my_o adversary_n to_o enlarge_v upon_o declare_v the_o legality_n of_o the_o consequence_n be_v to_o mistrust_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o discreet_a reader_n and_o to_o misspend_v my_o time_n which_o i_o do_v not_o resolve_v to_o do_v but_o shall_v we_o see_v how_o my_o subtle_a adversary_n go_v about_o to_o prove_v i_o do_v not_o speak_v to_o the_o purpose_n in_o my_o former_a discourse_n for_o allow_v say_v he_o those_o prayer_n make_v for_o the_o slay_v may_v have_v have_v that_o effect_n in_o this_o passage_n etc._n etc._n a_o penitent_a death_n yet_o still_o return_v the_o conclusion_n pretend_v by_o bellarmin_n that_o the_o passage_n prove_v it_o be_v the_o belief_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o praise_v by_o scripture_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o expiation_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o dead_a good_a sir_n this_o be_v to_o draw_v breath_n a_o little_a but_o not_o to_o escape_v a_o deadly_a blow_n give_v to_o your_o cause_n in_o this_o occasion_n i_o take_v up_o your_o own_o word_n and_o make_v they_o serve_v my_o purpose_n thus_o though_o that_o passage_n prove_v it_o be_v the_o belief_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o praise_v by_o scripture_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o expiation_n of_o sin_n of_o the_o the_o dead_a yet_o still_o return_v my_o conclusion_n that_o those_o prayer_n may_v have_v be_v make_v for_o the_o expiation_n of_o sin_n commit_v by_o the_o dead_a in_o life_n and_o to_o be_v pardon_v at_o their_o death_n not_o of_o sin_n remain_v after_o their_o death_n and_o bring_v they_o to_o purgatory_n which_o be_v beauties_n purpose_n and_o you_o the_o text_n he_o allege_v out_o of_o st._n dennis_n and_o isidorus_n for_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a be_v capable_a of_o the_o same_o construction_n i_o give_v to_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o maccabee_n this_o answer_n he_o may_v have_v expect_v from_o i_o if_o he_o be_v in_o charity_n with_o more_o ground_n than_o the_o other_o he_o suppose_v rash_o i_o shall_v give_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n err_v i_o do_v not_o learn_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o respect_v they_o less_o i_o see_v here_o far_o great_a read_n and_o regard_n of_o they_o then_o i_o see_v among_o you_o i_o know_v no_o gehinus_n or_o other_o of_o those_o you_o mention_v that_o ascribe_v to_o they_o more_o error_n than_o aquinas_n scotus_n suarez_n maldonate_fw-it and_o other_o your_o great_a schoolman_n and_o scripturian_o they_o allege_v they_o frequent_o for_o contradictory_n opinion_n and_o the_o one_o side_n must_v be_v in_o a_o error_n you_o betray_v too_o much_o of_o a_o vulgar_a temper_n in_o admire_v it_o shall_v be_v say_v that_o any_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v err_v they_o confess_v themselves_o to_o have_v do_v it_o it_o be_v far_o from_o their_o modesty_n and_o sincerity_n to_o deny_v it_o chap._n xxvi_o the_o argument_n for_o purgatory_n take_v from_o the_o 12_o of_o s._n matth._n v._n 32._o solve_v the_o chief_a testimony_n out_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n allege_v in_o favour_n of_o purgatory_n be_v that_o of_o matth._n xii_o 32._o where_o our_o saviour_n say_v that_o a_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n
of_o those_o who_o be_v to_o be_v save_v but_o not_o without_o some_o note_n of_o infamy_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o add_v these_o word_n sunt_fw-la enim_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la credentes_fw-la quidam_fw-la &_o acquiescentes_fw-la divinis_fw-la praeceptis_fw-la erga_fw-la seruos_fw-la dei_fw-la officiosi_fw-la &_o religiosi_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la ornatum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la vel_fw-la ministorii_fw-la satis_fw-la promti_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o conversatione_fw-la propriâ_fw-la impuri_fw-la obscoeni_fw-la &_o vitiis_fw-la involuti_fw-la nec_fw-la omnino_fw-la deponentes_fw-la veterem_fw-la hominem_fw-la cum_fw-la actibus_fw-la suis_fw-la istis_fw-la crgo_fw-la christus_fw-la jesus_n salutem_fw-la concedit_fw-la sed_fw-la quandam_fw-la infamiae_fw-la notam_fw-la non_fw-la evadunt_fw-la there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n some_o believer_n and_o honourer_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o ready_a to_o contribute_v towards_o the_o decency_n of_o his_o service_n in_o the_o church_n but_o in_o their_o private_a life_n impure_a and_o liable_a to_o vice_n not_o put_v off_o altogether_o the_o old_a man_n with_o his_o work_n to_o these_o therefore_o christ_n jesus_n allow_v salvation_n but_o they_o shun_v not_o a_o certain_a note_n of_o infamy_n according_a to_o this_o doctrine_n of_o origen_n some_o may_v depart_v this_o life_n in_o state_n of_o salvation_n and_o be_v receive_v in_o heavenly_a bliss_n though_o with_o some_o blemish_n of_o small_a guilt_n not_o inconsistent_a with_o god_n amity_n but_o occasion_v a_o decrease_n in_o their_o degree_n of_o glory_n and_o therefore_o capable_a of_o a_o pardon_n of_o such_o blemish_n or_o imperfection_n even_o in_o heaven_n if_o so_o your_o text_n mention_v a_o pardon_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o other_o life_n do_v not_o evince_v the_o existence_n of_o purgatory_n if_o you_o say_v that_o origen_n have_v err_v herein_o as_o i_o conceive_v you_o will_v than_o first_o think_v it_o not_o a_o scandal_n to_o say_v that_o some_o one_o or_o other_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n shall_v err_v second_o acknowledge_v therein_o a_o fault_n of_o your_o church_n in_o make_v choice_n of_o the_o foresay_a word_n of_o origen_n for_o gloss_n ordinary_a of_o the_o abovementioned_a passage_n of_o joshua_n with_o the_o gibeonite_n and_o conclude_v from_o all_o that_o this_o subtlety_n which_o clear_o solve_v your_o strong_a argument_n for_o purgatory_n out_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v no_o invention_n of_o i_o but_o a_o doctrine_n of_o a_o very_a learned_a father_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n approve_v and_o receive_v by_o you_o modern_a with_o so_o public_a a_o qualification_n as_o to_o take_v it_o for_o a_o ordinary_a gloss_n upon_o the_o forementioned_a passage_n of_o scripture_n chap._n xxvii_o the_o attemt_a of_o our_o adversary_n to_o make_v the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n a_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n declare_v to_o be_v vain_a mr._n i._o s._n make_v sure_a account_n he_o find_v purgatory_n in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n where_o it_o be_v say_v he_o descend_v into_o hell_n and_o what_o if_o you_o be_v tell_v those_o word_n be_v not_o in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o that_o the_o first_o time_n and_o place_n they_o be_v use_v in_o it_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o aquilcia_n some_o four_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n that_o they_o be_v not_o express_v in_o those_o creed_n which_o be_v make_v by_o the_o council_n as_o large_a interpretation_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n not_o in_o the_o nicene_n or_o constantinopolitan_n not_o in_o that_o of_o ephesus_n or_o chalcedon_n not_o in_o those_o confession_n make_v at_o sardica_n antioch_n seleucia_n syrmium_fw-la not_o in_o the_o creed_n expound_v by_o st._n austin_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o symbolo_fw-la and_o symboli_fw-la and_o ruffin_n in_o expositione_n symboli_fw-la r●ffinus_n say_v that_o in_o his_o time_n it_o be_v neither_o in_o the_o roman_a or_o oriental_a creed_n sciendum_fw-la sanè_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o ecclesiae_fw-la romanae_fw-la symbolo_fw-la non_fw-la habetur_fw-la additum_fw-la descendit_fw-la ad_fw-la inferna_fw-la sed_fw-la neque_fw-la in_o orientis_fw-la ecclesiis_fw-la habetur_fw-la hic_fw-la sermo_fw-la it_o be_v certain_a say_v he_o that_o the_o article_n of_o the_o descent_n into_o hell_n be_v not_o in_o the_o roman_a or_o any_o of_o the_o oriental_a creed_n it_o be_v not_o mention_v in_o several_a confession_n of_o faith_n deliver_v by_o particular_a person_n not_o in_o that_o of_o eusebius_n caesariensis_n present_v to_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a nor_o in_o that_o of_o marcellus_n bishop_n of_o ancyra_n deliver_v to_o pope_n julius_n nor_o in_o that_o of_o acatius_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n deliver_v to_o the_o senate_n of_o seleucia_n nor_o in_o other_o mention_v by_o the_o learned_a bishop_n of_o chester_n dr._n pearson_n in_o that_o his_o grave_n and_o judicious_a exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n write_v upon_o the_o five_o article_n of_o it_o i_o be_o persuade_v this_o will_v appear_v strange_a unto_o you_o and_o though_o sufficient_a to_o weaken_v the_o force_n of_o your_o argument_n ground_v upon_o the_o foresay_a word_n of_o the_o creed_n my_o answer_n will_v not_o rely_v upon_o it_o i_o allow_v the_o say_a word_n to_o belong_v to_o the_o catholic_a creed_n long_a time_n receive_v in_o the_o church_n and_o embrace_v by_o that_o of_o england_n but_o i_o deny_v your_o inference_n from_o those_o word_n of_o the_o creed_n in_o favour_n of_o your_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n to_o be_v pertinent_a he_o descend_v into_o hell_n i_o believe_v he_o do_v but_o not_o into_o the_o hell_n of_o the_o damn_a say_v you_o for_o all_o christian_n abhor_v the_o blasphemy_n of_o calvin_n that_o say_v christ_n soul_n suffer_v the_o pain_n of_o the_o damn_a what_o then_o therefore_o he_o descend_v into_o purgatory_n i_o be_o sure_a the_o more_o learned_a and_o pious_a man_n of_o your_o communion_n will_v abhor_v this_o consequence_n i_o never_o hear_v any_o of_o they_o say_v that_o descent_n of_o christ_n shall_v have_v be_v to_o purgatory_n first_o because_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o hell_n they_o never_o understand_v purgatory_n second_o if_o you_o mean_v he_o shall_v descend_v thither_o suffer_v the_o pain_n of_o that_o place_n it_o be_v no_o less_o blasphemous_a than_o that_o you_o call_v blasphemy_n in_o calvin_n for_o if_o we_o believe_v your_o author_n the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n be_v the_o same_o with_o those_o of_o hell_n and_o inflict_v by_o the_o same_o minister_n of_o divine_a justice_n that_o punish_v the_o damn_a soul_n in_o hell_n if_o you_o say_v he_o descend_v thither_o triumphant_a and_o glorious_a without_o suffer_v the_o pain_n of_o that_o place_n to_o purpose_n of_o divine_a providence_n not_o manifest_v to_o we_o you_o may_v say_v without_o any_o blasphemy_n he_o descend_v the_o same_o manner_n into_o the_o hell_n of_o the_o damn_a triumphant_a and_o victorious_a without_o prejudice_n to_o his_o glory_n and_o honour_n as_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n be_v there_o still_o without_o prejudice_n to_o his_o glory_n why_o may_v not_o his_o soul_n be_v there_o for_o a_o short_a time_n with_o the_o same_o immunity_n and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n of_o triumph_v over_o hell_n and_o his_o enemy_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v capable_a of_o this_o exposition_n more_o literal_a and_o obvious_a what_o need_n be_v there_o of_o your_o new_a invention_n of_o purgatory_n unknown_a to_o primitive_a christianity_n for_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o that_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n chap._n xxviii_o how_o weak_a be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o grand_a engine_n of_o indulgence_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n when_o first_o i_o come_v to_o examine_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n use_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n i_o confess_v i_o be_v astonish_v to_o see_v how_o little_a ground_n they_o can_v show_v in_o the_o fountain_n of_o divine_a faith_n for_o this_o mystery_n of_o the_o romish_a belief_n of_o so_o great_a noise_n and_o so_o much_o use_v among_o they_o i_o think_v it_o a_o strong_a negative_a argument_n against_o such_o a_o dectrine_n not_o to_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o two_o so_o great_a champion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n cajetan_n and_o suarez_n both_o employ_v by_o public_a authority_n to_o defend_v this_o doctrine_n shall_v not_o meet_v with_o any_o convince_a testimony_n of_o it_o in_o divine_a scripture_n as_o both_o do_v confess_v plain_o both_o do_v examine_v the_o two_o chief_a testimony_n allege_v for_o this_o doctrine_n the_o first_o out_o of_o john_n 20.23_o who_o soever_o sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v to_o they_o the_o second_o out_o of_o matth._n 18.18_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v loose_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n and_o both_o do_v acknowledge_v they_o not_o to_o convince_v the_o doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n as_o now_o practise_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n cajetan_n tom_n
and_o the_o meaning_n of_o they_o than_o when_o he_o hear_v the_o same_o psalm_n without_o understand_v the_o word_n or_o sense_n of_o they_o your_o comparison_n of_o a_o polander_n present_v a_o petition_n in_o english_a to_o the_o king_n of_o england_n which_o himself_o do_v not_o understand_v do_v aggravate_v your_o crime_n and_o publish_v the_o misery_n of_o the_o people_n abuse_v by_o you_o will_v not_o that_o polander_n wish_v to_o know_v the_o english_a tongue_n for_o act_v in_o his_o own_o cause_n and_o to_o be_v sure_a he_o be_v not_o abuse_v by_o a_o notary_n who_o possible_o may_v have_v frame_v a_o petition_n for_o he_o to_o the_o king_n for_o hang_v his_o father_n or_o mother_n for_o traitor_n if_o the_o king_n do_v understand_v the_o polish_v language_n as_o well_o as_o the_o english_a be_v it_o not_o a_o madness_n in_o the_o say_v polander_n to_o have_v his_o petition_n pen_v in_o a_o tongue_n he_o do_v not_o understand_v with_o the_o foresay_a disadvantage_n be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o in_o his_o own_o tongue_n with_o the_o contrary_a advantage_n what_o madness_n then_o be_v it_o in_o your_o people_n to_o frame_v their_o prayer_n in_o a_o tongue_n unknown_a to_o they_o to_o speak_v like_o parrot_n without_o feel_v or_o know_v what_o they_o say_v and_o expose_v to_o the_o danger_n of_o be_v abuse_v by_o a_o knave_n teach_v they_o or_o read_v before_o they_o blasphemous_a word_n in_o which_o they_o be_v to_o join_v with_o he_o b●_n their_z amen_o and_o in_o case_n the_o prayer_n be_v good_a that_o be_v read_v before_o they_o what_o proportion_n can_v it_o have_v with_o elevate_a the_o mind_n of_o the_o people_n to_o a_o conjunction_n in_o sense_n with_o the_o minister_n if_o they_o do_v not_o understand_v what_o he_o say_v and_o thus_o ill_o it_o go_v with_o you_o even_o for_o the_o act_n of_o pray_v in_o your_o liturgy_n which_o you_o allow_v to_o be_v a_o elevation_n of_o the_o mind_n to_o god_n even_o in_o this_o point_n i_o have_v your_o own_o judgement_n against_o you_o and_o so_o may_v return_v your_o text_n upon_o you_o say_v exit_fw-la ore_fw-la tuo_fw-la te_fw-la judico_fw-la serve_v nequam_fw-la but_o what_o of_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o liturgy_n above_o mention_v contain_v a_o speech_n of_o god_n to_o the_o people_n by_o the_o epistle_n gospel_n psalm_n and_o other_o sacred_a lecture_n direct_v to_o the_o spiritual_a direction_n and_o food_n of_o their_o soul_n can_v this_o end_n be_v compass_v without_o sense_n and_o feel_n in_o the_o people_n of_o what_o be_v say_v to_o they_o you_o confess_v that_o s._n paul_n 1_o cor._n 14._o prohibit_n preach_v to_o the_o people_n in_o a_o tongue_n unknown_a to_o they_o and_o be_v not_o those_o sacred_a lecture_n a_o kind_n of_o preach_v exhortation_n and_o instruction_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o best_a that_o can_v be_v as_o proceed_v immediate_o from_o god_n himself_o then_o you_o act_n against_o the_o apostle_n order_n by_o your_o own_o confession_n propose_v such_o exhortation_n to_o the_o people_n in_o a_o tongue_n unknown_a to_o they_o and_o so_o your_o text_n return_v upon_o you_o here_o in_o full_a measure_n exit_fw-la ore_fw-la tuo_fw-la te_fw-la judico_fw-la serve_v nequam_fw-la it_o be_v a_o discredit_n to_o a_o cause_n so_o clear_a to_o make_v more_o delay_n upon_o it_o but_o let_v the_o world_n cry_v against_o the_o tyranny_n you_o use_v this_o way_n with_o soul_n in_o deprive_v they_o of_o their_o spiritual_a food_n what_o you_o say_v of_o submit_v your_o judgement_n herein_o to_o the_o church_n be_v idle_a and_o absurd_a when_o our_o present_a business_n be_v to_o rebuke_v the_o abuse_n and_o corruption_n of_o your_o church_n the_o cause_n of_o our_o dislike_n of_o it_o chap._n xxxxii._n the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o prohibit_v the_o read_n of_o scripture_n to_o the_o people_n and_o their_o common_a pretence_n of_o sect_n and_o division_n arise_v among_o protestant_n refute_v from_o the_o page_n 101._o of_o my_o former_a discourse_n i_o declare_v the_o cruelty_n use_v with_o the_o faithful_a people_n in_o prohibit_v they_o the_o read_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o food_n of_o their_o soul_n how_o contrary_a that_o be_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n itself_o often_o invite_v we_o to_o the_o read_n of_o it_o and_o to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o father_n and_o people_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o all_o which_o mr._n i._o s._n reply_n that_o the_o fruit_n we_o have_v in_o the_o protestant_a church_n of_o permit_v the_o people_n to_o read_v the_o bible_n be_v the_o variety_n of_o sect_n spring_v from_o the_o read_n of_o it_o but_o this_o you_o may_v tell_v better_o to_o other_o then_o to_o i_o that_o know_v now_o matter_n go_v on_o both_o side_n and_o be_o certain_a that_o there_o be_v more_o division_n in_o several_a society_n of_o your_o communion_n both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o in_o ceremony_n then_o in_o the_o protestant_a church_n he_o that_o know_v the_o difference_n of_o opinion_n betwixt_o jesuist_n and_o dominican_n each_o one_o condemn_v the_o other_o of_o heresy_n and_o doctrine_n destructive_a of_o good_a life_n and_o of_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o great_a difference_n in_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n use_v among_o they_o will_v clear_o see_v they_o differ_v more_o in_o all_o the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o than_o the_o orthodox_n protestant_n do_v from_o any_o other_o congregation_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o reform_a church_n their_o difference_n be_v not_o in_o matter_n so_o fundamental_a and_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o a_o good_a life_n as_o those_o of_o the_o dissent_v romish_a society_n their_o censure_n of_o one_o another_o be_v not_o so_o heavy_a yea_o the_o very_a state_v of_o their_o question_n on_o both_o side_n do_v declare_v so_o much_o both_o suppose_n they_o be_v touch_v thing_n indifferent_a the_o dissenter_n or_o nonconformist_n pretend_v that_o the_o point_n in_o debate_n be_v only_o ceremonial_a and_o indifferent_a not_o essential_a to_o salvation_n or_o good_a life_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v force_v upon_o they_o the_o orthodox_n allege_v that_o very_a thing_n to_o render_v dissenter_n criminal_a that_o the_o thing_n order_v be_v of_o their_o own_o nature_n indifferent_a and_o not_o opposite_a to_o god_n law_n there_o be_v a_o necessity_n upon_o they_o of_o obey_v lawful_a authority_n order_v such_o matter_n so_o much_o we_o may_v say_v in_o relation_n to_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n that_o there_o be_v not_o near_o so_o great_a a_o diversity_n in_o they_o use_v by_o orthodox_n protestant_n and_o other_o congregation_n dissent_v as_o there_o be_v in_o the_o ceremony_n and_o rite_n use_v in_o college_n of_o jesuit_n and_o convent_v of_o dominican_n carmelites_n franciscan_n carthusian_n and_o other_o very_a many_o society_n differ_v both_o in_o habit_n diet_n rite_n and_o ceremony_n one_o from_o the_o other_o all_o these_o difference_n both_o of_o doctrine_n and_o rite_n the_o pope_n can_v wink_v at_o provide_v they_o agree_v in_o pay_v obedience_n to_o he_o and_z advancing_z his_o quarrel_n the_o great_a union_n require_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n make_v mean_a dissension_n appear_v more_o sensible_a and_o great_a will_v the_o dissension_n and_o error_n be_v if_o the_o light_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v remove_v for_o st._n hierome_n say_v that_o infinite_a evil_n do_v arise_v from_o ignorance_n of_o scripture_n from_o hence_o say_v he_o most_o part_n of_o heresy_n have_v come_v and_o so_o they_o be_v of_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o well_o use_v not_o a_o cause_n of_o dissension_n and_o error_n but_o a_o cure_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v resolve_v not_o to_o be_v cure_v of_o her_o corruption_n decree_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v remove_v from_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o people_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o council_n of_o bishop_n mention_v by_o dr._n stillingfleet_n and_o by_o other_o grave_a writer_n of_o who_o authority_n you_o doubt_v and_o what_o need_v we_o the_o authority_n of_o that_o council_n for_o a_o thing_n that_o we_o see_v with_o our_o eye_n and_o order_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n by_o pius_n iv_o clement_n the_o viii_o and_o alexander_n the_o vii_o in_o the_o place_n allege_v in_o the_o page_n 100_o of_o my_o former_a discourse_n chap._n xxxiii_o mr._n i_o s._n his_o engagement_n touch_v the_o immaculate_a conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o confession_n confute_v for_o instance_n of_o the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n in_o press_v upon_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o faithful_a thing_n uncertain_a and_o repugnant_a to_o their_o judgement_n i_o make_v a_o brief_a mention_n of_o the_o opinion_n about_o the_o immaculate_a conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n how_o they_o make_v people_n swear_v to_o
defend_v it_o and_o debar_v from_o office_n and_o preferment_n such_o as_o will_v not_o take_v such_o oath_n and_o mr._n i._n s._n must_v enter_v into_o a_o formal_a dispute_n upon_o the_o point_n the_o testimony_n of_o s._n paul_n say_v rom._n v._o that_o all_o man_n sin_v in_o adam_n and_o consequent_o the_o virgin_n mary_n with_o the_o rest_n he_o value_v nothing_o it_o be_v a_o general_a rule_n say_v he_o capable_a of_o exception_n but_o give_v we_o no_o testimony_n to_o prove_v the_o virgin_n be_v except_v from_o that_o rule_n he_o admit_v that_o christ_n be_v universal_a redeemer_n and_o die_v for_o all_o man_n but_o think_v it_o not_o a_o consequence_n that_o the_o virgin_n shall_v have_v be_v redeem_v or_o draw_v but_o only_o preserve_v from_o sin_n and_o so_o the_o consequence_n of_o st._n paul_n be_v not_o legal_a say_v 2_o cor._n v._o 14._o if_o one_o die_v for_o all_o then_o be_v all_o dead_a or_o if_o if_o it_o be_v legal_a sure_o the_o virgin_n be_v dead_a by_o original_a sin_n as_o the_o rest_n or_o else_o all_o be_v not_o dead_a you_o say_v it_o be_v not_o unlawful_a in_o a_o community_n to_o require_v certain_a condition_n from_o such_o as_o will_v be_v member_n of_o it_o and_o so_o may_v require_v of_o they_o engagement_n to_o defend_v the_o immaculate_a conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n to_o demand_v condition_n not_o include_v a_o disturbance_n of_o conscience_n nor_o occasion_v dissimilation_n may_v be_v lawful_a not_o so_o to_o require_v condition_n contrary_a to_o a_o man_n conscience_n and_o judgement_n which_o be_v our_o case_n you_o say_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n in_o opinion_n of_o papist_n be_v a_o heresy_n why_o then_o be_v it_o require_v from_o i_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v only_a folly_n or_o malice_n can_v make_v it_o appear_v such_o as_o i_o have_v declare_v in_o the_o 18._o chapter_n and_o the_o law_n be_v not_o to_o be_v regulate_v by_o such_o passion_n i_o give_v likewise_o a_o short_a touch_n to_o the_o cruelty_n use_v with_o conscience_n in_o the_o practice_n of_o confession_n as_o well_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o its_o exercise_n as_o the_o frequent_a reservation_n of_o case_n and_o here_o mr._n i.s._n must_v enter_v again_o into_o the_o deep_a of_o the_o dispute_n whether_o confession_n ought_v to_o be_v admit_v which_o be_v not_o the_o case_n in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v not_o only_o admit_v but_o commend_v and_o enjoin_v the_o practice_n of_o confession_n in_o necessary_a occasion_n though_o not_o the_o unnecessary_a and_o pernicious_a superstructure_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n touch_v the_o mode_n prescribe_v and_o the_o reservation_n of_o case_n occasion_v lamentable_a perplexity_n and_o desperate_a melancholy_n of_o soul_n whereof_o i_o can_v declare_v miserable_a instance_n if_o certain_a due_a consideration_n do_v not_o make_v i_o supersede_n enlarge_n upon_o this_o kind_n of_o matter_n only_o i_o will_v reflect_v upon_o a_o new_a addition_n of_o rigo●_n bring_v in_o by_o mr._n i._n s._n of_o which_o he_o will_v have_v st._n augustin_n to_o be_v author_n that_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o sin_n the_o place_n time_n continuance_n and_o diversity_n of_o person_n must_v be_v specify_v this_o make_v i_o doubt_v and_o wonder_v what_o kind_n of_o person_n my_o antagonist_n be_v whether_o ever_o he_o be_v breed_v among_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o do_v read_v their_o book_n for_o certain_o any_o of_o they_o that_o have_v but_o the_o least_o tincture_n of_o moral_a theology_n will_v think_v strange_a of_o this_o paradox_n that_o the_o place_n and_o time_n of_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v declare_v as_o also_o the_o diversity_n of_o person_n be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_a or_o species_n but_o of_o these_o kind_n of_o lapse_n mr._n i._n s._n his_o theology_n make_v no_o scruple_n if_o ●e_n be_v better_o acquaint_v with_o the_o practice_n of_o doctor_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o will_v not_o fetch_v up_o doctrine_n of_o father_n opposite_a to_o the_o present_a practice_n of_o that_o church_n if_o he_o do_v but_o sit_v certain_a hour_n of_o the_o day_n from_o st._n luke_n to_o may-day_n or_o thereabouts_o in_o the_o hall_n of_o divinity_n of_o the_o college_n of_o palentia_n and_o tudela_n where_o he_o say_v no_o divinity_n be_v ever_o teach_v he_o will_v learn_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o penitent_a to_o specify_v in_o his_o confession_n the_o time_n place_n and_o diversity_n of_o person_n wherein_o and_o wherewith_o his_o sin_n be_v commit_v and_o they_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o if_o st._n augustin_n say_v the_o contrary_a it_o be_v one_o of_o his_o error_n and_o a_o doctrine_n now_o out_o of_o date_n but_o mr._n i._n s._n be_v of_o a_o strong_a stomach_n can_v swallow_v by_o the_o gross_a and_o care_v not_o so_o much_o for_o chaw_v or_o mince_a distinction_n of_o doctrine_n chap._n xxxiv_o a_o reflection_n upon_o the_o many_o falsity_n impertinence_n absurdity_n and_o hallucination_n of_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o book_n which_o may_v justify_v a_o resolution_n of_o not_o misspend_v time_n in_o return_v any_o further_a reply_n to_o such_o writing_n and_o a_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a treatise_n exhort_v he_o to_o a_o consideration_n of_o his_o miserable_a condition_n in_o deceive_a himself_o and_o other_o with_o vanity_n mr._n i._o s._n conclude_v his_o book_n as_o he_o begin_v and_o do_v proceed_v in_o it_o pour_v out_o a_o shower_n of_o falsity_n non_fw-fr sense_n impertinence_n and_o hallucination_n of_o which_o i_o will_v give_v some_o testimony_n here_o whereby_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v with_o how_o much_o reason_n i_o may_v resolve_v not_o to_o spend_v precious_a time_n in_o further_a answer_v to_o or_o take_v notice_n of_o such_o faulty_a writing_n the_o very_a first_o word_n of_o his_o dedicatory_a epistle_n to_o the_o lord_n lieutenant_n of_o ireland_n contain_v a_o heap_n of_o the_o say_a fault_n and_o falsity_n he_o call_v his_o book_n a_o vindication_n of_o both_o church_n which_o a_o viper_n have_v endeavour_v to_o bite_v etc._n etc._n he_o may_v better_o call_v it_o a_o affront_n of_o both_o church_n of_o the_o protestant_n for_o the_o rude_a injury_n offer_v to_o she_o of_o the_o popish_a for_o have_v no_o better_a defence_n of_o her_o cause_n to_o exhibit_v with_o what_o truth_n or_o propriety_n can_v he_o say_v that_o i_o endeavour_v to_o bite_v both_o church_n as_o for_o the_o protestant_n i_o give_v sufficient_a testimony_n of_o my_o endeavour_n to_o make_v the_o world_n know_v that_o in_o she_o be_v profess_v the_o true_a primitive_a catholic_a apostolic_a faith_n and_o therefore_o be_v the_o sure_a way_n to_o salvation_n and_o as_o for_o the_o roman_a church_n from_o which_o i_o receive_v the_o belief_n of_o a_o christian_a if_o the_o matter_n be_v well_o consider_v i_o will_v make_v good_a i_o have_v not_o be_v a_o viper_n but_o a_o dutiful_a and_o true_o love_a child_n and_o more_o dutiful_a and_o true_a then_o mr._n i._o s._n if_o a_o mother_n infect_v with_o a_o pestilent_a canker_n have_v two_o son_n of_o which_o the_o one_o know_v the_o remedy_n will_v apply_v it_o though_o with_o reluctancy_n and_o displeasure_n of_o the_o infect_a mother_n and_o the_o other_o not_o to_o displease_v his_o mother_n will_v feed_v the_o sickness_n with_o lenitive_n or_o soothe_v please_v the_o mother_n but_o feaster_v her_o wound_n and_o hasten_v her_o ruin_n which_o of_o both_o do_v you_o think_v be_v the_o more_o true_o dutiful_a and_o love_a child_n certain_o the_o former_a who_o will_v apply_v a_o heal_a hand_n to_o the_o mother_n though_o against_o she_o will_n this_o be_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o you_o and_o i_o i_o see_v that_o mother_n at_o who_o breast_n i_o do_v suck_v the_o belief_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o therefore_o can_v choose_v but_o revere_a and_o love_v she_o as_o a_o mother_n sicken_v of_o a_o pestilent_a canker_n i_o try_v to_o apply_v some_o beginning_n of_o a_o remedy_n and_o find_v her_o impatient_a of_o cure_n while_o in_o her_o reach_n i_o betake_v i_o to_o a_o distance_n whence_o i_o may_v apply_v the_o cure_n let_v she_o know_v that_o her_o innocation_n proceed_v from_o ambition_n and_o avarice_n be_v cause_n of_o her_o pestilent_a disease_n that_o render_v her_o odious_a to_o god_n and_o man_n she_o shall_v return_v therefore_o to_o her_o former_a innocency_n and_o holiness_n practise_v by_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n for_o many_o age_n which_o render_v they_o glorious_a and_o venerable_a to_o all_o the_o world_n when_o their_o study_n be_v not_o to_o make_v prince_n of_o nephew_n and_o niece_n and_o of_o peasant_n hero_n pretend_v to_o that_o end_n to_o make_v all_o mankind_n tributary_n to_o their_o power_n and_o riches_n but_o to_o purchase_v heaven_n for_o themselves_o and_o for_o
as_o be_v most_o common_o use_v in_o this_o realm_n of_o england_n in_o the_o last_o year_n of_o king_n henry_n 8._o shall_v be_v use_v and_o frequent_v through_o the_o whole_a realm_n of_o england_n and_o all_o other_o the_o queen_n dominion_n and_o no_o other_o in_o any_o other_o manner_n form_n or_o degree_n the_o maker_n of_o this_o statute_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o holy_a order_n be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o therefore_o be_v administer_v in_o queen_n mary_n time_n as_o in_o king_n henry_n they_o will_v not_o pretend_v that_o any_o form_n essential_a be_v omit_v in_o queen_n mary_n time_n and_o consequent_o must_v say_v the_o same_o of_o order_n give_v in_o king_n henry_n reign_n what_o bishop_n when_o and_o by_o who_o they_o be_v consecrate_v during_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o his_o time_n mr._n mason_n relate_v out_o of_o the_o public_a record_n as_o thomas_n cranmer_n in_o the_o year_n 1533._o as_o above_o mention_v next_o after_o rowland_n lee_n conse_n b._n of_o lichfield_n 14._o of_o apr._n 1534._o by_o thom._n canterb._n john_n lincoln_n christ_n sidon_n george_n brown_n con._n archbish_a of_o dub._n 19_o mar._n 1535._o by_o thom._n canterb._n john_n roffens_n nichol._n sarum_n and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n until_o the_o year_n 1545._o every_o one_o be_v consecrate_v by_o three_o bishop_n and_o with_o the_o usual_a ceremony_n and_o the_o great_a penalty_n of_o praemunire_n be_v denounce_v by_o act_n of_o 20._o of_o 2_o 5._o henr._n 8._o c._n 20._o parliament_n against_o any_o bishop_n consecrate_v or_o consecrate_v otherwise_o chap._n vi_o the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n in_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o his_o time_n and_o after_o prove_v to_o be_v legal_a and_o valid_a the_o great_a opposition_n be_v against_o the_o ordination_n of_o our_o clergy_n since_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o ordinal_n 5._o ordinal_n vasquez_n to_o 3._o in_o 3._o p._n disp_n 240._o c._n 5._o or_o ceremony_n of_o ordination_n in_o time_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o of_o which_o kellison_n speak_v thus_o in_o king_n edward_n time_n neither_o matter_n nor_o form_n of_o ordination_n be_v use_v and_o so_o none_o be_v true_o ordain_v against_o this_o rash_a and_o slanderous_a censure_n of_o kellison_n i_o will_v produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o vasquez_n and_o bellarmine_n man_n of_o great_a credit_n and_o knowledge_n touch_v the_o matter_n and_o form_n of_o ordination_n vasqu_n declare_v the_o matter_n of_o episcopal_a ordination_n to_o be_v only_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o the_o form_n those_o word_n receive_v the_o ●oly_a ghost_n which_o be_v say_v by_o three_o bishop_n together_o &_o relate_v major_a and_o armilla_n for_o the_o same_o opinion_n prove_v it_o first_o out_o of_o scripture_n 1_o timot._fw-la iu_o 14._o neglect_v not_o the_o gift_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o which_o be_v give_v thou_o by_o prophecy_n with_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n out_o of_o which_o place_n 31._o place_n kellis_n reply_n to_o dr._n sutlif_n fol_z 31._o vasquez_n thus_o argue_v solid_o unde_fw-la sequitur_fw-la manifest_a eam_fw-la mannum_fw-la impositionem_fw-la esse_fw-la materiam_fw-la ac_fw-la proinde_fw-la verba_fw-la quae_fw-la simul_fw-la cum_fw-la eâ_fw-la proferuntur_fw-la esse_fw-la formam_fw-la nam_fw-la gratia_fw-la sacramentalis_fw-la in_o ipsa_fw-la applicatione_n materiae_fw-la &_o formae_fw-la &_o per_fw-la ipsam_fw-la confertur_fw-la whence_o follow_v manifest_o that_o such_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v the_o matter_n and_o consequent_o the_o word_n pronounce_v with_o it_o the_o form_n for_o sacramental_a grace_n be_v confer_v in_o the_o very_a application_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n and_o by_o it_o then_o he_o proceed_v to_o prove_v by_o testimony_n of_o father_n that_o three_o bishop_n ought_v to_o concur_v in_o the_o ordination_n of_o a_o bishop_n &_o that_o what_o be_v not_o perform_v by_o all_o three_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o essential_a matter_n or_o form_n but_o in_o all_o the_o roman_a pontifical_a say_v he_o no_o other_o ceremony_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o three_o bishop_n but_o only_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n therefore_o that_o alone_o must_v be_v the_o matter_n and_o consequent_o only_o the_o word_n pronounce_v with_o it_o the_o form_n of_o episcopal_a ordination_n that_o three_o bishop_n be_v necessary_a for_o ordain_v a_o bishop_n which_o be_v a_o foundation_n lay_v by_o he_o for_o the_o former_a argument_n he_o prove_v first_o by_o the_o the_o testimony_n of_o pope_n anacletus_fw-la 63._o anacletus_fw-la anaclet_n in_o epist_n 2_o decretali_fw-la c_o 2._o anicetus_n damas._n &_o alnapod_n valgoez_n 243._o c._n 6._o a_o 63._o affirm_v that_o the_o first_o archbishop_n of_o jerusalem_n james_n call_v the_o just_a brother_n of_o the_o lord_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n be_v ordain_v by_o peter_n james_n and_z john_n apostle_n give_v therein_o a_o rule_n to_o successor_n that_o a_o bishop_n shall_v not_o be_v ordain_v by_o less_o than_o three_o bishop_n anacletus_fw-la add_v that_o he_o learn_v so_o much_o from_o st._n peter_n by_o who_o he_o be_v himself_o prie_v second_o pope_n anicetus_n deliver_v the_o same_o add_v it_o be_v so_o practise_v instituente_fw-la domino_fw-la by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n three_o he_o allege_v the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a with_o several_a other_o council_n and_o father_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n if_o you_o oppose_v that_o the_o foresay_a word_n receïve_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v too_o general_a for_o a_o form_n to_o ordain_v a_o bishop_n he_o answer_v that_o be_v pronounce_v by_o three_o bishop_n lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o the_o person_n ordain_v they_o specify_v the_o degree_n of_o a_o bishop_n since_o thereby_o they_o signify_v that_o they_o receive_v he_o to_o their_o own_o proper_a order_n and_o degree_n the_o conjunction_n of_o three_o bishop_n lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o the_o person_n ordain_v be_v only_o proper_a to_o the_o ordain_v of_o a_o bishop_n as_o he_o prove_v disp_n 243._o c._n 6._o thus_o much_o 60._o much_o vasquez_n disp_n 246._o n._n 60._o vasquez_n touch_v the_o matter_n and_o form_n of_o episcopal_a ordination_n 18._o ordination_n pellar_n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la in_o gen._n lib._n 1._o c._n 18._o bellarmine_n contribute_v not_o little_a to_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o verity_n though_o with_o less_o coherence_n to_o another_o doctrine_n he_o suppose_v as_o i_o will_v declare_v after_o for_o speak_v of_o sacrament_n in_o general_a he_o say_v that_o all_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n be_v compose_v of_o visible_a thing_n as_o matter_n and_o of_o word_n as_o form_n and_o 9_o and_o idem_fw-la de_fw-la sacra_fw-la ordinis_fw-la c._n 9_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o holy_a order_n which_o he_o suppose_v to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n in_o scripture_n of_o any_o visible_a sign_n that_o may_v be_v a_o matter_n of_o it_o but_o only_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o holy_a order_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n and_o declare_v in_o scripture_n as_o he_o prove_v well_o the_o essential_a constitute_v of_o it_o must_v be_v likewise_o in_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o no_o other_o visible_a sign_n or_o matter_n proportionable_a for_o it_o be_v in_o scripture_n it_o follow_v that_o only_a the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n must_v be_v the_o matter_n of_o it_o how_o well_o this_o agree_v with_o what_o bellarmine_n in_o the_o same_o place_n suppose_v but_o prove_v not_o that_o in_o the_o ordination_n of_o a_o priest_n not_o only_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n but_o also_o the_o deliver_n of_o the_o chalice_n and_o patin_n belong_v to_o the_o essential_a matter_n let_v he_o consider_v he_o quote_v dominic_n soto_n and_o other_o say_v that_o the_o deliver_v the_o chalice_n with_o wine_n and_o the_o patin_n with_o bread_n be_v the_o only_a matter_n and_o the_o word_n pronounce_v by_o the_o bishop_n deliver_v they_o be_v the_o form_n of_o ordination_n of_o the_o priest_n the_o word_n be_v these_o accipe_fw-la potestatem_fw-la offerendi_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la take_v power_n of_o offer_v a_o sacrifice_n bellarmine_n prove_v efficacious_o that_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v a_o matter_n essential_a to_o ordination_n but_o suppose_v without_o exhibit_v any_o proof_n of_o it_o that_o the_o deliver_n of_o the_o chalice_n and_o patin_n be_v also_o a_o part_n essential_a of_o the_o matter_n say_v against_o sotus_n that_o not_o only_o the_o deliver_n of_o the_o instrument_n but_o also_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v a_o matter_n essential_a in_o the_o ordination_n this_o i_o say_v seem_v not_o to_o agree_v well_o with_o what_o he_o say_v before_o that_o in_o scripture_n no_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o any_o symbol_n that_o can_v be_v take_v for_o a_o matter_n of_o ordination_n but_o only_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o true_o the_o proof_n he_o allege_v out_o of_o sotus_n or_o other_o